Ascendance of a Bookworm Part 5 Vol 2
Table of Contents
The Royal Family and the Library
The Royal Academy’s Dedication Ritual
Headache-Inducing Reports (Third Year)
A Comfy Life with My Family by You Shiina
Prologue
Many of Aub Ahrensbach’s scholars were
gathered together with Ferdinand, previously a resident of Ehrenfest and the
fiancé of the next archduchess, in the office he had received in Ahrensbach’s
castle.
“This is data regarding the Adalgisa
princess,” one said. “An emissary from Lanzenave arrived in the summer and
consulted us regarding her being sent over. The king will need to be informed
of this during the next Archduke Conference.”
“An Adalgisa princess...” Ferdinand muttered,
unpleasant thoughts stirring within him. He recalled that Raublut, the
Sovereign knight commander, had noticed his unique history as a former seed of
Adalgisa. It was possible that others here knew the circumstances of his birth
as well.
The scholars continued their explanation,
unaware that Ferdinand was acting so guarded. “You may not know this, as you
are from another duchy, but Adalgisa princesses come from Lanzenave. Please
read these more detailed papers on how she will be received.” Their duty was to
bring Ferdinand up to speed with his responsibilities in Ahrensbach, and they
carried in stacks of documents and paperwork one after another. Detlinde, as
the next archduchess, needed to prioritize dyeing the foundational magic with her
mana, so Ferdinand had to take on most of the administrative work.
I can understand why the scholars would rather
work with me than Lady Detlinde—I am better accustomed to bureaucratic work—but
my duties educating Lady Letizia are just as important.
Detlinde had not done anything even remotely
close to paperwork until very recently, in part due to her being the youngest
daughter of Georgine, who had previously been the duchy’s third wife. In fact,
Detlinde had previously been further from the seat of aub than any other
archduke candidate, trailing behind the second wife’s two sons; her brother,
the third wife’s son; and Letizia, the first wife’s granddaughter from
Drewanchel.
In the end, however, the purge had seen the
second wife’s two sons reduced to archnobles, Detlinde’s older brother had
perished in an unfortunate accident, and Aub Ahrensbach had died before Letizia
came of age. Detlinde was thus having to serve as a temporary archduchess.
The scholars informed Ferdinand that the late
archduke had not done much to educate Detlinde, as he had not wanted her to
stand above the younger Letizia.
Still, to think that I would be the one sending a
Lanzenave princess to that villa...
Ferdinand started reading the provided
documents. He felt a sharp, unmistakable bitterness knowing that he would need
to be consistently involved with Lanzenave and Adalgisa, but he kept his true
feelings from showing. His eyebrow did not so much as twitch.
“Oh, I thought it was rather cold today... It
seems the snow has finally begun to fall,” one of the scholars remarked, their
voice somewhat bright.
Ferdinand turned to look outside. Indeed,
there were flecks of white falling from the sky. The scholars gathered at the
window, suggesting that snow was rare in Ahrensbach, but this was a common
sight at the start of every winter in Ehrenfest. He returned his attention to
his documents.
“Our duchies share the same seasons, but
winter here is very different from in Ehrenfest,” Justus mused aloud as he
brought over some tea. Ferdinand understood this as Justus’s way of proposing
that he take a break, so he put down his pen and accepted the cup.
Upon hearing Justus’s remark, Sergius, one of
the Ahrensbach attendants assigned to Ferdinand, blinked a few times.
“Different how?” he asked, his yellow eyes betraying his interest. The gathered
scholars were looking at Justus as well, clearly eager to hear about the
dissimilarities between their two duchies.
“In Ehrenfest, we see our first flurries at
the end of autumn and the start of winter—around when we first came to
Ahrensbach. By now, the streets will already be thick with snow, and the people
will be taking shelter indoors at all times.”
“We spend our winters differently as well,”
Eckhart added. “Socializing thrives at the castle, but knights need to focus on
training and preparing for the Lord of Winter hunt. There is no Lord of Winter
in Ahrensbach, which alone makes a considerable difference.”
Those listening made intrigued noises. As
there was no Lord of Winter to hunt in Ahrensbach, the duchy’s knights did not
put special effort into their training.
“The most significant difference might be in
how we use our winter playroom,” Justus said. “I was surprised to see that
Ahrensbach seldom uses its own outside of when students are being moved to the
Royal Academy. In Ehrenfest, the adults tend to be busy over the winter, in
part due to the Lord of Winter hunt, so the children too young to attend the
Royal Academy spend all day in the winter playroom so as to stay out of their
way.”
Those in Ahrensbach had no need to socialize
intensely and gather information before the snow grew unreasonably heavy.
Adults in particular were afforded a lot more flexibility; nobles rarely spent
all day in the castle, and children accompanied their guardians while
socializing instead of spending that time in the winter playroom. Even the
archduke candidate Letizia, whom Ferdinand was working to educate, had
prioritized strengthening bonds with the others in her faction.
“I was also surprised to learn that winter
socializing is only done in the afternoon here. In Ehrenfest, to make the most
of the brief window we have to socialize, we come together and mingle from
morning to night.”
Ahrensbach nobles came together in the
afternoon, when it was warmer. During the winter, they tended to stay inside
until fourth bell and start their day after lunch—unless they were invited to
lunch, that was. In contrast, during the summer when the sun beat down
mercilessly, nobles barely went outside between third and fifth bell.
To accommodate the usual Ahrensbach schedule,
Ferdinand would spend his mornings doing handover work, then educate Letizia
and do the socializing expected of the next archduchess’s fiancé in the
afternoon.
“Still, this lifestyle offers much more leeway
than I expected,” Ferdinand said. “I wish to use this opportunity to ask for
your guidance.”
The late Aub Ahrensbach had already passed
away by the time Ferdinand arrived at his new home, so Ferdinand was worried
about a great many things. For now, however, it seemed that everything was
proceeding smoothly. The ever-annoying Detlinde had returned to the Royal
Academy shortly after his arrival, and Georgine was holed up in her villa, in
mourning for her late husband, so he had not seen her at all during
socializing. Furthermore, the scholars who had served the archduke were being
surprisingly cooperative with the handover of work. For now, at least, they
seemed to value and greatly respect Ferdinand as a hard worker and the fiancé
of their next archduchess. It was a source of great relief... but also somewhat
harrowing.
This could not be more different from what
happened in Ehrenfest after Father ended up succumbing to his illness.
“Might we ask what you mean by ‘this
opportunity’?”
“You are all scholars of Aub Ahrensbach, are
you not?” Ferdinand said. “I assume you will work beneath Lady Detlinde when
she returns from the Royal Academy and takes her place as the next
archduchess.”
In other words, Ferdinand could only focus on
handover work during the brief period when Detlinde was at the Royal Academy.
Rather than prioritizing a groom from another duchy, their focus needed to be
on educating Ahrensbach’s next archduchess.
The scholars exchanged glances, then all gave
troubled, telling smiles. “Lady Detlinde is not nearly educated enough for us
to work under her,” one said. “By the time she catches up, I expect Lady
Letizia will have come of age.”
“We might have thought otherwise if she at
least took the work seriously,” added another, “but, oh, how she hates
studying. Though she may only be a temporary archduchess, I would expect a bit
more... well...”
Although there was some criticism of the next
archduchess, it was immediately followed by more generous words of
understanding.
“She is underage. Plus, as the third child of
a third wife, she has not had the opportunity to receive a political education
before now. It would be cruel of us to demand too much from her.”
“Indeed, indeed. Not to mention, she will only
be holding the position of aub for a short while, until Lady Letizia comes of
age and marries Prince Hildebrand. We do not want her to become too attached.
Is her lack of interest not ideal for us?”
She may not be interested in politicking, but she
certainly has a lust for power...
Ferdinand dismissed the thought at once;
naturally, he could not criticize the woman he was to marry by royal decree
here in public. That said, his interactions with her during the few days
between his arrival in Ahrensbach and her departure for the Royal Academy had
been enough for him to confirm that she had a personality that was painful just
to think about.
And so, Ferdinand merely nodded along with the
scholars’ remarks, striving to understand their thought processes and
personalities as much as he could. It would be better not to speak; he was
still pretending to dote on Detlinde, and offering his own thoughts would only
result in him lambasting her with utter sincerity. The scholars were
criticizing their next archduchess with slight grins, but she was one of their
own; if someone from another duchy attempted to join in, then it was possible
that they might take offense.
“We are in no position to start being soft on
Lady Detlinde and treating her like a child. She may not have come of age yet,
but she will very soon, so that serves as no excuse. She will also be
participating in the next Archduke Conference as an aub.”
“Even if she is only holding the position
temporarily, being the aub is by no means easy. To be honest, I am truly
grateful that you are here, Lord Ferdinand; I do not know what we would do
without you.”
“And let us not forget how Lady Georgine has
abetted this. She did not resist being moved to her villa.”
From there, the focus of the scholars’
conversation quickly turned to Georgine. Ferdinand listened closely, comparing
their words to what he had learned through Justus.
“It was a surprise to all, especially after
she filled chalices with mana to get Old Werkestock on her side. I thought she
would cling more tightly to her newly obtained power.”
“As I understand it, Ehrenfest ceased offering
its support...”
“Was that not just Ehrenfest shifting its
support from Lady Georgine to Lord Ferdinand, though?” Justus remarked
casually. “Aub Ehrenfest is closer to Lord Ferdinand than he is to Lady
Georgine, after all.”
The scholars nodded, agreeing with his logic.
Ferdinand drew his brows together in the
slightest frown; Georgine had more influence with Old Werkestock and the
northern provinces bordering Ehrenfest than Sylvester and the others realized.
“Although we are both members of the same
archducal family, Lady Georgine and I have hardly seen one another. I thought
that we might socialize a bit more now that I am here, but I have not seen her
since our initial greetings...”
Georgine’s lack of presence was almost
disturbing considering that she was the late archduke’s first wife. She was
also very familiar with Justus, meaning that not even his disguises could get
him near her villa. Justus had even said that Georgine had once boasted about
being able to see through his cross-dressing.
Ferdinand continued to listen to every word
the scholars said about Georgine until there came a sudden knock on the door.
“Excuse me,” said the messenger responsible. “This arrived from Raimund in the
Royal Academy.”
Raimund was serving Ferdinand not just as his
disciple, but as his retainer in Ahrensbach as well—although they were more
like mentor and student than lord and retainer. He was lacking in mana and
spent all his time in Hirschur’s laboratory, trying to make magic tools as
efficient as possible.
Initially, Ferdinand had spoken to Raimund
simply because Rozemyne had taken a liking to the young student. He had then
accepted him as a disciple as a means of observing him while simultaneously
gathering information on Ahrensbach. By this point, however, Ferdinand found
reading his unique perspectives and answering his questions by letter a source
of great comfort.
Sergius accepted the box from the messenger
and then opened it. Inside was a sound-recording magic tool.
“Oho. Is that an improved version?” one
scholar asked.
“Its feystone seems to be exposed...” another
added.
“Ah, there is also a letter from Lady
Rozemyne. We’ll read this first, if you do not mind.”
“I do not mind in the least,” Ferdinand
replied, preparing himself as the scholars took and started going through the
letter. They were checking for anything dangerous while also looking for any
hidden messages or the like that they would need to censor.
That fool. What has she written this time?
In her previous report, Rozemyne had described
the state of Hirschur’s laboratory, inadvertently informing the scholars that
Ferdinand had been a burden on the professor during his time at the Royal
Academy and that he had become so absorbed in his research that he had
neglected to clean or eat properly. The scholars had laughed at Rozemyne
telling Ferdinand not to live so unhealthily in Ahrensbach, which had made him
want to tear up the letter on the spot. Unfortunately, the hidden report she
had written in shining ink was much too important, so he had needed to refrain.
One scholar read through the letter while the
others began checking for any patterns or phrasing that might have signified a
code. Of course, nothing they did made the shining ink appear. Ferdinand
checked Raimund’s magic tool once it was given to him while listening to the
contents of the letter be read aloud.
Ferdinand had tasked his disciple with making
a smaller and more mana-efficient sound-recording magic tool. The first
prototype had been small enough to rest on one’s palm—an improvement over the
standard model that required two hands—but Ferdinand had sent it back, saying
that it could be made even smaller by taking away the lid. Now the lid was
gone, exposing the feystone used to store the recording.
All in all, the magic tool was fairly well
made.
“‘Upon starting our joint research project
with Ahrensbach, Professor Hirschur told me that my strengths are my mana
capacity and my brewing skills,’” one of the scholars said, reading Rozemyne’s
letter aloud. “‘Thus, my role is to create prototypes based on the designs that
Raimund comes up with.’”
“Aah... I was wondering how he finished so
quickly, but I see that Rozemyne is the reason.”
Raimund was short on mana even for a mednoble,
so while he was quick to draw blueprints, his progress was slowed considerably
when it came to creating the prototypes. This one had arrived much sooner than
expected—evidently thanks to Rozemyne having brewed it. Raimund was helping to
realize the things she wanted, so there was nothing wrong with her helping him
during the creation process.
“‘The details are written in the report I sent
through Professor Fraularm.’ Hm? Have you received a report about the joint
research project from Ahrensbach’s dormitory supervisor?”
“Not to my knowledge.” Ferdinand turned to the
attendants behind him. “Sergius, Justus, have any retainers visited while I was
absent?”
“No, my lord,” Sergius replied. “A report from
a dormitory supervisor would not have been sent to your guest chambers in the
first place, so there would never have been a risk of it arriving while you
were absent for socializing or the like.”
That was the obvious answer; any letter sent
to Ferdinand would first need to be inspected by the relevant personnel in
Ahrensbach. It was unthinkable that he could have received a report without the
scholars here knowing.
“Hm. Then we will need to question the
dormitory supervisor,” a scholar said. “We do not want the joint research to be
delayed, nor do we wish to trouble Ehrenfest.”
“Understood.”
After that section of the report, which had
more or less called out Fraularm, came the topic of a tea party for bookworms
hosted by the royal family. Rozemyne had eagerly gone along with the idea
despite it meaning she would need to socialize with the very people she had
continuously been told to avoid. One could easily imagine her restraint going
straight out the window the moment books and libraries were put before her.
“Still, to think Lady Rozemyne was invited to
such a tea party...” one scholar said with a sigh. “If only Lady Detlinde were
to socialize with royalty a bit more.”
Some bemoaned the fact that an Ahrensbach
archduke candidate had not received an invitation but an archduke candidate
from the lower-ranked Ehrenfest had, while others were more interested in the
sweets that were described as having been served.
“So... Dunkelfelger produced new sweets with
the recipe it obtained, hm?”
“We purchased the same recipe during the
Archduke Conference, so perhaps we could try making something with our
specialty fruit as well. Lord Ferdinand, would you happen to have an eye for
what would suit pound cake?”
“Well... as mentioned in Rozemyne’s letter, I
have little interest in food,” Ferdinand replied. “You would be much better off
entrusting this question to a chef who is familiar with Ahrensbach fruits.”
They were asking him to make new sweets, but
Ferdinand had no motivation for that.
Rozemyne made new sweets and combined unique
flavors because she had an unusual attachment to food—an attachment that
Ferdinand did not share. He suddenly recalled that she had once said to him,
“If you want to eat tasty food, then train your own chef.” If she were here
now, perhaps she would be adapting Ahrensbach’s highly spicy dishes to suit her
own tastes.
“‘I borrowed books from the Sovereignty and
the palace library,’” the scholar reading out Rozemyne’s letter continued.
“‘The one that Professor Solange lent me was from a closed-stack archive and
contains research about Schwartz and Weiss. I will inform you if we make any
new discoveries.’”
“I see. To think she would be allowed to
borrow a book from a closed-stack archive...” another scholar muttered. “I
suppose it should come as no surprise given that she is both a disciple of Lord
Ferdinand and a regular visitor of the Hirschur Laboratory.”
The scholars continued to praise Rozemyne for
a reason that Ferdinand would never have expected. According to their
explanation, the valuable contents of the closed-stack archives were only lent
to those whom the librarians considered particularly intelligent; everyone else
would simply be told that it was too soon for them to read such things.
Ferdinand had not known this, since his requests for such books had never been
refused.
However, times have changed.
Now, there were drastically fewer librarians
at the Royal Academy, and numerous magic tools in the library were no longer
being supplied with mana. In its current state, the library was unable to
perform the duties for which it had originally been constructed; the place was
more akin to a glorified study station. There was a chance that the library
would improve somewhat with the arrival of the new archlibrarian, but it would
still be a far cry from its former glory. The scholars here likely did not know
how dramatically things had changed—that, or they merely could not understand
it.
“‘This time, I managed to endure the whole
thing without collapsing. I’ve grown so much, wouldn’t you say? It’s all thanks
to the potions you made for me, Ferdinand.’ And... that is the end of this
letter.”
Having failed to find anything unusual, the
scholar attempted to pass the letter to Ferdinand. However, Ferdinand waved
away the correspondence and said, “I am short on time. There is nothing that I
must urgently reread, and my reply can come later. Sergius, store the letter in
my chambers with my letter from Raimund and the magic tool. For now, let us
resume our duties. Justus, take this tea away.”
After announcing the end of their break,
Ferdinand picked up a pen and returned to his paperwork.
That night, in his chambers, Ferdinand started
on his response to Rozemyne. He had yet to read the hidden message that her
letter doubtless contained—there were too many retainers nearby for that—so he
focused solely on his public-facing reply. Only after seventh bell, when most
of his retainers had gone, would Ferdinand take out the shining ink. He would
wait until Eckhart was on night watch, but even then his time would be limited;
the knight was particularly concerned about his lord’s well-being and would
swiftly call on him.
Ferdinand skimmed the letter and then put his
head in his hands. How does she keep getting involved with
royalty like this?
First, Eglantine and Prince Anastasius had
deduced that Rozemyne had been the one to bless them during their
graduation—and to avoid further unrest, they had asked her to serve as the High
Bishop and bless Prince Sigiswald for his Starbind Ceremony. The request had
not come at unreasonably short notice, and there were various factions
involved, so neither Rozemyne nor Ehrenfest were in any position to refuse.
At the same time, however, the Sovereign
temple was involved, and the ceremony being held during the Archduke Conference
would draw the attention of every aub from every duchy, alongside that of
various other key nobles. Not to mention, Rozemyne had personally confessed
that one of her reasons for accepting was so that she could be present when
Ferdinand and Detlinde had their own Starbinding.
Please, stop. You will only end up blessing me
more than you do the prince.
Ferdinand was certain of that outcome.
Rozemyne had already said that he was like family to her, and it was simple to
predict what trouble an emotion-driven blessing would create. Some of those who
had seen Eglantine receive her blessing had started to argue that she should
take the throne, so imagine this scenario: Ferdinand, after being accused of
vying for the throne as a seed of Adalgisa and moving to Ahrensbach to indicate
his loyalty, receives more blessings from the gods than anyone else. It was not
a pleasant thought, by any means.
At the very least, she will want Hartmut with
her...
Hartmut had the sharpest eyes and the keenest
mind out of all Rozemyne’s retainers. With his assistance as the High Priest,
Rozemyne would presumably find things much easier to deal with.
Next, there was the matter of the
triple-locked archive’s keys. Ferdinand had given Rozemyne free rein with her
Library Committee business under the assumption that her work would consist
only of regularly visiting the library and supplying its magic tools with mana.
Having her take ownership of one of the keys was far from good.
After all, that underground archive contains so
much information leading to the Grutrissheit.
Ferdinand rubbed his temples, recalling the
text and the magic circle that had arisen from the High Bishop’s bible. He had
never been the High Bishop himself, so it had not even occurred to him that
such a development might occur. Rozemyne was surely closer to the Grutrissheit
than anyone in the royal family, and if she were to enter the underground
archive, then Ferdinand was quite confident that her book-oriented curiosity
would result in her obtaining it.
But how can I prevent her from going near the
archive?
As he pondered this, his eyes fell on one line
in particular: “Once the librarian has inspected the inside, I’m allowed to
read whatever books it contains.” He frowned. There were severe restrictions on
who could enter that archive. It was managed almost entirely by magic tools,
with the librarians merely safeguarding the keys.
It would not be strange for Professor Solange and
the new librarian to be unfamiliar with this rule, as the former has never been
able to go inside. But how is the royal family still in the dark? They should
be visiting the archive more than anyone.
Ferdinand had thought that maybe the royal
family was deliberately keeping this knowledge to themselves due to the purge,
but in reality, they had simply lost the knowledge altogether. The royal family
only had themselves to blame, but not even that explained the extent of their
ignorance on the subject. It seemed more likely that someone in the royal
palace was restricting the flow of information or concealing documents.
But should I say that?
Ferdinand was in Ahrensbach precisely because
he was suspected of wanting the Grutrissheit; he did not want to invite any
more suspicion, nor did he want to get involved with royalty. Unfortunately,
that no longer mattered. Rozemyne had gotten involved with the royal family and
the underground archive against his will; if anyone came to realize that he was
hiding information, then he would only be placed under further scrutiny.
“Although I may not have the Grutrissheit, it is
the Zent’s duty to maintain peace, no matter how ephemeral it so often proves
to be,” the
king had said at their meeting.
Ferdinand was a seed of Adalgisa, and
Ehrenfest had not assisted the king during the civil war. These two facts alone
had aroused suspicion that they were seeking to claim the throne, and
Trauerqual expressed that he could not ignore the risk of Yurgenschmidt once
again being ravaged by war. Ferdinand could not fault the man for his
decision—after all, it was the same conclusion any good king would make.
By indirectly informing the royal family of what
awaits them in the underground archive, I should be able to keep Rozemyne away
from it.
He could send information about the
underground archive to Rozemyne, which would reveal to the royal family that
she was providing him with intelligence—and as Rozemyne was an archduke
candidate of a duchy already suspected of treason, the royal family would
immediately start treating her with more caution. She would be forbidden from
entering the library and most likely removed from her position as owner of one
of the three keys. They had gone as far as to send Ferdinand to Ahrensbach, so
they would absolutely refuse to let Rozemyne anywhere near the archive.
And that is what matters.
To Ferdinand, keeping Rozemyne away from the
underground archive was more important than anything else. That was why he was
even willing to exploit the royal family to make it happen. The words and the
magic circle that had arisen from the High Bishop’s bible—one look at them was
all anyone would need to conclude that Rozemyne was unconsciously drawing
closer to the Grutrissheit.
I do not know how much she will be able to resist
when put before a document-filled archive, but I will emphasize my warning
nonetheless.
“If the royal family does not already know
about this, then they must be made aware. You are not to approach the archive
yourself, however. That will only cause problems.”
After finishing his response, Ferdinand let
out a heavy sigh.
Just... let this strange cooperation end there.
Please.
He was asking both Rozemyne and the royal
family.
The Royal Family and the Library
As I was waiting for the royal family to
summon me again, I decided to be proactive. First, I created a questionnaire
for the Dunkelfelger apprentice knights helping with our joint research. My
scholars made all the necessary copies and prepared the answer sheets for me,
and through this process they learned the general format of a questionnaire and
how to make their own.
Moving on, I purchased the schematics of the
improved magic tool from Raimund, since it had received a passing grade from
Ferdinand. I could use these to make one of my own. The tool itself was compact
enough to be held in a single hand, and while the standard version played its
recording when the lid was opened, this one simply required the recipient to
touch the exposed feystone. Not to mention, it could record several messages
instead of just one.
“However, the more messages you want to
record, the stronger a feystone of Wind, Earth, and Life you will need,”
Raimund noted.
“That won’t be a problem.”
The earth at Ehrenfest’s gathering spot was
rich with mana, perhaps because of how frequently I was regenerating it. Plus,
according to the apprentice knights’ reports, the increased quality of our
ingredients meant that the feybeasts coming for them were growing stronger as
well. At the moment, the knights were hunting there daily as training for their
upcoming ditter game against Dunkelfelger, forced upon us by our joint research
project. I needed only to buy the feystones I required from them.
“Ngh... I wish I
could buy feystones that easily...” Raimund groaned.
“You will be able to soon. If others want the
magic tool detailed in these schematics, then I will pay you an information
fee.”
Raimund received my explanation of royalties
with a look of absolute confusion. “Huh? But you’ve already bought the
schematics, Lady Rozemyne. What’s all this about?”
“Schematics such as these that are bound to
see such wide and extensive use are worth the extra cost, are they not? If we
do not foster good relationships with our researchers and compensate them well,
then I do not believe they will stay motivated.”
“Your idea is very wonderful indeed, Lady
Rozemyne,” Raimund said, his eyes sparkling. Hirschur looked just as amazed. It
seemed that they were only used to one-and-done sales.
I promptly started making my own
sound-recording magic tool, listening carefully to Raimund as he talked me
through the process. After dumping in some feystones, I was finally done.
“Could we perhaps put this in a stuffed toy
that speaks when one touches the head or stomach?” I asked.
“If you keep the feystone exposed, yes, but
what would be the point of that?” Raimund replied, tilting his head at me.
Beside him, Lieseleta leaned forward, her deep-green eyes sparkling with
enthusiasm.
“A stuffed toy that would speak upon being
stroked would be wonderfully cute, would it not?” she said. “Just imagine it.”
“I know, right?” I replied. “Thus, in keeping
with my tradition, I shall make it a red pan—”
“It has to be a shumil, yes. That will
certainly be the cutest,” Lieseleta interjected, giddy with excitement. She
then fixed me with an unyielding stare. “Do allow me to assist with making the
stuffed toy.”
Unfortunately, I was far from being a talented
seamstress, so I swallowed my suggestion that we should make the stuffed toy a
red panda and went with a shumil instead.
Red pandas are cute, but there’s no helping this.
It’s hard to make things like that on your own.
Days passed, and we soon reached the date of
our meeting with royalty. This was a summons rather than a tea party, so I only
had to prepare enough sweets to present as a gift. Our load was light, but my
heart was heavy.
“I did not think I would end up returning to
their villa so soon...” I said.
Brunhilde gave a troubled smile. “You are the
one who decided to inform them of what could have been kept private, Lady
Rozemyne.”
“There was a report of Aub Ehrenfest agonizing
over this as well,” Rihyarda added, looking equally strained. “However, if this
information will aid the royal family even the slightest amount, then it would
not be wise to keep it from them. Milady, I am of the opinion that your
decision was just and ideal.”
My retainers had heard of the royal family’s
struggles from Anastasius before the tea party for bookworms. They were very
sympathetic to the current king, who was running himself ragged trying to
supply mana to the foundation despite having never been raised or educated for
his position. Apparently, they saw his situation as similar to my own,
comparing his ordeal to my grueling work supplying mana to Ehrenfest as the
archduke’s adopted daughter and the High Bishop despite having been raised in
the temple and not receiving a noble’s education.
Though I doubt I’m struggling even half as much
as King Trauerqual.
Unlike the royal family, who didn’t know what
to do after losing such crucial information, I was receiving the expert
guidance of so many people. I was truly blessed to have them.
“This may be a summons from royalty, but at
least it’s with Prince Anastasius,” I said. He had graciously forgiven me for
all my previous blunders, whether it was reading too deeply into his intentions
with Eglantine or collapsing in his presence. Knowing that he wouldn’t suspect
me of treason or planned usurpation when I told him what I knew made this a lot
more comforting than if another member of the royal family had summoned me.
“Do not let your guard down, milady,” Rihyarda
chided just as we arrived outside the door to the villa. Oswin was there to
welcome us inside.
“We have been waiting, Lady Rozemyne of
Ehrenfest.”
We were taken to a room where three people
were sitting in wait. Among them were Hildebrand, who met me with a smile, and
Anastasius, who quietly muttered, “She’s here.”
Between them was someone I didn’t recognize: a
man with light-golden hair like Anastasius, and deep-green eyes complementing a
peaceful smile. The clothes he was wearing and his position between the two
princes immediately told me who he was.
AIEEEEEE! It’s the first prince! Come on, Prince
Anastasius! You should have warned me that he was going to be here!
I definitely hadn’t expected Sigiswald to be
present. I shouted complaints on the inside, but this was a summons, not a tea
party; there was no reason why Anastasius would have informed me who was
participating.
I smiled and greeted both Anastasius and
Hildebrand, resisting the urge to crumble to the ground in despair, then knelt
before Sigiswald and lowered my head. “It is an honor to meet you, Prince
Sigiswald. May I pray for a blessing in appreciation of this serendipitous
meeting, ordained by the harsh judgment of Ewigeliebe the God of Life?”
“You may.”
“I am Rozemyne, an archduke candidate of
Ehrenfest. May the threads joining us never be broken.”
I granted Sigiswald a blessing, taking care
not to go too far, then acquired his permission to stand. Even though he was
seated, I still had to look up to meet his gaze. He seemed to be a very calm,
serene individual—a complete contrast to Anastasius. There was a diligent air
to him, and I could tell that he was the kind of person who paid attention to
matters both big and small, making him feel very much
like a well-raised first son. He hardly came across as someone who would have
fought Anastasius over Eglantine for the throne. Maybe it had just been their
retainers doing the fighting.
Sigiswald looked me in the eye, maintaining
his pleasant smile. “So you are this Rozemyne I have heard so much about. The
Saint of Ehrenfest, wise enough to have come first-in-class two years in a row,
but of such poor health that you missed the awards ceremony on both
occasions... I have long wanted to meet you.”
“I was looking forward to both ceremonies and
deeply regret that I was unable to attend them. Many have described it to me as
an honorable occasion where one receives direct praise from the king.” I was
trying to make it clear that my absence hadn’t been deliberate, and I adopted
Angelica’s signature look of disappointment in an attempt to really sell it. No
way could I admit that I had skipped my first ceremony after Ferdinand baited
me with reading time.
“If you do not mind, I would like you to take
a seat and tell us what you know about the library’s archive,” Sigiswald said.
“We of the royal family truly do require even the faintest of slivers of
information you may have.”
I glanced at Anastasius and Hildebrand. They
were both looking my way with interest, but Sigiswald was watching me a lot
more closely. He maintained a peaceful smile, but I could feel the quiet
intensity of his gaze.
“Answer our questions honestly,” the first
prince continued. “The archive locked by three keys can only be entered by
members of the royal family, a selection of archduke candidates, and the
library’s magic tools. Furthermore, it contains documents that we of the royal
family need to read. Is this correct?”
“I cannot say for certain,” I replied,
speaking honestly. No sooner had the words left my lips than I noticed
Anastasius plant a palm on his forehead.
“Rozemyne, whatever do you mean by that?”
Sigiswald asked, blinking at me.
“I informed Ehrenfest of my taking ownership
of one of the archive’s keys and reported my delight at having the opportunity
to read any documents confirmed safe for me to view. But the response I
received was that this made no sense. I do not know much else, so I cannot
verify anything without actually entering the archive.”
“I see.”
Anastasius sighed and said, “You remain too
honest for your own good.” Evidently, I should have sugarcoated my response a
little better.
But, I mean... they literally told me to be
honest.
“Still, this is rather strange,” Sigiswald
said.
“What do you mean?”
“Why is Ehrenfest the only duchy that knows of
this archive requiring three keys? Not even the greater duchies or the
Sovereignty itself were aware of it.”
I couldn’t help but cock my head at him.
Surely there was someone who knew. A member of the
royal family who had survived the purge, for example.
“Did the last professor who was teaching the
archduke candidate course not know?” I asked.
“Her husband seems to have visited the library
at a young age, but no, she did not. We consulted Aubs Klassenberg and
Dunkelfelger as well, but neither has ever stepped foot in the Royal Academy’s
library.”
I already knew why archduke candidates didn’t
go to the library—they would need to bring their train of retainers and would
end up monopolizing the carrels, which would inconvenience everyone else. In
general, the Royal Academy’s library was considered a place for laynobles and
mednobles, where they could study books they could not afford to buy or make
money by transcribing them. It was for these reasons that my retainers often
advised me against going to the library, but I truly loved reading there, so I had
no intention of stopping. I was only avoiding it this year because I was busy
with all of our research, and the handover process for Schwartz and Weiss was
progressing slowly.
“Normal archduke candidates have their
apprentice scholars fetch whatever books or documents they want, so they have
few reasons to visit the library themselves—or so I am told. Perhaps that is to
blame.”
“Are the archduke candidates of your duchy
told to visit the library personally?” Sigiswald asked, sounding ever so
slightly amused.
Realizing that I had just insinuated that
Ehrenfest archduke candidates were abnormal, I averted my eyes. “I go there
readily because of how much I adore libraries and books. My siblings, Wilfried
and Charlotte, rarely ever go themselves.”
“She’s telling the truth,” Hildebrand said.
“Rozemyne just loves books, that’s all. And she was going to the library so
often to supply Schwartz and Weiss with mana.” His explanation didn’t seem to
stop Sigiswald from viewing me as a weird archduke candidate, but I was
grateful that he had tried and gave him an appreciative nod.
“There is an Ehrenfest professor who has
dedicated her life to research, and one of her past disciples was an archduke
candidate whom she often sent to the library on her behalf,” I explained. “It
did not help that this particular archduke candidate had few retainers whom he
could trust and therefore could not risk letting anyone else handle the books
he needed.”
The three princes all responded with
exceedingly uncomfortable expressions; maybe I had said too much.
“As far as I am aware, it was a simple
coincidence that he learned of this archive,” I continued. “He muttered
something about wanting certain documents, so Schwartz and Weiss took him there
to read them. The archlibrarians unlocked the archive for him without any fuss,
so perhaps it was not a particularly secretive location at the time.”
We had no way to confirm this—the
archlibrarians from back then were no longer with us—but if the archive really
had been a royal secret, then surely Ferdinand would not have been allowed
inside.
“I visited the Royal Academy’s library often
and regularly interacted with Schwartz and Weiss as their master, but I was
still unaware of the archive,” I said. “He must have been seeking very
specialized documents.”
I had asked Schwartz and Weiss for books that
I hadn’t read before but not for any specific kinds of documents. Thus, the
books in the reading room were always enough to satisfy me.
“It is possible that Schwartz and Weiss would
take me there after I exhaust every book in the reading room and then in the
closed-stack archive that anyone can borrow from,” I noted. “But considering
how little time remains before my graduation, I cannot see myself ever
accomplishing that.”
I had deliberately refrained from saying who
had given me all this information, but, as expected, Sigiswald and Anastasius
had still deduced his identity.
Sigiswald continued to smile, but there was
now a glint in his dark-green eyes. “Why did this individual keep such vital
information to himself for so long?”
“He did not know that the royal family was
unaware of this archive. Upon learning this, he told me to tell you, which is
why I sent that ordonnanz. In fact, he also said that the royal family’s lack
of knowledge on these subjects is so unnatural that he suspects someone has
deliberately been hiding things from you.”
Ferdinand naturally understood that what I was
saying would make me seem suspicious, but the information was important enough
that he had determined it best for me to proceed anyway. In my opinion, it
would be far more constructive if we dropped this conversation entirely and
they went to the library to do some research themselves.
“There is something I wish to ask of the royal
family,” I said. “May I?”
“Hold on,” Anastasius said, trying to stop me,
but before he could protest any further—
“Go ahead,” Sigiswald interjected, nodding at
me.
I smiled at him and then said, “You went out
of your way to summon me here today, but what exactly do you hope to learn? Is
it who told me this information? Or the contents of the documents that he said
the royal family should know, perhaps? As I have not entered the archive
myself, I will not be at all useful regarding the latter.”
A stir ran through our retainers. Anastasius
said, “You speak above your place” while Sigiswald merely stared at me.
Regardless, this discussion was clearly a waste of time.
“The diary of a past librarian that Solange
allowed me to borrow said that members of the royal family visited the library
upon coming of age and that all the archlibrarians gathered to welcome them. It
seems plain to see that going to the library was once an important process for
the royal family. That said, the Sovereign knight commander confiscated that
diary some time ago, so I would assume you have all read it and already
understand the importance of the archive.”
In essence, I was trying to say: “If you have
the time to ask me where I got my information from, then you might as well just
go to the library yourselves.” This message seemed to have been heard loud and
clear, as Sigiswald exchanged a look with Anastasius, then nodded.
“If all of the archlibrarians gathered to
welcome them, then it really is likely that they were going to the archive of
which we speak. If we go ourselves, then we will know whether the information
within truly is valuable. Anastasius.”
“Right. I shall summon the Dunkelfelger
archduke candidate to the library,” Anastasius said. He instructed Oswin to
send an ordonnanz to Hannelore, but I quickly called out before Oswin could.
“Oswin, please ask Lady Hannelore to bring rejuvenation
potions.”
“Rejuvenation potions?” he repeated.
I nodded. “I am told that registering with the
keys requires a significant amount of mana. Better safe than sorry, no?”
“I do recall Hortensia saying something along
those lines,” Anastasius said. “Oswin, do as she suggests.”
Oswin sent the ordonnanz, and a response from
Hannelore came soon after: “Understood. I will make my way to the library now.”
She was informed that the princes were going to be present, then we began our
trek to meet her.
We stood out so, so much on our way to the
library that I wanted to flee, but as the soon-to-be owner of a special key,
that was hardly an option. Thankfully, we weren’t all walking together for
long; the adult princes quickly marched ahead, moving much faster than my short
legs would allow. I gave a relieved sigh as they gradually got farther away,
and it was then that Hildebrand called out to me. Unlike his half-brothers, he
was deliberately matching my pace.
“Do you know what’s in the archive, Rozemyne?”
he asked.
“I am told that it contains documents about
the archduke candidate course and old rituals, including one particular ritual
that Ehrenfest was investigating. Our aub visited the library during the
Archduke Conference, intending to see them, but Schwartz and Weiss said that he
could not enter due to nobody having the keys.” I was hoping to make the royal
family understand the importance of the library and perhaps even convince them
to send over a few more archlibrarians.
Hildebrand clapped his hands together and
smiled, looking as though he had just come up with a brilliant idea. “In that
case, we can use this opportunity to look through the documents together.”
“Th-That is a very attractive offer, but my
guardian has forbidden me from entering the archive so that I do not cause any
further problems.” I didn’t want to make Ehrenfest seem any more suspicious,
and avoiding the archive entirely was the best way to prevent any blessing
explosions from occurring when I entered.
I understand that from a rational perspective,
but... I’m still dying to go inside!
The desire was so strong. I wanted to read
everything in there. Rihyarda likely wouldn’t let me, though, and Ferdinand
would be mad beyond words.
When we arrived at the library, Schwartz and
Weiss came over and greeted us.
“Rozemyne here.”
“Hildebrand too.”
To my knowledge, this was the first time they
had called me by my name. It wasn’t unexpected, but it did feel very strange.
To be honest, I was a little upset that I wasn’t their “milady” anymore.
“Thank you for coming. We have already cleared
the library,” Hortensia said. Naturally, she and Solange had been informed that
we were coming. I silently extended my sympathies to all the students who had
been dragged away from their studies, but that was far better than them being
dragged into any trouble with the royal family.
While we were exchanging greetings with the
librarians, Hannelore arrived. Her red eyes widened in shock when she saw not
just one but three princes.
As if getting summoned by Prince Anastasius
wasn’t bad enough... I know how you feel, Hannelore; I really do. I was
surprised too.
Hannelore went on to exchange first-time
greetings with Sigiswald, after which he said, “I apologize for the abrupt
summons, but I must ask that you assist us as a member of the Library
Committee.”
“I will gladly provide as much assistance as
is required,” she replied with a smile, not faltering even in the face of such
a sudden request from a member of the royal family.
As expected of an archduke candidate from a
greater duchy. I could learn a lot from her.
“The keys are in this office,” Hortensia said
as she guided us there. “However, there is not enough room for everyone to
enter. We must ask that you each bring only two guard knights and one scholar.”
We had three princes and two archduke
candidates in our group; it made sense that we wouldn’t be able to bring all of
our retainers into the office. I chose Leonore, my archknight; Laurenz, since
he was the best close-quarters fighter out of all the guard knights with me;
and Philine, who was most accustomed to scholar work.
“These are the keys to the underground
archive,” Hortensia said once we were inside, setting each one on the table
with a loud clatter. She had found them in the archlibrarians’ rooms in the
library dormitory, and they needed to be registered with different people.
“Lady Rozemyne, Lady Hannelore, please take a key each and start channeling
mana into them.”
Hannelore and I did as instructed, gripping
the keys and registering our mana with them. It wasn’t unlike registering my
mana to the key for the bible, so I finished in no time at all.
“That was rather quick,” Hortensia remarked,
staring at me in surprise.
I smiled and said, “Why, thank you.” Hannelore
similarly finished channeling mana into her key a few moments later.
“Once again, I am reminded of the gap between
archduke candidates and archnobles...”
“Hortensia, they are both superb archduke
candidates. You must not compare yourself to them,” Solange interjected, trying
to console her. She then took out two keys from a storage box and explained
that they were for opening the closed-stack archive and the door located
within. “I never thought the day would come when I would welcome the royal
family and use these keys...”
According to Solange, the archlibrarians had
handled everything whenever the royal family came to the library. She had
stayed in the shadows, directing attendants to make tea, prepare meals, and
carry out other tasks of that nature.
With the keys in hand, we made our way to the
reading room, where we reunited with our retainers who had been waiting
outside. We then cut through the first floor of the library, our numbers having
swelled in size once again.
“The book I lent Lady Rozemyne during our tea
party for bookworms came from this very closed-stack archive,” Solange said
with a nostalgic smile while opening a door at the very back of the reading
room. This was going to be my first time going inside, and my heart raced at
the very thought. The slightly dusty air mixed with the scent of parchment was
heavenly.
Once everyone was in the not-so-large archive,
Solange opened another door farther into the room. Lights instantly turned on
behind it, and a staircase descending down into the basement came into view. It
seemed rather bright, maybe because everything was white.
“Schwartz. Weiss. Please guide everyone,”
Solange said.
“Guide everyone.”
“Important work.”
Schwartz and Weiss began to hop down the
stairs.
“Hortensia, please enter next. As a mednoble,
I can go no farther. Direct any further questions you may have to Schwartz and
Weiss.”
Hortensia descended the stairs as requested,
and the princes followed after her. Just like Solange, some of our retainers
were also unable to continue onward. Several of the princes’ mednoble retainers
similarly ended up hitting an invisible barrier that blocked their path.
“Those of you who cannot descend, await our
return in the reading room,” Sigiswald instructed.
Once the three princes and their retainers
were on their way down, Hannelore followed. I was last, as per the duchy
rankings, and not all of my retainers were able to come with me—Philine and
Roderick were blocked, for instance. By the time we reached the stairs, only
Rihyarda, Leonore, and Brunhilde remained; I had considerably fewer archnoble
retainers than Hannelore and the royal family.
“You certainly have many mednobles in your
retinue, Lady Rozemyne,” Hannelore said, turning to look at me as we continued
down the stairs.
“I have two siblings already attending the
Royal Academy, and a younger brother who is soon to join us. We are having to
battle for retainers at the moment.”
“I suppose that is common for duchies with so
many archduke candidates present at once.”
“Indeed. It has not been a problem for the
most part, but I see now that there are times when only archnobles can
accompany me,” I said, making a troubled expression. “This is all very new...”
Hannelore smiled and noted that this was her
first time experiencing it as well.
We descended the faintly illuminated,
pure-white stairway until we arrived at an equally pure-white reception hall,
large enough that it could have accommodated all of our retainers at once. The
interior was furnished with several tables and chairs, as though we were about
to have a tea party, but the walls were bare, and there were no carpets or
other such decorations that one would expect to see in a duchy’s tea party
room. The floor was simply white.
I looked around the pure-white space and
noticed that one wall was actually a more metallic color. On it were three
equidistant protrusions, each decorated ornately as if to emphasize its
presence.
“Three, line up.”
“Open lock.”
Schwartz and Weiss patted the metallic wall
and pointed at the decorated protrusions; it seemed that the wall was actually
the door to the archive, and the decorative protrusions were the keyholes. A
closer look revealed that, rather than inserting the bit of the key as with a
standard door, the entire key needed to be pushed into a mold.
I exchanged nods with Hortensia and Hannelore,
then we pushed our keys into their respective slots.
“Hold the keys,” Schwartz said.
We did as instructed, making sure our keys
didn’t fall out. As soon as all three were in place, there was a clicking
sound, and the feystones with which we had registered began sucking out our
mana. They flashed, then red veins started running across the wall.
“Get away,” Weiss said.
I slowly retreated until I could see the
entire wall. It was covered in magic circles with complex patterns. Once the
magic circles were complete, the wall split into three sections which began to
turn with a loud creaking sound. These “doors” slowly moved one hundred eighty
degrees—and once they seemed to connect again, they disappeared.
Behind them was a place that did indeed look
like an archive. There were book stands, writing desks, and many bookcases. One
would expect the shelves to be packed with wooden boards, but they were instead
lined with white slates. There were only twenty volumes of what appeared to be
books resting on the desks.
As everyone stared ahead in surprise, Schwartz
said, “Opened” and went inside.
Hortensia tried to follow, but she was halted
by an invisible force just like the one at the stairway. “I cannot go inside
after all...” she said, stopping in place and pushing against the barrier.
Weiss looked up at her and plainly said,
“Milady not qualified.”
“I wish to see if archduke candidates can
enter,” Anastasius said. “Rozemyne, go inside.”
“It pains me to say this, but my guardians
forbade me from going into the archive,” I replied, holding back the urge to
cry. “If you find anything that I am allowed to read, then please bring it out
here for me.”
Weiss shook his head. “No lending here.”
“Whaaat?! That can’t be...”
I thought I would get to read at my leisure! So
mean!
I was not the only one horrified to hear that
the books couldn’t be lent out; Hortensia was practically trembling with a hand
over her mouth in shock.
At this moment, Professor Hortensia and I are
one.
Upon seeing Hortensia and me slump our
shoulders, Anastasius gave an exasperated sigh and turned to the other archduke
candidate present. “Very well, then. Hannelore, go inside.”
“Understood,” Hannelore replied, albeit after
a short pause. She took a deep breath, steeled her resolve, and slowly walked
forward with a hand gingerly extended.
She entered the archive without incident.
Schwartz said something to Hannelore once she
was inside, and I could see her tilt her head in response. The barrier must
have also blocked sound, as we couldn’t actually hear them.
“It seems archduke candidates can enter after
all,” Anastasius mused. “Well then, Brother... I will go in first.”
After checking for danger, Anastasius turned
back to the entrance and nodded. Sigiswald joined him not long after, but their
retainers collectively failed to enter.
“Me next, then,” Hildebrand said with a bright
smile, moving to follow them. But as he tried to step forward, an invisible
force stopped him. He inhaled sharply and started pounding on the barrier. “Why
won’t it let me through?! Why only me?! Is it because I’m engaged to an
Ahrensbach archduke candidate and won’t be royalty forever?!” he cried, on the
verge of tears.
Weiss shook his head. “No, Hildebrand. Not
enough mana.”
Hildebrand wasn’t the only one to harden in
response to this news; his present retainers exchanged glances, unsure of what
to say to him.
I made my way over to the youngest prince.
Sure, Weiss had said that he didn’t have enough mana to enter the archive, but
that was nothing to be upset about. “It is written that those of the royal
family who came to this archive did so after coming of age. There is no helping
that you would not have enough mana when you have not even entered the Royal
Academy. You have not learned to compress your mana, you have not been granted
the divine protections of the gods, and you have not even obtained your schtappe.”
“Rozemyne...”
“You have yet to finish your growth period,
that is all. Now, why not wait with me?” I gestured to the chairs around one of
the tables.
Hildebrand scanned the room, looking at the
tables and chairs before the invisible wall. “You’re going to be waiting here,
Rozemyne?”
“As much as I would enjoy entering the
archive, Aub Ehrenfest has forbidden me from doing so... Still, we can see
inside from here, can we not? I imagine this is where retainers would normally
observe their lord or lady to ensure they are not in danger. I intend to have
some tea and wait to hear whether any important documents truly are located
inside.”
“I will join you, then,” Hildebrand said
contently, making his way over to one of the chairs. His head attendant,
Arthur, sighed in relief, then gave me an appreciative smile.
“Brunhilde, please consult Professor Solange
about preparing tea,” I said.
“Understood,” she replied, then gracefully
turned on her heel and started up the stairs. Upon seeing this, the other
retainers started making preparations of their own.
“Prince Hildebrand, I similarly wish to
prepare tea for you,” Arthur said. “May I?”
“Please do.”
Brunhilde returned with only a portion of what
she needed for my tea. “I returned to the dormitory with Lieseleta, but this is
all that I can carry on my own,” she said with a troubled smile.
“In that case, take a moment to breathe,”
Rihyarda said, then went back upstairs to fetch the rest.
I nodded in agreement. “You may rest over
there once the tea has been poured.”
“Oh, no, Lady Rozemyne; I mustn’t let you out
of my sight. You might charge toward the archive at any moment,” Brunhilde
giggled.
Leonore noted that she shared this concern.
Apparently, they couldn’t trust me when I was watching the archive so closely
and practically buzzing with anticipation.
But, I mean, there’s an archive filled with books
and documents I’ve never seen before literally RIGHT there! Of course I’m going
to fidget! Basically anyone in my position would have a hard time keeping
still.
Since the door could only be opened with all
three keys, it was impossible to say when another opportunity like this would
arise, if at all. Of course I was struggling to hold in my urge to read.
Hildebrand sipped his tea, sighed, and then
looked at his hands. “What can I do to raise my mana capacity?” he muttered,
pursing his lips.
“Mana compression isn’t taught until the Royal
Academy, so there is no need for you to fret about this now,” I said. “Your
capacity will swell once you find a technique that suits you. Plus, the royal
family must have an effective method researched by generations of kings,
surely.”
It was apparently normal for mana compression
methods to be treated as secrets kept to oneself or one’s house. I was sure
that the royal family had their own. It also seemed wise for me to avoid giving
Hildebrand any tips, as I could guess that he would rush to try any method that
I told him about. For that reason, I settled on a vague reply and turned my
attention back to the archive.
Hannelore and the others must have been trying
to get a general idea of everything in the archive; they had split up and were
taking out the white, slate-looking documents, skimming them, then putting them
back where they had found them. Hannelore shook her head, and the two princes
were frowning. Then, Anastasius looked at a big open book on a stand and called
Sigiswald over.
God, I wish that were me... It looks so fun in
there.
I continued watching while munching on the
sweets that Rihyarda had brought us. Soon enough, Hannelore and the two princes
exited the archive while discussing something.
“Um, Lady Rozemyne... could you please join us
inside for a moment?” Hannelore asked. “There are so many ancient documents,
and we are struggling to tell what they are about. Given that you can read
Dunkelfelger’s history book, I imagine you are very familiar with ancient
language, are you not?”
“Rozemyne,” Sigiswald added, “although it
pains me deeply to have you break a promise with your guardians, might I
request your help also?”
My heart wavered. I wanted to go in. I wanted
to read all those unfamiliar books so, so much. But I didn’t want to get yelled
at.
“E-Erm, but... I... I, um...”
I turned to Rihyarda and Leonore, seeking
their permission. They both looked at me with concern, then lowered their eyes,
signifying their refusal. Hildebrand was also giving me a pleading expression,
not wanting me to go without him.
“Rozemyne. Come,” Anastasius said
authoritatively.
“You must not use such a demanding tone,”
Sigiswald interjected. “She is already cooperating out of the goodness of her
heart.”
Anastasius shook his head. “You have the wrong
idea, Brother. Her guardians in Ehrenfest have placed a very clear restriction
on her, so she cannot enter unless we give her an excuse in the form of a royal
decree that supersedes their orders. Thus... Rozemyne, assist us in reading the
archive’s documents. This is an order directly from the royal family.”
An order from the royal family? Well, my hands
are tied then! Woo-hoo!
“Rihyarda, Brunhilde, Leonore,” I said,
returning my attention to them, “I can hardly refuse an order from the royal
family, can I?”
They collectively sighed.
“Milady, anyone can see that you are beside
yourself with excitement.”
“I agree that you cannot refuse an order from
the royal family, but...”
“You must not get too
excited, Lady Rozemyne.”
Indeed, there was no refusing a royal decree.
I stood up from my chair with a smile and said, “Allow me to go, then.” And
with that, I eagerly stepped through the invisible barrier.
“Rozemyne.” Schwartz looked up at me, head
cocked. “Not enough prayer.”
“Hm? What?” I asked, blinking in confusion.
Hannelore followed in after me. “Oh, did
Schwartz say something to you as well, Lady Rozemyne?”
“Yes. He said that I am not praying enough, or
something of the sort.”
“I do not understand it either, but I was told
the same: ‘Not enough elements. Not enough prayer.’”
The princes had apparently received identical
messages. We pondered what it could mean, but Anastasius merely shrugged and
said, “If not even Rozemyne, her duchy’s High Bishop, has prayed enough, then
there is no point thinking about this any further.”
“True. Now, let us begin...”
There was no point musing any longer; it was
time to read. My hands first went for a book resting on a nearby table, but
Anastasius stopped me and instead took me to a shelf packed with white slates.
“The books there are written in relatively
modern language,” he said. “We can read those just fine. You begin here.”
“Hannelore said you could read this language,
Rozemyne, but is that truly the case?” Sigiswald asked.
Anastasius pulled out and then handed me one
of the lined-up slates. It was made of the same ivory stone as the building
itself, and there was ancient text carved into it. These would never degrade
for as long as the Royal Academy and the library were supplied with mana.
Stone slates, hm? Very well suited for
preservation. Though they’re a bit heavy, and you can’t fit much on them.
I ran a finger across the letters as I read
them. “This is the process for performing a fairly ancient ritual. Mm... So
this is what that part of the bible was referring to.”
It was a ritual stemming from a story about
Leidenschaft’s subordinates, who once got into such a heated fight that they
created a blistering summer. In the end, it had fallen to Verfuhremeer the
Goddess of Oceans to cool their heads. In the same sense that Haldenzel’s
ritual was meant to bring forth summer, this one was meant to contain excessive
heat waves.
The bible contained illustrations and the
necessary lyrics for the ritual, as well as the story from which it had come,
but this slate had actual instructions for performing it. If a similar slate
existed for Haldenzel’s ritual then we would probably be able to recreate it.
“I am personally interested in this subject
and would like to research the connection between the bible and these rituals,”
I said. “However, that is not what the royal family is looking for right now. I
will check each in order, Schwartz, so please bring them to me one by one,
starting from the leftmost slate on the top shelf.”
“Right away.”
I read through each slate that Schwartz
brought me. Meanwhile, Sigiswald and Anastasius went through the relatively new
information recorded in proper books, while Hannelore tried to read the ivory
boards at a much slower pace. After reading about various rituals, I was
finally handed one about something else.
“Prince Sigiswald, Prince Anastasius, will
these be of use to the royal family?” I asked. “They are the memoirs of a
sovereign from long ago, describing their mana compression method and what
divine protections they obtained. The latter parts in particular may also prove
useful for our joint research with Dunkelfelger.”
The memoir seemed quite official in nature,
but it was essentially a how-to book explaining how the author had become
sovereign—peppered with a healthy number of complaints about the hardships it
had all entailed.
“However, it seems that details considered to
be common sense were omitted, most likely because of the limited space. There
are some spots that I cannot grasp the meaning of without this context.”
“Such as what? Give us a literal translation.”
“This part reads, ‘I circled around and
around, offering prayers to all the gods.’ But where would they have been
circling? And how were they doing it? Were they performing a dedication whirl
or something? Is there a place to circle around in the Sovereignty?” I asked,
firing off one question after another as I envisioned the former sovereign
whirling around in prayer.
Anastasius frowned. “Given your status as a
High Bishop, I do not think there is anyone in the Royal Academy who knows more
about prayers than you. Is there nothing in the temple that would explain this?
That is, offering prayers while circling something...”
“I imagine it refers not to spinning but to
repeating a route and praying to various gods,” Sigiswald coolly suggested.
Thus vanished from my mind the image of a
spinning king. I had been seriously concerned about the practices of this
ancient culture, but going to various places to pray to various gods made
complete sense.
“That said, when I offer prayers in the
temple, I either have the divine instruments brought to me, or I go to the
chapel,” I noted. “And not once have I needed to circle any routes to offer
prayers to certain gods.”
Sure, I traveled all across Ehrenfest for
Spring Prayer and the Harvest Festival, but I prayed to the same gods
everywhere during those.
As I mulled over the phrasing of the text, I
suddenly remembered something that Monika had said.
“Ah! One of my attendants in the temple once
said that there are statues and carvings of the gods all throughout the
building. If every temple is the same, perhaps those of the past had to walk
around, praying to each god as they went.”
“That may be it,” Anastasius said, frowning
once again.
Sigiswald gave a contemplative look. “As this
memoir seems valuable, I must ask you to translate it into modern language and
provide a transcription for us to reference. A direct interpretation can always
be done later by scholars, but I am confident that your translation will prove
the most accurate, owing to your familiarity with the temple and prayers.”
“Understood. In that case, I will return to
the reading room to acquire paper and some ink from Philine,” I said.
“Naturally, my scholars cannot come to me.”
“Allow me to send for it instead,” Hannelore
interjected, raising her voice. “You are the only one familiar with this
ancient language, Lady Rozemyne; it would be best for you to stay here and
continue checking the documents. I shall speak to your attendants for you.”
“I... I could not ask you to do that, Lady
Hannelore!”
Sending the archduke candidate of a greater
duchy on an errand for me was out of the question—but even as I desperately
shook my head in refusal, Sigiswald nodded with a smile.
“We are very grateful for your offer,
Hannelore. Take some time to rest once you have spoken to Rozemyne’s attendant.
You have been working tirelessly since we arrived.”
Oh, right. She needs a break.
I could easily become so absorbed in my
reading that I’d neglect meals and even sleep, but other, more normal people
needed to take breaks. That much had completely slipped my mind. I watched as
Hannelore exited the archive, then looked back down at the white slates.
“Rozemyne,” Sigiswald said, “it has come to my
attention that you are doing research on the acquisition of divine protections.
Is it true that you can obtain more through prayer alone?”
“There is without doubt a direct connection
between prayer and obtaining divine protections. There are various conditions,
however. One must pray often and sincerely, and generously offer up mana, for
example. The apprentice knights from Dunkelfelger who are known for obtaining
the divine protections of Leidenschaft and Angriff will play a crucial role in
identifying how important each condition may be.”
Sigiswald sighed, looking down at the former
sovereign’s memoir. “I obtained divine protections from all of the primary gods
whose elements I possess but did not feel any significant changes. At most, my
mana became slightly easier to use. So, what changes when one obtains the
protections of subordinate gods? I find myself torn over whether I should
prioritize prayer or the duties expected of the current royal family.”
By that, he probably meant that he couldn’t
afford to be reading documents in an archive when he needed to nigh constantly
supply the mana required to support Yurgenschmidt.
“Prince Sigiswald, even when time is of the
essence, it is wiser to take the safe detour than the dangerous shortcut. I can
only recommend the more reliable option here.”
“What do you mean?”
I smiled. “It may seem time-consuming to focus
on compression methods, spend time here reading documents, and try to obtain
divine protections through prayer, but in the end, things will only improve if
you have more mana and protections. One’s mana efficiency increases
significantly when one has the divine protections of many subordinate gods.”
“How significantly?” he asked, his dark-green
eyes widening.
“I imagine it depends on the individual, but
my elder brother Wilfried obtained the divine protection of twelve gods in
total and said that he can now brew things using about seventy percent as much
mana as before.”
“Seventy percent... And exactly how much would
one need to pray to obtain those results?” There was a biting intensity in his
eyes. That alone told me just how much pressure the royal family was under and
how desperately they needed mana.
“You obtained more protections than that
brother of yours, correct?” Anastasius asked me with a glare. “How efficient
did your mana become?”
I pressed my lips together. Was this a
question I should answer, or was hiding the truth more important? Either way,
the royal family needed to learn the effects of praying.
“If you intend to announce the effects of
praying in the temple at the Interduchy Tournament, then there is no reason you
cannot tell us here.”
“I was planning to minimize my presence during
the announcement, as I am too much of an outlier... but as I wish for the royal
family to understand the importance of prayer, I will speak honestly. Not even
Ehrenfest knows the precise number of protections I obtained, however, so
please keep this to yourselves.”
Anastasius looked at Sigiswald, then they both
nodded. “Consider it a promise.”
“I was granted divine protection from
forty-three gods in total, and my mana expenditure dropped to perhaps forty
percent of what it used to be. For brewing and supplying mana, I use less than
half as much mana as before, to the point that I’ve even been struggling to
manage it properly.”
“Less than half?!” Sigiswald cried out in
shock. “Just how much have you been praying?”
“I must insist that you keep this to
yourselves,” I stressed, then wrote down a prayer on my diptych. “In Ehrenfest,
we pray to the gods when supplying mana to the foundational magic. I am told
that even Aub Ehrenfest was granted the divine protection of multiple
subordinates due to this practice. As one needs only to chant this prayer while
supplying mana, perhaps it will be ideal for the extraordinarily busy royal
family.”
“Is that really it?” Anastasius asked, eyeing
me suspiciously.
“Of course, if you wish for a true abundance
of divine protections, then you must proactively visit the temple and perform
religious ceremonies. The sincerity with which you do these things is also
important. However, I expect that your being members of the royal family leaves
you without the time or the leeway this would require, and you would doubtless
butt heads with the Sovereign temple if you were to suddenly take charge of
their ceremonies. Instead, start with the very basics. Before you know it, you
will be praying so naturally that blessings will spill out on their own.”
Right now, their priority needed to be getting
used to the process—although it was possible that some would view them
strangely or get mad at them even then. I had experienced that myself.
“I have yet to verify this with my own
research,” I said, “but it seems that divine protections can be obtained even
after coming of age. If you all pray regularly while supplying mana, then
things should be a lot more comfortable for you a number of years down the
line.”
“Even after coming of age? Just how much
information is Ehrenfest hiding?”
“We were not hiding any of this. Before I
performed the ritual for obtaining divine blessings, I thought it was normal to
pray when supplying mana to the foundational magic.”
Plus, pretty much all of the information they
thought we were “hiding” had come from Ferdinand. He was the one who had been
keeping it all a secret, if anyone—though I naturally wasn’t about to say that.
“Lady Rozemyne, here are the paper and ink you
need,” Hannelore said upon her return, stationery in hand. I accepted it with a
polite thank-you and then got straight to work translating the sovereign’s
memoir.
“Next, we shall take a break ourselves,”
Sigiswald announced. “Hannelore, my apologies, but I must ask you to transcribe
this board onto paper.”
“Understood, Prince Sigiswald.”
I watched the two princes leave the archive,
then sighed in relief.
Hannelore exhaled in turn, then gave me a
gentle smile. “To think that Prince Anastasius’s summons has resulted in our
being here with not one, but three princes. It was quite the surprise to see
them in the library, would you not say?”
“Indeed. I could not believe my eyes when I
saw Prince Sigiswald.”
Though I saw him in the prince’s villa before we
came to the library.
“I also did not think I would be tasked with
transcribing things,” Hannelore continued. “I assumed that I would only be
asked to help open the door. Ancient language is not a specialty of mine, so I
am heartened to have you here with me.”
“I must say, I am impressed by how much you
can read,” I replied, keeping up the brief exchange while working on my
translation. “Not even those of the royal family seem to have much of a grasp
on ancient language, though they are prioritizing
their other duties.”
“Oh, this seems to be a ceremony for royal
succession,” Hannelore said all of a sudden, peering at the slate in her hands.
Something like that would never be done in Ehrenfest’s temple, so I took a peek
myself, my interest drawn. “I am fairly confident in my assertion, as it says
here that ‘the new sovereign must present their Grutrissheit,’ but...”
“No, I think you are correct. This does seem
to be a succession ceremony.”
I wonder how the current king succeeded the
throne when he doesn’t have a Grutrissheit...
Such questions drifted through my mind.
Hannelore gave me the slate, having determined that it was of no use to the
current royal family, and asked Schwartz to bring her a new one.
I went ahead and read the slate a little more
closely. During the royal succession ceremony, the High Bishop would apparently
wear the crown of the Goddess of Light—maybe because she presided over promises
and contracts.
Wait, is this a spell...?
The slate also contained what seemed to be an
incantation for transforming one’s schtappe. I copied it onto my diptych.
Ferdinand definitely came here all the time. I
bet he made it his mission to read absolutely everything!
Slates containing information on other rituals
similarly detailed spells for making the God of Darkness’s cape and the Goddess
of Earth’s chalice. I had wondered why Ferdinand and Ferdinand alone knew so
many random things, and now I had my answer.
I’m gonna read everything too!
After reading until the library closed, I
returned my key to the office’s storage box. My time in the archive had taught
me a lot about various rituals, as well as the spells needed to turn my
schtappe into any divine instrument that I desired. Poring over so many
documents and absorbing so much information had almost made me drunk with
satisfaction; I was actually starting to waver on my feet.
“The archive can be opened as long as we three
key owners are present,” I said, “and without any members of royalty present,
there will be no need to clear the library of students. Thus, in place of the
busy royal family, I shall return here often to continue my reading.”
Such was my intention, but both Rihyarda and
Anastasius swiftly shot me down.
“That will not do, milady. You have many other
things to prioritize, such as your joint research projects with greater
duchies. Furthermore, we cannot risk you entering an archive inaccessible to
your attendants without someone of higher status to drag you out.”
“Your attendant speaks wisely. We cannot allow
you to enter alone when you become so intently focused that you ignore even our
calls. Not to mention, you only ever made progress on the transcription when we
kept a close eye on you; otherwise, you became too absorbed in your reading.”
I desperately searched for someone to back me
up but to no avail; everyone was in agreement with Rihyarda and Anastasius.
How can this be happening?! I don’t have a single
ally!
I turned to Sigiswald, the highest authority
in our group. If anyone could save me now, it was him.
He looked at Hortensia and Hannelore with a
peaceful smile. “I hereby forbid anyone from entering the underground archive
until we of the royal family call again. Hortensia, Hannelore—you must not use
your keys, no matter how many times Rozemyne may ask.”
“Understood.”
We had just discovered the most fascinating
archive, and we had barely even skimmed the surface! Yet here I was, forbidden
from accessing it for the foreseeable future. I was so disappointed that I
trudged my way back to the dormitory, feeling empty.
Upon our return, Rihyarda started tearing into
me for all of my mistakes. My offenses included giving Sigiswald half-baked
answers while keeping my eyes glued to my documents and clinging to them so
tightly that Anastasius had needed to tear them out of my hands before evicting
me from the archive so unsympathetically that he might as well have dragged me
by the scruff of my neck.
Wilfried shook his head at me, evidently
disappointed. “Weren’t you told to avoid the royal family as much as possible?”
Look, Wilfried... that part isn’t my fault, at
least.
Dunkelfelger’s Ritual
Several days after visiting the library’s
archive, an ordonnanz arrived from Rauffen: “How about we play ditter in the
knight building?” The bird repeated this three times, after which I sent my
response.
“Only after we do the joint research.”
Another ordonnanz appeared soon after, this
one from Hannelore. “My apologies,” it said in her voice. “The previous message
was supposed to be about our research, not ditter.”
And so, we accepted the invitation.
“Rozemyne, it seems pretty obvious that you’ll
do something crazy with this joint research,” Wilfried said. “That’s why I’m
coming with you to the knight dormitory.”
“Dearest brother,” Charlotte interjected, “do
you not simply wish to accompany her because of your interest in ditter?”
Wilfried faltered. Although he probably was
curious about the ritual, Charlotte was right on the money. The boys in the
dormitory had grown especially passionate about ditter ever since reading
Roderick’s story about it.
“As I expect our dear brother to be unable to
concentrate, and I am personally interested in this research, I shall come as
well,” Charlotte announced. “May I, Sister?”
Never in a million years would I turn down my
hardworking Charlotte, especially when she just wanted to learn about the
ritual in preparation for her own next year. It was my duty as an older sister
to grant the wishes of my cute little sister.
“Of course you can,” I replied. “And as both
of you are going to be in attendance, we may have your apprentice scholars help
as well.”
I wasted no time gathering their apprentice
scholars in the common room, then distributed sheets of paper and started
explaining how to conduct questionnaires. Naturally, with no printing presses
in the dormitory, preparing identical copies was far from easy. That was why
each scholar was going to take a sheet listing all the questions they were to
ask, then transcribe the answers separately like a street reporter. This way,
they only had to reproduce the question sheet once—and as long as the answers were
written according to a template, putting everything together would prove simple
enough.
“Lord Wilfried...”
“Give it up, Ignaz. Rozemyne’s suggesting some
weird new way of doing things, sure, but we all know that we’ll need to learn
it sooner or later. No matter how you might feel about this, you need to
embrace it.”
After teaching the scholars how to go about
conducting the questionnaire, we made our final preparations and went to the
knight building. Rauffen was gathering the apprentice knights for us, and we
were meeting him there in a large conference room. The knight building was
extremely large—as one would expect, considering its many training grounds of
various sizes—so one needed a highbeast to traverse it.
Leonore led us to our destination at once. We
had gathered all our knights in their third year or above, and with three
archduke candidates present, there was quite an abundance of retainers as well.
“So this is the knight building?”
“This is my first time here.”
Charlotte and I had alighted from our
highbeasts and were looking around curiously—a sight that elicited a chuckle
from Rihyarda. “Miladies, both of you have been here for the Interduchy
Tournament,” she said. That much was true, but we had gone straight to the
largest training grounds; we hadn’t been near the rooms where classes were
actually held.
“I thought it would be a bit... muskier in here,” I mused aloud. After all, this was the
building for apprentice knights who so often spent their time training. I had
been expecting the offensive stench of deodorant that had always polluted the
girls’ changing room after gym class back on Earth, or the thick scent of sweat
that had so often come from the boys’, but there was nothing like that at all.
“Most perform waschen on themselves after
training,” Matthias explained. “That is why there are no strong smells here
like there are in the scholar building.”
Theodore seemed to recall the herbal scent of
the scholar building and gave a half-smile.
Praise be to waschen.
I continued toward the conference room with
that thought in mind, and soon enough we reached Rauffen, Lestilaut, and
Hannelore. They welcomed us, and we exchanged greetings.
“Alright, let’s start ditter—”
“Professor Rauffen?”
“—after we explain
and demonstrate the ritual.”
A stern glare from Hannelore had extracted a
hasty correction from Rauffen, but I got the feeling that he still only cared
about one thing. We couldn’t allow ourselves to be led astray by this
ditter-obsessed professor.
The research is far more important, you know.
I exchanged a look with Hannelore, then we
both nodded. “I wish to speak with the apprentice knights before the ditter
ritual,” I said. “You gathered apprentice knights of other duchies as well,
correct? We should not keep them waiting.”
“Lady Rozemyne is right; we must first speak
to everyone. This is our promise to Ehrenfest. Ditter can wait until
afterward.”
“Yes, yes. Let us finish the talking first so
that we can play ditter without any reservations,” Rauffen said. He then strode
on ahead, eager to get the less interesting part of today’s meeting over and
done with.
The wide classroom was filled with apprentice
knights. I got Ehrenfest’s ten apprentice scholars to sit at the row of desks
at the far end of the room, where they arranged their question sheets, answer
sheets, and ink.
“Everyone, I thank you for your cooperation,”
I said. “Ehrenfest’s apprentice scholars will soon start asking you questions,
and I must ask that you respond to them all. The final conclusions drawn from
your answers will be announced at the Interduchy Tournament. Now, those of you
from Klassenberg, please form a line here. You may leave in that direction when
you are done.”
Processes like this were easy to carry out
here in the Royal Academy, since everything was decided by duchy rank. The
students within each duchy could then be separated further into arch, med, and
lay ranks, then class years, but I decided to leave that for them to sort out
among themselves.
And so, the ten scholars began conducting the
questionnaire. They had practiced thoroughly, so there was little confusion or
uncertainty; everything progressed smoothly.
“That’s it. Can the next person come forth?”
Philine asked, raising a hand.
I guided the next apprentice knight standing
in line over to Philine. Then, once we had gone through most of the Klassenberg
apprentices, I called for those of the next duchy.
My main role here was guiding the knights, and
it seemed that things were going smoothly thanks to my contribution. As I was
feeling satisfied with myself, Brunhilde brought over some attendants.
“Lady Rozemyne, we have observed the guiding
process,” she said. “We will take over from here. It seems that Professor
Rauffen is eager to discuss the upcoming game of ditter.”
I would rather more of this than a conversation
about ditter, though.
But as he was the highest authority in the
joint research project, avoidance wasn’t an option. Rihyarda and I headed to
the corner of the room where the other archduke candidates had cemented
themselves.
“This is an unusual manner of giving
questions,” Hannelore said.
“There’s a certain convenience to asking the
same questions in one-on-one situations,” I replied. “The gathered apprentice
knights are all in their third year or above, but when are they actually taught
the song and dance used in the ritual? It seems that Ehrenfest’s first-years
know it already...”
I shot Theodore a look at that last remark. He
had told me that Rauffen had willingly taught the Ehrenfest first-years the
process as a result of our joint research project.
“Even first-years visit the knight building
for training, so they are taught them immediately. However, those not from
Dunkelfelger are largely unfamiliar with the process and thus do not take it
seriously. More did this year, however, as we mentioned that it could increase
the likelihood of receiving divine protections from the gods.”
The same was true for Ehrenfest’s apprentice
knights—when Leonore had heard about Dunkelfelger’s ritual in the dormitory,
she had said, “I simply did not see the point of performing it at the time. Had
I understood its importance for obtaining divine protections from the gods,
then I would have taken it more seriously.”
“So, Lady Rozemyne—shall we talk about the
rules for today’s ditter?” Rauffen said, his eyes sparkling with excitement.
“The usual ones are fine with me.”
“But that would be speed ditter...”
“Indeed. We will not need to fuss over rules
if we stick with the norm, will we?”
Rauffen stared at me for three whole seconds,
lost for words, then suddenly cried, “But why?! How could you write such a
passionate, glorious tale about treasure-stealing ditter but not want to play
it yourself?!”
“I am not the one who wrote A
Ditter Story—and each game takes quite some time, does it not? I am
simply here to see the ritual for my research. Speed ditter will do just fine.”
Rauffen stood paralyzed in shock, while the
nearby Dunkelfelger apprentice knights stared at me with their mouths agape. It
seemed that they had all been convinced that we were about to play
treasure-stealing ditter.
“But Lady Rozemyne...”
“One does not need to play treasure-stealing
ditter to hold the ritual, correct? Or, what, does Dunkelfelger not treat speed
ditter seriously?” It was well established that a game of ditter needed to be
played for our research, but Dunkelfelger had never specified what kind.
Hannelore nodded with a smile. “Just as Lady
Rozemyne says, ditter is ditter, whether it be for speed or treasure. The
ritual can be performed either way, and Dunkelfelger always
takes its games seriously. I also believe that speed ditter is ideal for our
purposes here.”
“You may have a point, Lady Hannelore, but...”
Hannelore was speaking as a Dunkelfelger
archduke candidate; Rauffen and the other students were in no position to
protest. Her small interjection had cemented the fact that we were going to be
playing speed ditter.
“Still, Professor Rauffen—I am glad to see
that you are enjoying A Ditter Story enough to have
become so emotionally invested in treasure-stealing ditter,” I said.
“The story has rocketed in popularity in the
Dunkelfelger Dormitory. Was the protagonist’s strategy inspired by advice from
Lord Ferdinand, perchance? I recall going up against it myself...”
I sighed. “I did allow the author to borrow
his ditter strategy notes. Ferdinand did not come up with the story, however,
nor did he directly assist with its writing.”
“I look forward to the next volume. When can
we expect it?”
He had evidently been infected with the
bookworm virus, symptoms of which included dying with anticipation for the next
volumes of one’s favorite series. It was all going according to plan.
“The sequel will release... Well, we still
need Lord Lestilaut’s illustrations, so at some point after then. We also
intend to rebind the first volume to include his work.”
Since the books were only held together with
string, we could easily unbind them to add new pages—although the process would
no doubt be time-consuming. We would probably do something similar with the
second volume, offering a preview copy without the illustrations and then
inserting them later. My original plan had been to bring an artist to Ehrenfest
after my graduation, but I wasn’t sure what to do when I was already buying
illustrations from another duchy, so the idea was kind of sitting on the back
burner for now.
I never expected to hire an archduke candidate
about to graduate!
“The illustrations are already done, you
know,” Lestilaut noted. “I do not have them with me now, but you may see them
at a later date. Hm... Perhaps when you show us your ritual or what have you.”
“I eagerly await the opportunity.”
Though we’ll first need to decide on the price
and how to do the handover.
As I contemplated my future options, I
carefully listened to the Dunkelfelger retainers giving their thoughts on A Ditter Story. Soon enough, we had all the answers we
needed.
“We will compile the answers upon our return
to our dormitory,” I said. “We will then inform Dunkelfelger of the results
before they are announced at the Interduchy Tournament.”
“Lady Rozemyne, at the very least, let us help
organize the answers,” Clarissa said. “As it stands, the ‘joint’ nature of this
research is true in name alone; I have not contributed at all.”
All of the Dunkelfelger apprentice scholars
overseeing our joint research nodded along vigorously. I was intending to
compare my ritual with theirs, so this was a collaborative effort in that
sense, but it was true that they hadn’t been involved with any of the
questioning. It was probably a good idea to give them a task of some kind.
“In that case, let us organize the answers in
Ehrenfest’s tea party room. I wish to have the results posthaste, so we shall
start tomorrow morning when classes begin. All those who are free may come.”
“Understood. I will come no matter what,
through rain or snow,” Clarissa declared, clenching her fists and grinning
happily.
“Are you certain about this, Lady Rozemyne?”
Hannelore asked, looking concerned. “Should I also attend?”
I-Is she really that concerned about Clarissa
coming along?
I suddenly felt uneasy myself, so I asked
Hannelore to attend as a Dunkelfelger authority to keep an eye on her. But
while I was still mid-sentence, Lestilaut suddenly shot his head up.
“I will go, then. I must be responsible for
our duchy’s students.”
“But you have classes, Brother, do you not? I
have already written to Mother that you became so absorbed in your
illustrations that you allowed your attendance to slip.”
Oh, Hannelore! You’re so reliable!
As my heart throbbed, Charlotte gave a refined
giggle. “Lady Hannelore, you are entirely like Rihyarda when she stops my
sister from finding some absurd excuse to read.”
“You have a point,” Wilfried added. “But I
would much prefer a cute warning from someone like Lady Hannelore to a scolding
from Rihyarda.”
“Wilfried, my boy, what exactly do you mean by
that?” Rihyarda asked. She punctuated her question with a chuckle, but her tone
had sounded so dark that Wilfried immediately stiffened up.
I
gave him a small but supportive nod. I understand
how you feel, Wilfried. Even if only a little.
After finishing the questionnaires, we moved
to the training grounds to play speed ditter. My objective was to absorb the
ancient song and dance that Dunkelfelger performed as an offering to the
fighting-type gods before games. I hadn’t seen other people perform rituals
very often, so I was very much looking forward to it.
As this was joint research, those of other
duchies were disallowed from watching. Those of us spectating were going to be
looking down at the grounds from the upper stands, much like during the
Interduchy Tournament. There were no chairs this time, so we needed to stand,
but it was otherwise the same.
We ended up with Ehrenfest at one end of the
stands and Dunkelfelger at the other, but the Dunkelfelger side had way more
people. It was hard to tell whether that was because they had more apprentice
knights or because they were simply that much more excited about ditter.
“Rozemyne, they have a larger audience than
us,” Wilfried said. “Should we call over the students of lower grades who
wanted to watch?”
I looked at the surprisingly large crowd that
was Dunkelfelger’s group and nodded. “We might as well invite anyone who wishes
to join us and provide their support.”
Charlotte sent out an ordonnanz at once, and
it wasn’t long before pretty much all of our students arrived. Even then, we
couldn’t compare to Dunkelfelger’s enthusiasm.
“Now, let us begin!” boomed Rauffen’s voice.
“All participating apprentice knights, descend to the grounds so that we might
show our ritual to Ehrenfest!”
Dunkelfelger’s apprentice knights produced
their highbeasts and flew down to the grounds as instructed, while the other
students hooted and hollered in celebration. If they could get this excited
over speed ditter, then there really hadn’t been a reason for us to play the
treasure-stealing variety.
“Well, Hannelore?”
“The rest is up to you, Brother.”
Lestilaut nodded, used a feystone to envelop
his black Royal Academy uniform in light armor, then descended to the grounds
with the others. The apprentice knights formed a circle around him as he raised
his schtappe and shouted, “Grant power to those of us going into battle!”
“Lanze!”
The apprentice knights all transformed their
schtappes into spears.
“We are those who offer prayers and gratitude
to the gods who have created the world,” came the familiar introduction. Then,
they all thumped their spears into the ground at once. “Grant us power so that
we might obtain victory. Grant us Angriff’s mighty power, which is second to
none. Grant us speed so that we might obtain victory. Grant us Steifebrise’s
speed, which is second to none.”
Like the ceremony performed in Haldenzel, the
song was based on a prayer in the bible. The surrounding apprentice knights
began moving their spears while praying to the gods related to combat, doing
what appeared to be some kind of sword dance. They spun them around, then
thrust them into the ground. Then, they drew their weapons from the earth and
pounded them against their feystone armor, producing a metallic chorus.
From the center of the circle, Lestilaut swung
his spear and danced like the other apprentice knights. He twirled and twirled,
yet he was in complete control of his polearm. That explained why his
dedication whirling was superb.
“Lady Hannelore, can you also whirl while
wielding a spear?” I asked, my eyes still glued to Lestilaut.
Hannelore gave a somewhat shy smile. “I am
being made to practice, naturally, but I am not very talented. I would not dare
attempt it in front of others.”
“Naturally”? I can’t believe that even tiny,
timid Lady Hannelore can perform such a crazy-looking dance. Dunkelfelger
really is something else.
Lestilaut then thrust his spear up into the
air and shouted, “Fight!” The apprentice knights roared in response and copied
the gesture as if attempting to pierce the heavens.
All of the Dunkelfelger students watching from
the stands were cheering along, which hyped the rest of us up even more. It was
clear that the whirling apprentice knights were unified in their enthusiasm,
which they were directing to the upcoming battle.
“This is incredible...” Judithe muttered, in a
daze. “It’s totally different from when they taught us during training.”
The other apprentice knights nodded in
agreement, dumbfounded.
“And we’re about to fight them,” Matthias
said. He and everyone else were completely absorbed in Dunkelfelger’s
performance. The battle hadn’t even begun, but we were already losing
spiritually. That wouldn’t do at all.
“Laurenz, I know that Professor Rauffen taught
our apprentice knights the ritual, but can we actually perform the song and
dance?” I asked.
“Yes, more or less,” he replied. “Though, um,
Lady Rozemyne... Don’t tell me...”
I smiled. “Fight fire with fire, as they say.”
“But performing it now won’t hype us up as
much as an initial dance would...”
I couldn’t help but cackle. “Giving blessings
is my specialty, I’ll have you know.”
Having deduced my intentions, Leonore smiled.
“In that case, Lady Rozemyne, please take the central position and sing to
improve our morale.”
I produced my highbeast alongside the
apprentice knights who would be playing ditter, but Wilfried grabbed my hand
before I could do anything else. “I don’t know what you’re planning, Rozemyne,
but I think you should drop it,” he said, frowning. “My pattern recognition
skills are good enough that I can tell you going down there is going to cause
major problems.”
“At most, we are only copying Dunkelfelger,
dear brother. My aim is just to raise the spirits of our troops.” I pointed at
our apprentice knights, who were still dispirited in the face of our opponents’
passionate display.
Charlotte put a contemplative hand on her
cheek. “Erm, Sister... Dunkelfelger cannot perform the follow-up ritual unless
they win, so should you not leave things be? There does not seem to be a need
for you to mimic the ritual.”
“Now that you mention it... that is true.”
Dunkelfelger performed rituals before and after ditter, with the latter being to celebrate victory
and offer their thanks to the gods. But as I moved to dismiss my highbeast,
Lestilaut returned from the grounds and waved at me.
“You should take this opportunity to perform
it,” he said. “Will our research not require you to compare what happens when
our two duchies perform the same ritual?”
“W-Well... you certainly are correct about
that, Lord Lestilaut...”
Wilfried and Charlotte exchanged looks of
concern.
“I am interested in seeing whether the same
ritual carried out at the same time and in the same place can produce different
results depending on who performed it,” Lestilaut said forcefully. “Do it. For
the sake of our research.”
“Very well. For the sake of our research,” I
said, nodding. I then made my way down to the grounds with the apprentice
knights. Once I arrived, Judithe indicated where I was to stand.
“Can you really do that song and dance, Lady
Rozemyne?” she whispered, sounding fragile.
I could see the Ehrenfest apprentice knights
looking worried about performing the same ritual that Dunkelfelger had just
done so well. Leonore alone had realized that I was using this as an excuse to
give a discreet blessing, and she directed the apprentice knights to take their
positions.
“Not in the least,” I replied. “Today was my
first time seeing it. I am simply going to follow Lord Lestilaut’s example by
holding up a spear with all of you. It seemed a good opportunity to stealthily
give everyone Angriff’s blessing.”
Judithe’s violet eyes widened, then she gave
me a small smile. “Doesn’t that mean this won’t be the same ritual as
Dunkelfelger’s? We won’t be able to justify it as part of our research.”
“Worry not—aside from the words of prayer, it
won’t be any different. Giving everyone a blessing is my main concern, but we
can still use it for our research, no?”
Judithe nodded and then returned to her spot.
Leonore soon took her place at my side, whereupon she informed me that everyone
was in position and told me a few things to be wary of. To summarize, I just
needed to nail the beginning and end.
I scanned the apprentice knights surrounding
me. From what I remembered, the first step was for me to call out and transform
my schtappe into a spear.
“Grant power to those of us going into
battle!” I declared. And then: “Lanze!”
I whipped out my schtappe and turned it into
Leidenschaft’s spear. The apprentice knights all managed to transform their
schtappes in turn, but their eyes were locked on mine in shock.
Oh, right... I revealed a glimpse of this spear
during class last year, but I guess I never showed the apprentice knights.
Leidenschaft’s spear wasn’t exactly something
that was shown to everyone, so perhaps my retainers who visited the temple were
the only ones who had seen it. Still, this was no time for them to be standing
around, awestruck.
Come on. Don’t look at me. Start singing!
I glared at the apprentice knights, slammed my
spear against the ground, and said in my loudest voice, “We are those who offer
prayers and gratitude to the gods who have created the world.” The sudden
impact and the familiar prayer snapped the apprentice knights out of their
stupor, and they immediately began to swing their spears around and sing.
“Grant us power so that we might obtain
victory. Grant us Angriff’s mighty power, which is second to none. Grant us
speed so that we might obtain victory. Grant us Steifebrise’s speed, which is
second to none.”
I stood in place with my spear in hand.
Although I couldn’t sing with them—I couldn’t remember the song—I did remember
the prayer. I chanted it quietly enough that my voice was lost among the
others.
Now I just need to shout “Fight!” at the end and
raise my spear up high, right?
I waited for that very moment, then thrust my
spear toward the sky and cried, “Fight!” An instant later, a loud boom resounded throughout the training grounds.
“Bwuh-guh?!” I cried, unconsciously letting
out my goofiest noise in quite some time. Nobody seemed to notice, however;
they were all focused on the mana that had shot out of my transformed schtappe.
I slowly lowered my arm, my eyes turned
heavenward. In my hand was Leidenschaft’s spear, drained of mana and no longer
shining with blue light. Its feystones were transparent.
Next, I tried to see what had become of the
mana that had fired out of me. If possible, I wanted it back... but I wasn’t
sure that was possible. It drew circles in the air and at some point became
cloaked in a variety of colors. It was mostly blue, but I could see some
yellow, red, and green in there too. The light then abruptly poured down on
everyone, so dazzlingly bright that I closed my eyes on instinct.
I could see the light even through my eyelids,
but it vanished before long. The sky was clear again by the time I opened my
eyes again, and everyone was looking as dazed and confused as I was feeling.
After a prolonged silence, someone among the
spectators cried, “What was that?!” The rest of the audience area started to
buzz with noise immediately after. Those from Dunkelfelger were especially
loud, while Wilfried and Charlotte had their heads in their hands. I could
already tell that they were going to say, “We told you not to go!” the moment I
got back.
“Lady Rozemyne, the match is about to begin,
so please return to the audience area.”
“Leonore, do you understand what just
happened...?” I asked.
“You performed a large-scale blessing. That is
as much as I gathered. Perhaps you should ask the others in the audience; they
would have gotten a better view.”
I gave up and returned to the stands. Wilfried
and Charlotte were both cradling their heads, while Lestilaut and Hannelore
practically leapt on me with questions.
“Lady Rozemyne, what in the world was that?”
Hannelore asked.
“Never have I seen something like that happen
during the ritual,” Lestilaut added, his tone demanding. “What in the world did
you do?!”
They were both interrogating me at once, and
everyone else was eagerly awaiting my answers... but I wasn’t sure myself.
“I... believe it was a blessing,” I eventually
said, “but as this was my first time performing the ritual, I cannot tell you
precisely what happened. From down below, the light seemed to be multicolored,
but how did it look from up here?”
They both exchanged glances, then Hannelore
explained what they had seen. “You produced Leidenschaft’s spear, correct? I
may have seen it before, but the others had not and were very surprised as a
result.”
“And for good reason,” Lestilaut added. “I
remember getting a report some time ago saying that she can produce the spear,
but who would have expected her to make the divine instrument here, of all
places?”
Everyone nodded in agreement.
Hannelore pouted. “Brother, when I gave you
that report, I remember you saying it was ‘obviously fake’ and then ignoring
everything else I said about the matter.”
“It was the most beautiful sight that ever
graced my eyes,” Clarissa interjected from the side. “I have seen that very
same ritual performed in Dunkelfelger more times than I can count, but only now
do I understand its true divinity. Lady Rozemyne, O Saint of Ehrenfest, we are
blessed to be in your presence.”
“Um, Clarissa...”
I attempted to stop her, but she continued to
rant, her blue eyes sparkling.
“Hark! For with hearty sparkling did the great
blue light shoot from Leidenschaft’s spear, proving to all that it was the
genuine article! As she clutched it with serene grace and sang her holy prayer,
Lady Rozemyne became the very image of Mestionora herself, a resplendent beauty
with the very gods’ permission to use their divine instruments at will. The
sight claimed my heart, and verily I wept!”
“Shut her up,” Lestilaut said, grimacing at
Clarissa. Certainly, our conversation wouldn’t be able to continue with her
butting in and rambling to herself.
“From the very bottom of my heart, I am truly,
truly grateful to have been given life, as it allowed
me to witness such a miraculous sight!” Clarissa went on. “Oh, but why must I
be so much older than you, and from a different duchy, Lady Rozemyne?! I want
nothing more than to be with you here at the Royal Academy—to spend each year
burning thy blessedness into mine eyes!”
“Clarissa,” I said, “I have a request for
you.”
She turned to me at once. “And what might that
be, Lady Rozemyne? Ask, and you shall receive!”
I presented several sheets of paper that
Philine had brought with her. “Before you forget, I would like you to write a
letter to Hartmut detailing what you saw here today. For his research, he will
want to know even the smallest minutiae, and it would mean very much to me if
you could provide as much detail as you can. Supporting your fiancé is an
important job, is it not?”
“As much detail as I can... Understood. You
can count on me!”
Clarissa accepted the papers and then began
scrawling furiously. That would keep her quiet for a while.
“Now, let us continue,” I said, turning back
to Lestilaut and Hannelore. “I copied Lord Lestilaut by raising my spear, and
nothing more, so I was more surprised than anyone when it suddenly fired out
the mana I’d put into it.”
“You were surprised too?” Wilfried muttered.
“It sure didn’t look that way.”
Apparently, from their perspective, the mana
had shot up into the air, developed color, and then rained down again.
“It seemed to me that a portion of the
blessing flew off somewhere,” Charlotte said, eliciting nods from the others.
This wasn’t something I’d noticed myself, but it had been clear as day to those
watching from above.
“Where did it go, exactly?” I asked.
“I do not know. The most I can say is that,
while the light was spinning in the air, a portion just... whooshed away.”
“Now that you mention it, I remember something
similar happening during another ritual that I performed. Perhaps it occurs
during all those that take place at the Royal Academy.”
Of course, I was referring to the ritual
during which I’d obtained the names of the God of Darkness and the Goddess of
Light, but I refrained from saying that outright. The topic was handled very
cautiously even during archduke candidate class, and the last thing I wanted
was any spontaneous combustion.
“You appeared to receive blessings from all
the gods you prayed to, but what separates your ritual from Dunkelfelger’s?”
Lestilaut asked, his expression thoughtful and serious. “Does one need to use
Leidenschaft’s spear?”
I racked my brain for an explanation. “The
spear could be a factor, as could the mana donated. It was the mana itself that
went flying off, right? And you did not offer any, as I understand it.”
“The mana is offered during the ritual that
follows a victory.”
“That is most likely the reason, then.
Offering mana is essential for receiving blessings and divine protections from
the gods.”
At some point during our discussion about
rituals, the game of speed ditter had started. Rauffen summoned a feybeast to
be defeated, and the Dunkelfelger knights riding their highbeasts leapt into
action. Their coordination was impeccable, as always.
Once they were done, it was Ehrenfest’s turn.
This was a highly anticipated moment if ever there was one; the spectators were
leaning forward to see just what our knights could do after receiving such a
grand blessing.
“Begin!” came the call.
The fight had officially started and the
feybeast was summoned... but everyone was acting weird. Some charged forward at
tremendous speed only to fall flat on their faces as though someone had
suddenly stepped on the brake. Judithe aimed a shot from far away, as expected
of our specialist sniper, but her attack ended up flying in a completely
different direction. They were all moving so... unusually. Something had to be
wrong.
“Did something happen?”
“Everyone is moving so strangely...”
Wilfried and Charlotte expressed their
concerns, causing Lestilaut to scoff. “Are you sure you gave them a blessing
and not some bizarre kind of curse?”
“Brother!” Hannelore exclaimed—but everyone
else’s reactions seemed to suggest that he was right. Something really was
wrong.
“Hyaaah!”
However, while everyone was bumbling about
like this was some kind of comedy skit, Traugott alone roared a battle cry and
charged toward the feybeast. The sword in his hands was packed with mana and
shone with an iridescent light.
“Hold it, Traugott!” Matthias shouted.
“Uncontrolled mana is dangerous!”
“We’ll lose if we don’t hurry!”
“After all this fumbling, we’ve already lost!
It’s not worth the risk!”
Traugott merely looked at Matthias with wide
eyes, then lowered his sword in frustration.
“Bring it down to seventy percent, at least,”
Matthias continued. “If you don’t, someone in the audience area might get
hurt.”
“That would never happen. My mana isn’t that—”
“Right now, it is
that dangerous. Contain your power when you attack.”
The light around Traugott’s sword dimmed as he
obediently started containing his mana, then he launched a weakened attack. He
was holding back, but even then, his strength was comparable to that of our
very own knight commander, Karstedt. Traugott’s single blow vaporized the
feybeast entirely.
Traugott had that much mana? I wondered, blinking in surprise as Rauffen made his announcement.
“Time! Victory goes to... Dunkelfelger!”
“I’m going to go ask the apprentice knights
what exactly Rozemyne’s blessing did to them...” Wilfried said, then produced
his highbeast and flew down to meet them. Charlotte and I followed, as did
Lestilaut and Hannelore.
By the time we reached the grounds, Wilfried
was already speaking with the knights.
“Can you tell me what the problem was?”
“I was really struggling to control my mana.
It was a battle just trying to move...”
They hadn’t experienced any problems when
moving around normally on their highbeasts, but trying to speed up with mana
had made them go super fast, and trying to slow down had made them come to an
abrupt stop. Then, whenever they had attacked, they had felt greater recoil
than ever before—far more than they were able to take.
“Was the blessing too much, then?” I asked.
Perhaps it had put them all in a state similar to after I performed my divine
protections ritual, when I was barely able to control my mana.
The apprentice knight nodded. “Most likely.
Our bodies could not keep up with it.”
In short, we had lost because our knights were
so over-blessed that they couldn’t even move properly. How humiliating. We
would have played better without my assistance, even if we’d still ended up
losing.
“So it was more of a
curse than a blessing...” Wilfried said.
Charlotte nodded. “Sister, you must be more
careful with how much mana you use when giving blessings.”
They were both right—and at a time like this,
the only thing I could do was hang my head in shame. “My apologies, Lord
Lestilaut, Lady Hannelore. I, um... had no idea this would happen... I did not
intend to use the ritual that Dunkelfelger has protected and treasured for so
many centuries to place, erm, a horrible curse upon my own apprentice knights.”
Hannelore smiled. “Your timing was simply
unfortunate, Lady Rozemyne. This is a new discovery for us all, so please do
not feel so down.”
Bwehhh... Lady Hannelore is so kind. She’s my
soulmate!
As I was gushing over my dear friend,
Lestilaut flourished his cape and pointed to the center of the arena. “It is
time for the final ritual, Hannelore,” he said. “You go.”
“Understood, Brother.”
Hannelore climbed into her highbeast and flew
to the center of the arena, as instructed. Lestilaut watched her go for a
moment, then turned to me and said, “Only knights may remain here. We must
return to the audience.”
And so, we promptly returned to the stands. I
couldn’t tell what Hannelore was saying from so far away, but she morphed her
schtappe into a staff that I didn’t recognize and slowly started spinning it in
a circle above her head.
“Lord Lestilaut, what is that staff?” I asked.
Its tip was decorated with a large feystone that looked a lot like a jewel,
flanked by what appeared to be the wings of a bat or the extended gills of a
fish.
“It is said to belong to Verfuhremeer the
Goddess of Oceans. Though I cannot say whether that is true.”
It definitely was; I could practically hear
the crashing of waves against the shore with each turn of Hannelore’s staff.
The sounds soon filled the air, and mana gradually began gently rising from the
Ehrenfest apprentice knights like a haze.
If I’m the Saint of Ehrenfest, then Hannelore
must be the Saint of Dunkelfelger.
I continued to watch, feeling thoroughly moved
as the mana twisted up into the air like waves. Lestilaut, in contrast, was
rubbing his eyes in disbelief.
“What is that...?”
“What do you mean?” I asked. “Is it not the
usual ritual that Dunkelfelger performs?”
“It is, but this is my first time seeing this
phenomenon.”
“What?! I mean, it looks like mana is coming
out of the Ehrenfest apprentice knights... Is everything going to be okay?”
“Who knows?”
“O-Oh no...”
I continued to look down at the grounds,
feeling uneasy. In tune with Hannelore’s spinning, the mana from the apprentice
knights began swirling like a whirlpool, being sucked closer and closer to the
center. Hannelore then thrust her staff up into the air and said something that
I couldn’t hear, at which point the swirl of mana flowed up to the heavens like
a dragon.
Thus concluded the ritual. Hannelore returned
to the stands, then so did the apprentice knights.
“Lady Hannelore, what in the world just
happened...?” I asked.
Lestilaut added, “Never have I seen the ritual
produce such results.”
Hannelore gave a troubled smile. “I understand
your prior confusion very well now, Lady Rozemyne. I similarly have no idea
what happened. However, I sensed that stopping the ritual midway through would
be unwise, so I finished it despite my uncertainty.”
Leonore and Matthias provided answers in her
stead.
“I believe that Dunkelfelger’s closing ritual
returns the blessings provided by the gods.”
“I agree with Leonore—I could feel the
blessing that Lady Rozemyne granted us fade and my mana return to normal. It
also seems to have eased my excitement; my heartbeat is surprisingly steady
considering all that has happened.”
“So it has a calming effect?” Hannelore asked,
blinking at the apprentice knights. “I suppose everyone is
rather calm despite our recent victory...” She clasped her hands in front of
her chest and whispered, “I must use this power well.”
Even after such a great shock, Hannelore was
so forward-thinking. Her ability to get back on her feet so quickly made her
seem that much more like an archduke candidate of a greater duchy. In truth,
seeing how great she was made me feel dumb for having simply panicked and spun
my wheels in confusion. I needed to learn from her example and focus instead on
how I could use the ritual to our benefit.
Assuming I can manage how much mana I put into it
a little better, this ritual would probably be useful for things like the Lord
of Winter hunt. I’ll need to do some research.
“There have been many unexpected developments
today, but there have been many new discoveries as well,” Lestilaut said.
“Overall, this has been a productive use of our time.”
“We are glad to have been of use,” Wilfried
replied.
“So, when will Ehrenfest perform its ritual?”
Hannelore tugged on Lestilaut’s cape.
“Brother, we saw Lady Rozemyne’s ritual mere moments ago, did we not?”
He shook his head. “She was copying us, not
performing an Ehrenfest religious ceremony. The agreement was that, in return
for us showing our ritual, they would show us theirs.”
As he said, we had yet to uphold our side of
the bargain.
“I’ll ask again—when will Ehrenfest perform?”
Lestilaut said, staring at me intently. His red eyes were overflowing with
curiosity, and for good reason—we had already surprised him twice today, and
that was with his own duchy’s rituals.
“Well...” I scanned the faces before me. There
was the apologetic Hannelore; the curious Lestilaut; the eager, quivering
Clarissa; and the rest of the Dunkelfelger students. I smiled at them all and
said, “Lord Lestilaut, contact us once you have finished all of your classes.
Relations between our duchies would suffer if Aub Dunkelfelger were to believe
that Ehrenfest books and rituals have caused your grades to plummet.”
“That is a wonderful idea, Lady Rozemyne,”
Hannelore said cheerfully. Everyone else looked at Lestilaut, questioning
whether he could manage it.
“Hmph!” Lestilaut scoffed. “Once I start
taking them seriously, mere classes will take me no time at all to complete!”
And with that declaration, he flourished his cape and strode away from the
training grounds.
Talking and Tallying
“Rozemyne, what do you mean you will be
leaving today’s report to everyone else?” Wilfried asked.
“Well, given that practically everyone in the
dormitory was at the training grounds, your and Charlotte’s apprentice scholars
included, I don’t see there being any confusion about what to write. Anyone can
do it. I would rather spend this time preparing for tomorrow.”
There was much to report about today, but only
my retainers could tally up all the answers we’d collected. Our follow-up on
the questionnaire had been very abruptly scheduled to take place tomorrow in
our tea party room, meaning we had to prepare tables and chairs. Plus, even
though it wasn’t going to be an actual tea party, we were still going to be
hosting Hannelore, an archduke candidate, to some degree.
“You may inform our father that I will write
to him the day after tomorrow,” I continued, “and that my letter will be
regarding our joint research with Dunkelfelger. I entrust the more urgent
report to all of you.”
After assigning my attendants to prepare the
tea party room, I went over the procedure for tallying the answers with
Leonore, Judithe, and my apprentice scholars.
“I-Is that my sister doing scholar work?!”
came an exclamation. “I can’t believe it!”
“Theodore, you only embarrass yourself when
you make such remarks,” Judithe replied, puffing up with indignation. “I went
to the temple as a guard all the time, you know. I may not be on Philine’s
level, but I can do some work.”
In truth, back then, she had stealthily asked
Philine and Roderick to submit her completed tasks along with theirs so that
she wouldn’t have to be in the presence of the terrifying Ferdinand. There was
no need to reveal that heartwarming secret here, though.
After all, she’s finally getting Theodore to look
at her with respect. I need to help her protect her big-sister pride!
“Lady Rozemyne’s guard knights help with
paperwork in the temple,” Leonore said. “Matthias, Laurenz, you will need to do
the same when spring comes, whether you want to or not. You may use this
opportunity to observe the process while guarding us.”
“Ngh... I’m so bad at scholar work,” Laurenz
muttered, the color draining from his face. “That was one of the reasons I
became a knight in the first place...” Something told me that he and Angelica
would hit it off right away.
Matthias simply responded with a calm nod. He
didn’t seem particularly averse to doing scholar work.
“Milady, do start teaching the others how to
tally on your behalf,” Rihyarda said. “You will need to host Lady Hannelore
tomorrow.”
“But I am leading the joint research, am I
not?” I replied. My intention had been to do some of the tallying myself, since
I was something of an apprentice scholar too, but Rihyarda was evidently
against the idea. We certainly couldn’t ask Hannelore to join us in doing such
menial work, nor could we leave hosting her to my attendants, since I was going
to be present as a fellow archduke candidate.
“Will you not need to discuss the details of
that final ritual with Lady Hannelore?” Leonore asked. “It seems to be unique
to Dunkelfelger, unlike the song taught to the apprentice knights.” She wanted
to know what kind of prayer Hannelore had chanted in the arena, but she hadn’t
been able to hear it properly. The prayer had also been spoken in an ancient
language, which had only made it harder for her to understand.
Leonore continued, “It is quite impressive
that Lady Hannelore could speak the ancient words so fluently—especially when
she was not raised in the temple with such easy access to the bible as you
were, Lady Rozemyne.”
I nodded along with her praise, at which point
Lieseleta held out a sheet of paper listing tomorrow’s topics of conversation.
“Their history book was thick and old, as we all saw,” she noted, giggling to
herself. “I am sure that Dunkelfelger is filled with such ancient documents.
Perhaps you could consult them about that? It will be a thrilling topic for you
two bookworms.”
“That is a wonderful idea, Lieseleta.”
I had just been made aware of what she had actually meant by that statement: “Leave the tallying work
to your scholars and gather intelligence that only an archduke candidate can
obtain.” It really was a wise suggestion, so I nodded my assent.
It was coming up on second-and-a-half bell
when we finished preparing the tea party room. We had secured space for the
scholars to work, as well as a separate table at which Hannelore and I could
talk. I’d ensured that we had plenty of cookies, since they were easy to grab
and eat, while my attendants were prepared to pour tea at any time.
The ringing of a bell prompted Gretia to open
the door, allowing a group of Dunkelfelger students to enter. Leading them was
Hannelore.
“Good day, Lady Rozemyne. I thank you ever so
much for hosting us.”
“Good day, Lady Hannelore. We should be the
ones thanking Dunkelfelger for assisting us. I thank you ever so much for
everything.”
Brunhilde guided Hannelore and her retainers
to a table where tea had already been served, while Gretia guided the
apprentice scholars to the table where the tallying was being done.
“Lady Rozemyne, we have this from Lady
Clarissa,” Gretia said upon her return, presenting me with a thick letter. “It
is for Hartmut and describes yesterday’s ritual.”
I nodded. “Check its contents and then send it
straight to Ehrenfest, if you would.”
“As you will.”
It wasn’t an urgent task by any means, but
Gretia was clearly stressed about serving students from a top-ranking duchy
like Dunkelfelger. I thought this would give her a chance to take a much-needed
breather, and it seemed that I was right; a faint smile arose on her lips when
she heard that I was giving her permission to leave.
“Now then,” came Philine’s voice, “allow me to
explain how to do the tallying.”
Everyone was listening to her intently.
As we watched the apprentice scholars work, I
sipped the tea that Brunhilde had poured for me and then bit into one of the
cookies, demonstrating that they were safe for Hannelore to eat.
Philine was positively blazing through the
answer sheets, working much faster than any of Dunkelfelger’s apprentice
scholars. Clarissa was watching her all the while, wearing an amusing look of
surprise.
“You are rather good at this, Philine,”
Clarissa eventually said.
“I cannot even compare to Hartmut, but I did
spend a lot of time training under Lord Ferdinand, so I have developed
something of a talent for paperwork,” Philine replied with a proud giggle.
Clarissa made a face that seemed to betray her
vexation, then said, “As one who will soon be Lady Rozemyne’s scholar, I cannot
fall behind.” She then started on the tallying with a look of grave
seriousness; her pride as the archscholar of a top-ranking duchy must have been
challenged.
Hannelore forced a smile. “Had I known that
Clarissa could be this focused, I might not have needed to come at all...”
To nobody’s surprise, Clarissa usually became
uncontrollably excited when learning new information about me or getting the
opportunity to participate in our joint research.
Hannelore continued, “Her excitement has been
particularly intense this year. At times, I even thought it might be part of an
act—that perhaps she was emphasizing her position as your vassal so that she
would not have to be separated from her fiancé in the temple. But no—what we
see now is the real truth.” A dreamy smile arose on her face. “Her love is
pure, and this is its unyielding strength.”
One of the attendants behind Hannelore sighed.
“Milady, I do not imagine Clarissa is considering things that deeply...”
I agree. Clarissa is just like Hartmut; she
didn’t pick her partner based on love.
“That is what my attendant, Cordula, always
says, Lady Rozemyne, but what do you think? I am of the opinion that one must
be truly in love to stay up all night writing letters, even to the point of
sleep deprivation.”
Royal Academy Love Stories contained a similar tale of a young apprentice scholar. To guarantee
that her correspondence reached her fiancé, due to her duchy’s situation, she
had to give them directly to his lord; and to ensure that she never missed
these opportunities, she would write long into the night, even after everyone
else had gone to sleep. Hannelore had evidently fallen in love with this
mindset.
“I pray with all my heart that Clarissa’s
affections are rewarded and that she is forever bound to her one true love,”
Hannelore concluded.
It’s cute that she’s supporting them so
innocently...
I couldn’t be so blissfully naive, though—not
when I’d found out how Clarissa first proposed to Hartmut. I certainly agreed
that they were suitable for one another, but “true love” didn’t even factor
into it.
The attendant named Cordula moved a few sweets
onto a plate and then poured some fresh tea for her lady. Hannelore sipped it
calmly, then changed the subject.
“Ehrenfest’s apprentice scholars truly are
skilled. They aren’t at all inferior to our own.”
“I thank you ever so much for your praise,” I
said.
Philine wasn’t the only one demonstrating her
skills; Roderick and Leonore were doing an excellent job as well. Judithe and
Muriella were fumbling a bit, since they still weren’t used to the paperwork,
but they were still putting up a good fight against Dunkelfelger’s apprentice
scholars, who were completely unaccustomed to this new tallying system.
“Um, though it does seem that some of your
guard knights are among them as well...” Hannelore continued in a troubled
voice. She had most likely recognized Judithe and Leonore, considering the
frequency with which they accompanied me to tea parties.
“Indeed,” I said with a smile and a nod. “Our
guard knights assist with paperwork in the temple, so they are perfectly
capable of assisting us here when the need arises. To my knowledge, Clarissa is
an apprentice scholar who can perform the duties of a guard knight; perhaps it
would be best to view this as a similar occurrence.”
“Similar to a scholar of the sword...”
Hannelore muttered, uncertain. “A knight of the quill, then, perhaps?”
Clarissa had said that most Dunkelfelgerians
wanted to be knights. As such, while the duchy had many scholars of the sword,
there were no “knights of the quill,” as Hannelore had so aptly described it.
The situation was quite the opposite among my retainers, with most of my guards
also carrying out scholar work under Damuel.
“Lady Hannelore,” I said, “I wish to ask you a
few questions about the ritual you performed yesterday.”
“What manner of questions?”
“Lord Lestilaut mentioned that the staff you
used belonged to Verfuhremeer the Goddess of Oceans. I must confess, it was my
first time hearing of that particular divine instrument. Can you tell me more
about it?”
“Our duchy’s archduke candidates see the aub
present it during rituals, and we learn to make it ourselves. However, while we
describe it as Verfuhremeer’s divine instrument, I cannot say whether that is
accurate. The spell we use to morph our schtappes is the same as the one taught
in the knight course for creating normal staves.”
In short, like Lestilaut, she didn’t know much
beyond that.
“I remember hearing the crashing of waves as
you swung the staff, so I do believe it belongs to Verfuhremeer,” I said.
“Would it be right to say that Dunkelfelgerians have been morphing their
schtappes without knowing that they are creating a divine instrument?”
“By ‘the crashing of waves,’ are you referring
to the abrupt sound that started during the ritual...?” Hannelore asked. “It
was my first time hearing it, and I was unsure what it was at the time, but do
you mean to say it has a connection to the Goddess of Oceans? Dunkelfelger is a
landlocked duchy, so I must express my doubts...”
According to Hannelore, on no other occasion
had the ritual returned any blessings, and what I had interpreted as the sound
of waves was to her a bizarre and unpleasant noise. She wanted to know the
reason for this strange occurrence more than anyone.
“Lady Hannelore, could you perhaps repeat what
you said at the time?” I asked. “I might be able to deduce which god you were
praying to.”
“Certainly.”
Hearing the prayer only confirmed my
suspicions: the ritual was for offering mana to the Goddess of Oceans.
“There was information about this ritual on
one of the ivory slates in the underground archive we visited the other day,” I
said. “Its purpose is to dispel extreme heat, but given what happened
yesterday, we can conclude that the mana offered also provides a calming
effect. Perhaps its ‘cooling’ properties apply to more than just actual
temperatures.”
Could we have used this ritual to steal a
riesefalke egg without the risk of Mount Lohenberg erupting? As I pondered that
question, Hannelore muttered about wanting to go back to the archive to check
that slate. She considered this a matter of great importance, as the
distinction would confirm whether the ritual purely removed blessings or
whether it could use mana to calm the excitement of all those within a certain
area.
“Still, to think there are divine instruments
that even you do not know about, Lady Rozemyne... You can deduce whom a ritual
is for just by reading its prayer, so I thought you knew everything about the
gods.”
“I am familiar only with the information found
in the bible. Most of my knowledge is about the two supreme gods and the
Eternal Five, who are worshipped in the chapel, and Mestionora the Goddess of
Wisdom, whom I personally admire. With all that said, the extent of my
understanding is that the first king received a Grutrissheit from her.”
There were a ton of subordinate gods, but the
bible didn’t list their divine instruments or anything like that. Instead, it
focused on the two supreme gods and the five primary gods.
“In that case, perhaps you will learn
something new from the Dunkelfelger book I decided to bring to this bookworm
tea party,” Hannelore said with a small, happy smile. “It is an old collection
of stories about gods not discussed in the bible. Some of them may have been
added by later generations without oversight, but there is also one about
Mestionora. I expect that someone as well informed on divine matters as you
will enjoy them.”
“Why, I greatly look forward to it.”
My excitement was through the roof. I would
read any and all books that were bestowed upon me!
“Lady Rozemyne, the tallying is done,” Philine
announced as she handed me the results. A quick look revealed that the
apprentice knights who had earned divine protections were overwhelmingly from
Dunkelfelger, and most of said protections were from fighting-type gods.
“So, each year, only a few students receive
none at all...” I commented. “This explains why Dunkelfelger receives special
treatment from the professors during the ceremony for obtaining divine
protections.”
Here in the Royal Academy, news of a student
from Dunkelfelger receiving multiple divine protections or the divine
protection of a god whose element they did not possess was considered anything
but interesting. Ehrenfest had received so much attention for accomplishing the
unexpected, but it seemed strange to me that nobody had looked into the duchy
where this was a regular occurrence before now.
Though I suppose any attempts to investigate
would soon deteriorate into nonstop ditter talk.
Ditter was an essential part of our joint
research; perhaps the other duchies had chosen not to broach the subject
because they knew what it would entail.
“That said, I wonder how many apprentice
scholars and attendants receive divine protections...” I muttered. It had only
been intended as a passing remark, but Hannelore actually replied.
“Our scholars of the sword and attendants
receive divine protections as well, so, um... I expect we contribute to the
total number more than any other duchy.”
Now I wanted to know even more about
Dunkelfelger’s internal affairs. Just how many of their scholars and attendants
had divine protections from fighting-type gods?
“I wish to research your apprentice scholars
and attendants as well,” I said. “Clarissa, could you conduct the questionnaire
and send the results to me?”
“Ah, is this a job for me specifically?
Understood. I will pour my heart and soul into this task so that I may be of
even the slightest use to you,” Clarissa declared, clenching her fists
gleefully. I told Roderick to give her the papers she would need.
“Looking at the results here, the apprentice
knights of other duchies really did not receive many divine protections,” I
observed. “And seventy percent of those who did are from Dunkelfelger.” This
was an enormous disparity, even when one accounted for Dunkelfelger being a
greater duchy with more apprentice knights than average.
Incidentally, not a single person from
Ehrenfest had received the divine protection of a fighting-type god. I could
only assume this was because the apprentice knights hadn’t taken the song and
dance seriously—which was understandable, as they hadn’t understood their
purpose—and because my blessings had stripped them of their need to pray to the
gods.
In effect, all those blessings I gave were akin
to me babying them. That’s no good.
I needed to have the apprentice knights pray
more so that they could obtain divine protections through their own power. They
could learn a lot from Philine, who had even obtained protections outside her
elements.
“Um, Lady Rozemyne... we have not been
offering our mana when performing the ritual...” Hannelore said. “Should we
have still received protections for it?”
Their most recent performance had returned
significant blessings because of all the mana I’d donated through
Leidenschaft’s spear, but that wasn’t what happened normally. Those from
Dunkelfelger hadn’t offered their mana during the ritual, and no blessings had
rained down on them after it.
“The ritual is essentially a large-scale
prayer,” I said, “and you were using a schtappe transformed into a spear, so
perhaps some mana was provided inadvertently. This seems even more likely when
you consider that the divine protections most Dunkelfelgerians receive are from
the gods named in the prayer.” It was entirely possible that they had been
making offerings to the gods even without the expected blessings to prove it.
“Furthermore,” I continued, “as the rituals
are performed before and after ditter, it may be that playing more often makes
one more likely to receive the divine protections. This data here shows that
the apprentice knights who obtained protections from multiple subordinates also
participated in many games.”
My conclusions weren’t immediately apparent
from the numerical results we’d gathered, so we would probably want to make a
graph of some sort for when it came time for our presentation. As I considered
which was the best way to display our data, Hannelore spoke up timidly.
“Lady Rozemyne... last night, we were
discussing whether even Dunkelfelger could obtain those blessings if we were to
transform our schtappes into Leidenschaft’s spear.”
In the Ehrenfest Dormitory, we had spent our
time seriously contemplating the best ways to stop my rampages and to keep the
greater duchy from asking anything of us. In the Dunkelfelger Dormitory,
however, their greatest concern had been returning the ritual to its proper,
original state. I could understand why they had taken such an interest in the
matter; the performance they had so recently seen had ended up being very
blatantly different from what they were used to.
“I expect you will be able to recreate the
divine instruments by touching the real ones and channeling your mana into them
until you can clearly visualize them in your mind,” I said. “My retainers were
able to do this at our temple. I should note, however, that the process uses a
surprising amount of mana. I would assume that only archnobles and above will
be capable of maintaining the divine instrument all throughout the ritual, and
those who offer their mana during the performance will not be left with enough
to play.”
Hannelore and her retainers nodded, unfazed.
Dunkelfelger’s nobles were prepared to venture even into the temple if doing so
would secure them blessings for their ditter games. Each duchy had its own
standards and perspectives, so it was hard to predict these things.
That said, I’m pretty sure the real spear from
the temple would suffice as long as you offered up enough mana; no need to make
one from your schtappe.
I decided to keep that thought to myself. I
wanted them to help change public opinion of the temple, and what better way
than to have them start going to their own temple and improving the conditions
there?
“The blessing changes depending on how much
mana is offered, so if you desire many blessings, then you will need a great
deal of mana,” I said. “Rather than having one person try to shoulder that
burden alone, I believe it would be best for a large group to provide their
mana collaboratively. The prayers in the temple are for the benefit not of
oneself but of others, so no matter how much mana a person offers, they will
personally receive nothing in return.”
Hannelore stared at me with wide eyes. “In
that case, Lady Rozemyne... you provided that much mana, and yet...”
“Indeed. I did not receive a blessing from
yesterday’s ritual. That is why I was able to move without issue while the
apprentice knights were falling over themselves.”
It seemed to me that the ritual was intended
not for one person, but for a group of people, who would contribute their mana
in small bits to form a large collective whole. Hannelore seemed to agree with
that.
“However,” I continued, “do take care if you
perform the ritual with any laynobles present. There is a chance that they
might lose so much mana that they collapse.”
“Pardon?”
“Having several people perform a ritual in
tandem allows their mana to flow more freely. Thus, if there is too wide of a
gap in their mana capacities, then those with less to give will soon end up in
danger. I understand that your duchy is bold enough to leap straight into doing
things, but do be careful.”
Dunkelfelger would try basically anything for
the sake of ditter. It was crucial that I give them these warnings now;
otherwise, they were going to end up in too much of a state to even play.
“I am aware that, in the past, the ritual was
performed the day before a ditter game rather than on the day of,” Hannelore
said. “Could there perhaps be a reason for that?”
“I would assume it was so that those due to
play had time to recover their mana or to grow accustomed to the blessings.
Either way, I am sure there was a good reason. Small changes can lead to
massive alterations over time; I would advise that you carefully research the
ritual so that the custom you have preserved for so long does not collapse.”
“We thank you ever so much for your advice,”
she said with a nod, a pleasant smile on her face. “We will take great care.”
Once our meeting was over and the
Dunkelfelgerians had taken their leave, we returned to the common room.
The next task on my to-do list was turning the
data we had collected into graphs while teaching Philine and the others how to
do the same. As expected, I was more fond of working than I was of sitting
around discussing things. It didn’t feel like I was actually involved in the
research when I wasn’t physically doing anything.
It wasn’t long before we had all of our
findings neatly arranged. I marveled at our work, satisfied with how much
easier the information was to interpret—and it was then that other apprentice
scholars started coming over and asking what we had made. It seemed that
documents with graphs weren’t yet a thing here in the Royal Academy.
“Rozemyne, won’t that cause a fuss during the
Interduchy Tournament?” Wilfried asked.
“I would hope so. Besides, isn’t our joint
research causing a fuss already?”
Despite my response, I suddenly began to feel
uneasy. As much as I preferred our data with graphs, I decided to write to
Ferdinand and get his opinion first.
Frustrating Tea Parties
After arriving at Hirschur’s laboratory, I
gave Raimund my letter for Ferdinand and then got to work making new prototype
magic tools.
Right now, Raimund was researching a magic
tool that would shine various lights when a certain time came. It would project
colors onto the pages of books so that even the most obsessive reader would
stare up in surprise, offering the perfect opportunity for someone to snatch
the book from their hands and end their reading time.
I’d wanted to prioritize making a tool that
would automatically return books to their respective shelves, but my attendants
had fervently disagreed; according to them, my library would absolutely need
one of these light-shining magic tools.
“Research the light-shining magic tool first,”
Hirschur said. “Then you can research the magic tool for returning books.”
“Is that your assessment, Professor Hirschur?”
Raimund asked. “I couldn’t agree more.”
They both immediately concurred with my
attendants, since they were the ones preparing their meals.
I can understand having a weakness for delicious
food, but at least try to disguise it! Besides, I’m the one who gets them to make all those meals for you! Hmph!
“Well, I must be off,” Raimund said. “I need
to go to the library to research the light magic tool.”
“I should go as well,” I added. “That way, I
can ask Schwartz and Weiss about the docu—”
“Raimund is more than capable of asking on
your behalf, milady. Anyway, has the royal family not forbidden you from
visiting the library? If you wish to read books, we may return to your room.”
Bwehhh... I wanna go toooo...
I slumped my shoulders; being told that I
couldn’t go somewhere just made me want to go there even more. Sure, there were
enough books in my room to keep me occupied for now... but the moment I
finished them, my inability to visit the library would really start wearing me
down.
“Lady Rozemyne, were you not going to deliver
these documents to Professor Hirschur?” Lieseleta asked, handing me a stack of
papers. It was a transcription of all the research on Schwartz and Weiss.
“Professor Hirschur, this is research left
behind by someone who studied Schwartz and Weiss in the past,” I said. “You may
only borrow it, so transcribe whatever you wish to keep. I intend to show this
to Ferdinand eventually, so I cannot let you have it permanently.”
“Where did you find these documents? I do not
recall them being on the library’s second floor.”
“They were in a closed-stack archive, I am
told. Professor Solange lent them to me.”
Hirschur looked over the papers and then
blinked. “Oh, yes... I often send my disciples to seek documents, but I have
never consulted Solange myself. Just how many documents are in this
closed-stack archive?”
“Well, it contains material so valuable that
it must be preserved with magic tools. Professor Solange was previously unable
to confirm its actual contents, but that has changed now that Schwartz and
Weiss are moving again and the new archlibrarian is providing additional mana.
You should go talk to her.”
The library had been suffering from a serious
mana shortage back when Solange was the only one protecting it, which had meant
she was unable to supply the closed-stack archive with the mana it needed. Many
of the documents had started to deteriorate as a result. Hortensia now had her
hands full trying to ensure that everything was adequately supplied; keeping
Schwartz and Weiss operational wasn’t enough.
So, in other words, the library still needs more
mana.
“Lady Rozemyne, you say that you plan to
deliver these papers to Ferdinand, but surely he is in no position to be doing
research.”
“At present, he has neither a room nor a
hidden room, meaning he has nowhere to do any research. However, as he wrote in
his letter that he wishes to do some nonetheless, I thought it best to preserve
some documents for him.”
Once he did eventually
receive a hidden room, my first course of action was going to be to cram Lessy
full of documents, tools, and materials, then head straight to Ahrensbach’s
castle.
Though I doubt Aub Ahrensbach will permit me to
fly over in my highbeast, so that will remain but a dream.
“Those who move to other duchies remain in
guest rooms until they are officially married,” I continued. “Ferdinand,
however, was sent over much sooner than usual. He will surely suffocate without
somewhere to retreat to. If only there were something we could do for him...”
In my eyes, we were both expressing our worry
for Ferdinand, but Hirschur seemed to recover in a heartbeat. “I shall carry
out research in his place and strive to do it every single day in his honor,”
she said, completely unfazed. “Perhaps you should return to your dormitory and
read, Lady Rozemyne. If you have any other useful documents, do bring them
over. Oh, and you would do well to send a report to Fraularm sooner rather than
later.”
Wha...? Come on, let’s talk about Ferdinand for a
little while longer.
Hirschur began transcribing the documents,
determined not to back down. There was little else for me to do until Raimund
finished his schematics—I couldn’t make any prototypes without them—so I
resigned myself to returning to my room and reading. I wanted to finish the
books I was currently borrowing so that I could take out even more.
As I whiled away the time reading in my room,
invitations for tea parties started to trickle in. The Royal Academy’s
socializing season was finally beginning. My attendants consulted Charlotte’s
and formed our plans; the two of us were going to be attending together.
At the same time, I arranged for a meeting
with Fraularm. As per Hirschur’s instructions, I needed to give her a second
report on the state of our research and point out that the first report for
Ferdinand had not been delivered.
Fraularm must have taken a personal interest
in the progress of our joint research; unlike when I was trying to schedule my
exam with her, she agreed to see me pretty much instantly.
As soon as I arrived to meet Fraularm, she
extended a hand to me, requesting my report. She was wearing gloves and made no
attempt to read the letter then and there. In truth, she was acting like
Ferdinand did when on guard against an attempted poisoning.
“Professor Fraularm... it seems that the first
report has still not reached Ferdinand,” I said. “Have you sent it to
Ahrensbach yet?”
“Is that so?” she replied, deliberately
avoiding my gaze. “Our scholars must be slacking. I certainly did send it.”
I put a hand on my cheek and sighed. “In that
case, I may need to consult Lady Detlinde. Such apathy from the scholars of a
greater duchy is quite troubling indeed. It must be especially troublesome for
you, as someone who specializes in collecting and organizing intelligence.”
“Indeed. Quite troublesome...” Fraularm said,
glancing my way with a fake smile plastered on her face. “Incidentally, Lady
Rozemyne... through what means are you keeping in contact with Lord
Ferdinand...?”
“He is my guardian; it is only natural that I
would have various means of communicating with him. Revealing any more than
that would be like giving Schutzaria’s shield to Leidenschaft, no?”
Fraularm huffed and then turned away from me
sharply—an unsurprising reaction considering that I had more or less said, “You
don’t need to know that. Just what are you trying to pull?”
“On a more important note,” I continued,
moving the conversation along, “do you know when Lady Detlinde will be
finishing her classes?”
“Now that is what I
would call giving Schutzaria’s shield to Leidenschaft,” she retorted.
“You are aware that I
need to schedule a cousins’ tea party with her and deliver her hairpins,
correct...? And, as you should also know, I am busy with joint research, and my
schedule is becoming increasingly packed with plans for other tea parties. As
such, I would consider my question to be nothing but reasonable. That said, if
you are insistent on keeping quiet, then please inform Lady Detlinde that I
will have my attendants deliver the hairpins some other time.”
My attendants only had a brief opportunity to
socialize this year, and they were striving to do as much as they could in that
time. I’d been focused on my books when they were coming to me with requests,
so I’d absentmindedly agreed to everything that was put before me. As a result,
my schedule was now completely packed.
Truth be told, I much preferred the idea of
reading more books to attending tea parties, but I needed to socialize with as
many duchies as possible; my aim was to improve the horrible reputation that
was plaguing both Sylvester and Ehrenfest as a whole. In that regard, I was
fully on board with delaying a tea party with Ahrensbach, a duchy that was
bound to spread negative rumors about us anyway.
I was willing to attend the cousins’ tea party,
since I’m curious about how Ferdinand is doing in Ahrensbach, but I can’t say
I’m too enthusiastic about it.
“Sister, we are receiving so many invitations
to tea parties,” Charlotte informed me upon my return to the dormitory. “Which
will you attend?”
“There are more?” I asked, taking the
invitations she had extended to me. I was already due to attend so many, and
the thought of sitting through even more—and surrendering even more of my
reading time—was especially annoying.
Charlotte gave me a consoling smile.
“Socializing season has just properly begun. Almost all duchies know from their
dormitory supervisors that you are busy with your joint research projects, so
they must want to secure a meeting with you as early as they can.”
That made sense; after all, as the Interduchy
Tournament grew nearer and nearer, everybody would end up too busy with their
research to attend tea parties.
“Furthermore,” Brunhilde added with a smile,
“this is the first time you have not needed to return home for the Dedication
Ritual.”
“I don’t think I’m physically capable of
socializing every day...” I said. “I’ll probably end up sick.”
Although I was getting healthier, biting off
more than I could chew would be dangerous. If we didn’t set aside at least two
days of reading for each day of tea parties, then I would probably collapse out
of the blue and at a terribly inconvenient moment.
“Indeed,” Brunhilde replied. “We do not know
when a summons might come from Dunkelfelger or the royal family, so we cannot
pack our schedule too tightly.”
Together, my attendants and I continued this
conversation while gradually working out how to allocate our time. We were
interrupted only when an ordonnanz flew into the room.
“This is Detlinde of Ahrensbach,” the bird
said. “I, too, have very little time in my schedule. Let us have our tea party
four days from now, in the afternoon.”
In other words, Fraularm had passed along our
message. I wasn’t particularly happy about Detlinde setting a date for our tea
party without speaking to my attendants or checking when I was free.
“I... can’t refuse this, can I?”
“This was at your request, was it not,
Sister?” Charlotte asked. “I will inform Wilfried that a date has been
decided.”
“Maybe, but this wasn’t my intention...” I
sighed. My only option was to adjust my schedule accordingly and then give
Detlinde my acknowledgment.
Today, I was going to be attending tea parties
with bottom-ranking duchies, but not with Charlotte; Ahrensbach’s inconsiderate
actions had required us to make a few changes to our schedule. Given that
Ehrenfest had taken a neutral stance during the civil war, some bottom-ranking
duchies apparently thought it would be easier to kiss up to us than to the
faction that had come out victorious.
According to Charlotte, we wanted to bring as
many bottom-ranking duchies under our wing as was feasible. The problem was
that I wasn’t sure how to go about doing this. Ehrenfest was in the midst of
reshaping its interduchy relations, and Charlotte didn’t know enough about the
subject to teach me anything of use. This was one of numerous problems that had
arisen from our sudden rise through the duchy rankings.
“Lady Rozemyne, famous Saint of Ehrenfest. We
have long awaited this opportunity to speak with you.”
For the most part, every tea party we attended
started with the other duchy singing Ehrenfest’s praises. They commended our
sweets and paid especially close attention to Rosina’s music, which they asked
to hear more of. I even noticed their musicians straining their ears as they
desperately attempted to memorize what they could.
Some books were exchanged as well.
“I was not able to bring a book last year,
since everything happened so suddenly, but this year, I received permission
from the aub ahead of time...” the representative of the other duchy explained.
Naturally, I wanted to be on good terms with
any duchy that was willing to lend me books. I accepted their generous offer
with a smile, then lent them some Ehrenfest books in return. As it turned out,
they were particularly excited to read them, as our books were now popular
among the top-ranking duchies.
As expected, it’s best to establish our trends at
the very top and then let them trickle down. By doing this, reading will spread
even further.
Unfortunately, my sincere interest lasted only
as long as our conversation about books. The bottom-ranking duchies were very,
very curious about how we had climbed the ranks, and once they began their
legitimately obstinate barrage of questions, I was forced to put on a fake
smile.
“It was just so sudden,” someone remarked. “Is
there some secret technique that Ehrenfest used to climb so far up the ranks in
just a number of years?”
“To think you are balancing three joint
research projects with greater duchies...” the representative continued. “You
truly are exceptional, Lady Rozemyne. Not only are you responsible for many
trends and in charge of several research projects, but you have also proven
that you are kindhearted enough to continue serving as High Bishop even after
being adopted. I must kneel before the astute eyes of Aub Ehrenfest, who
identified your talents and adopted you.”
“Everyone says that Aub Ehrenfest is a cruel
archduke who forces all archduke candidates other than his own children into
the temple. How tragic.”
Each time someone bad-mouthed Sylvester, I
disputed whatever rumor they were repeating and clarified that all of our archduke candidates passed through the farming
villages for Spring Prayer and the Harvest Festival. No matter how much I
argued my case, however, nobody believed me. Bizarrely enough, they would
always reply with something like “You truly are kind to protect him like that.”
But I’m not. It’s all true. Are you even
listening to me?!
Over and over again, Sylvester was insulted,
Wilfried and Charlotte were indirectly accused of having easy lives, and I was
upheld as a profound saint—the lone jewel of an otherwise cruel family. I
continued to speak out against such ideas, but I might as well have been
reasoning with a brick wall, and the tea party ended with me feeling in a worse
mood than when I’d entered.
I’m just glad that I made it through without unleashing
an indiscriminate “kill everything” Crushing wave. I really did a good job
keeping myself under control.
I returned to my room, and we gathered
together to reflect on our most recent tea party. “Am I the only one who has to
endure listening to such malicious words?” I asked, looking at my attendants
who had attended the tea party with me. “Do they say the same to Charlotte’s
face, I wonder?”
Brunhilde shook her head. “They would not dare
mention such rumors to the aub’s own children. I expect they feel comfortable
saying them to you as they are hoping to get on your good side, as you are an
adopted daughter, and many believe you are being abused.” Her voice was
noticeably harsher than usual, and although both she and Rihyarda were smiling
at me, I could tell that they had been equally frustrated by the tea parties.
“The aub and his children by blood were not
the only ones being treated with such contempt,” came a voice. “It may have
seemed that they were idolizing you, Lady Rozemyne, but even those ‘heralding’
you as a saint were being backhanded.”
“Gretia?”
“They called you a saint to emphasize that you
were raised in the temple. They mocked you for protecting the aub, insinuating
that you were merely blind to the worse treatment you receive, and proclaimed
you to be a very convenient and freely available source of mana.”
My initial thought was that Gretia was being
too negative in her evaluation, but she had felt strongly enough to speak up
instead of maintaining her usual silence. It seemed wise to take her input
seriously.
“You are most likely being viewed as a quiet,
weak-minded saint who exists only as a puppet for her guardians,” Gretia
continued. “You will need to consider the risk of someone trying to extort or
even kidnap you.”
“Understood,” responded not I, but Leonore.
After our reflection, we spoke more about how
people bad-mouthed the aub’s biological children behind their backs. As I
understood it, Charlotte and I were deliberately being made to attend tea
parties separately to lure the duchies hosting us into a false sense of
security. I was well aware that getting such duchies to expose their
maliciousness was a righteous cause, but I was finding it miserable having to
say, “You are all very kind, but Aub Ehrenfest is not that kind of man” over
and over and over again.
I vented my frustrations while taking a short
reading break, then had to attend even more frustrating tea parties. If someone
had warned me that this was going to be my fate, then I would have rather
missed socializing season entirely.
Guhhh... I wish they had summoned me
back to the temple this year.
As my misery continued, it came time for
Detlinde’s tea party for cousins. I was well aware that I needed to attend
whether I wanted to or not, but in my current state, I was really starting to
doubt that I would be able to bless her marriage to Ferdinand. It was going to
take my utmost concentration to not accidentally say, “Gimme back my precious
brain!”
“Matthias, Laurenz, Muriella, and Gretia will
sit this one out,” I said. “It would not be wise to reveal that several
children from the former Veronica faction have become my retainers all at
once.”
“Indeed. We do not know how much Ahrensbach
knows about the purge. Hiding what we can is certainly wise.”
How much information would we give, and how
much would we keep to ourselves? Those were the questions I discussed with
Wilfried and Charlotte.
Okay, Rozemyne. No matter how annoyed you get,
don’t let it show on your face. Keep things peaceful so that Ferdinand doesn’t
suffer more in Ahrensbach.
After carving this holy oath into my heart, I
made my way to the Ahrensbach tea party alongside my two siblings.
“Good day, everyone.”
“Good day, Lady Detlinde,” Wilfried replied,
greeting her as our representative. “Thank you ever so much for inviting us.”
We were promptly directed to our seats.
Meanwhile, Detlinde was looking notably pleased. She saw our attendants handing
over packages, smiled, and asked whether they were her hairpins.
“Today, my musician will be playing a new
Ahrensbach piece,” Detlinde announced. “It is a love song that Lord Ferdinand
composed for me, dedicated to Geduldh.” After giving a dainty laugh and
stroking her gorgeous blonde hair, she then turned to her musician, who nodded
in response and started to play. It was the same song about nostalgia that I’d
previously heard in music class—and it seemed that I wasn’t the only one
connecting the dots.
“We heard this in music class,” Wilfried
remarked.
“Indeed,” Detlinde said pridefully. “I got all
of our musically talented students to learn it so that word of its origins
would spread. Lord Ferdinand gave me this wonderful gift during the feast
marking the start of winter, so they did not have long to practice. I am sure
it was quite a struggle for them.”
Detlinde went on to sip her tea and take
demonstrative bites of the prepared sweets. We tried them for ourselves soon
after, which elicited an excited smile from our host.
“So,” she continued, “is it after our spring
Starbinding that Lord Ferdinand’s personal chefs are coming to Ahrensbach?”
Excuse me? I don’t think that was ever in the
cards.
The chefs who had previously worked for
Ferdinand in the temple were now working for Hartmut. I was in no position to
discuss the movements of other people’s personnel, so there was nothing I could
say in response. Maybe I would need to send a cautionary letter...
Detlinde gave a satisfied sigh and then set
down her cup. “I was initially depressed about being engaged to Lord
Ferdinand... but as of late, I have been feeling a little more optimistic about
our union.”
“You were depressed...?” I asked.
“But of course. I am going to be the next
archduchess of Ahrensbach, yet my father chose to pair me with a much older man
from a much lower-ranking duchy—a man who has no mother and was sent to
Ehrenfest’s temple. My disappointment was only natural.”
I was more surprised than I was annoyed. To
me, Ferdinand was an excellent archduke candidate who had come first-in-class
each year he attended the Royal Academy, all the while being a creative mad
scientist who could do anything from scholar work, to knight work, to serving
as the representative of an aub. However, to those who weren’t from Ehrenfest
and thus hadn’t seen all the work he’d done, and those who hadn’t been at the
Royal Academy to witness his great feats, he was apparently a terrible pick.
I guess that’s just how he looks from the
outside...
“I was quite relieved when I met him in person
and saw his kind personality and intelligence for myself,” Detlinde continued.
“He did vow to dedicate himself to me, after all.”
I assume she thinks he’s “kind” because she fell
victim to his fake smile? I mean, this misunderstanding is exactly what we
want, but at the same time... I really want her to know
that he’s playing her like a fiddle.
Of course, this deception had made her more
optimistic about marrying Ferdinand, so I silenced the mischievous voice in my
head and instead started promoting his competence.
“There remain countless legends about his
accomplishments in the Royal Academy. For example—”
“Yes, I know of them already. I gathered
intelligence to find out more about his true nature and was very surprised.
Given his many accomplishments, I see no reason why he cannot stand by my side
as my husband.”
Now I was annoyed.
He’s the amazing one here! The question should be whether you are worthy of standing beside him!
Again, I swallowed my words. Today was turning
out to be the ultimate test of patience.
Having noticed my internal struggle and fake
smile, Charlotte leaned into the conversation and promptly moved things along.
“If you were initially depressed about your engagement, Lady Detlinde, then was
your heart perhaps set on another? I remember a similar tale in Royal Academy Love Stories. If you have any particularly
affectionate memories, then I would be delighted to hear about them.”
Detlinde blinked a few times before averting
her gaze, her dark-green eyes downcast. “Yes, of course it was. The man even
returned my affections, but I am the next archduchess; I have no choice but to
marry the man whom my father chose for me. No matter how wondrous that past
flame may have been, no matter how desperately he conveyed his feelings to me,
I cannot give my hand to someone who does not suit me. I understood this even
back then... but our parting was still so very painful. Oh, how I loathed
Liebeskhilfe the Goddess of Binding for having brought us together, knowing
that we were destined to be separated.”
There was now a vacant look in Detlinde’s
eyes; her thoughts had presumably wandered to her past lover. The two had
apparently said their farewells during the summer, so this mystery man must
have been an Ahrensbach noble rather than someone from the Royal Academy.
I guess this engagement has been hard for her
too.
I’d assumed that Detlinde had everything to
gain from her upcoming marriage, since she hadn’t settled on an escort, and
there hadn’t been any rumors circulating through the Academy about her being
romantically involved with someone. In reality, despite what everyone else
thought, this engagement wasn’t desired by either participant. I couldn’t help
but sigh at how cruel the world could be.
“Thus, partially for the sake of my lost love,
I must become an excellent aub,” Detlinde concluded, making her resolve clear.
I was slightly moved, but also suddenly
worried; her repeated assertions about becoming the next aub suggested that the
current Aub Ahrensbach’s condition was far from stable. I decided to broach the
matter.
“Speaking of which, how fares Aub Ahrensbach’s
health? I was worried when Ferdinand was asked to move to Ahrensbach so
suddenly.”
Ferdinand would most likely be able to sustain
him with potions, but it was unlikely that Ahrensbach would trust the
concoctions of another duchy. He wasn’t even describing the aub’s health in his
letters to me, so I was concerned about whether the handover had gone smoothly.
Detlinde heaved a tragic sigh. “He certainly
cannot be described as ‘well.’ Thankfully, Lord Ferdinand has made reasonable
progress with his administrative work, so I would assume he is at peace.”
“I see...”
For her to be describing the aub as sickly
here at a tea party, he must have been extremely unwell indeed. Ehrenfest
already knew this from Ferdinand’s sudden departure, but from what I
understood, no other duchies were aware. At the very least, it wasn’t spoken
about in the Royal Academy.
“I wished to return to Ahrensbach immediately,
but Mother has said that, as the next aub, I must focus on socializing...”
Detlinde continued. It was only natural that she would want to rush to the side
of an ill family member. Still, despite all the stress she must have been
dealing with, she had somehow managed to contain those feelings, focus on her
classes, and put effort into socializing. Maybe I would need to reevaluate my
opinion of her a little.
Personally, if someone had told me that my dad
was unwell, I would have rushed through my classes and headed straight back to
Ehrenfest, where I would have stayed at his bedside no matter what he said.
“Thus, during this year’s graduation ceremony,
I must carry myself in a manner befitting the next Aub Ahrensbach.”
“I wish you well in your efforts.”
“That said, do you not think it Ehrenfest’s
duty to assist me with captivating my audience?”
“Um... Assist you how?” I asked, blinking. I
could tell that Detlinde viewed her request as being very straightforward, but
I didn’t have a clue what she was talking about. I turned to Wilfried and
Charlotte, but they were just as uncertain.
Irritated by our confusion, Detlinde continued
in a sharper tone: “I am asking that you teach me how to make my feystones
shine when I dance. That was how you drew so much attention to yourself during
whirling class, was it not? Personally, I considered it a gaudy and perhaps
even needy display, but I cannot deny its effectiveness. Will such theatrics
not be essential to my performance as the Goddess of Light during this year’s
dedication whirl, hm?”
I was stunned silent, barely able to
comprehend what she had just said.
Uh, what? If you attempt something like that,
then forget the Goddess of Light; you’re going to be more like the Goddess of
Neon Lamps! I mean, you’ll end up being so overly flashy! It might get you a
lot of attention, sure, but I don’t think any of it will be positive.
Wilfried and Charlotte were wearing similar
looks of disbelief.
“Lady Detlinde,” Wilfried said, “if you saw
Rozemyne practice, then I think you would understand that what you are
suggesting will make you stand out for all the wrong reasons. I do not believe
you should do something like that at your graduation, in the presence of the
royal family and other aubs.”
“Oh my. Wilfried... will you really not help
me in my time of need...?” Detlinde asked, feigning surprise. Even then, her
exaggerated display was nothing compared to what the rest of us were feeling.
Did she really intend to turn herself into a whirling glow stick?
“I do not believe that is the issue here...” I
said.
“Oh? Do you not wish to teach me?” Detlinde
asked, fixing me with a glare. “Are you so against the idea of sharing the
spotlight?”
“No, that is not what I meant... If you wish
to make your feystones shine, then you need only fill them with mana, no?”
“I will not be fooled so easily. There must be
some method you used to make so many shine at once. You relied on a magic tool
of some sort, I presume.”
Uh... no.
Detlinde went on to describe how the many
rainbow feystones of my hair stick had started to shine and said that such a
thing could not possibly have happened just from me channeling mana into them.
We would need to either masterfully change the subject or outright deceive her.
I was trying to figure out what to say when
Charlotte suddenly leaned forward and said in a low voice, “Lady Detlinde,
please keep what I am about to tell you to yourself.”
Detlinde similarly leaned closer, her eyes
sparkling. “I knew there was a secret.”
“The truth is, on the day of that unusual
display, my sister was exceptionally ill. She could not keep her mana under
control. Thus, the feystones truly were filled naturally; there was no magic
tool that made them shine.”
“So, she collapsed after whirling because...”
“Because she had not been able to keep her
mana from flowing out, yes.”
That wasn’t a lie, but it sure felt like one.
Charlotte was making it sound as though I had some kind of terrible disease.
Detlinde gave both Charlotte and me a
suspicious look, indicating that she wasn’t convinced.
Wilfried must have assumed this was a good
moment for him to step in, as he nodded and said, “That’s why Rozemyne wouldn’t
be able to make her feystones shine now even if she wanted to; she’s all
better. You know, if you really are set on doing it yourself, then why not get
some cheap feystones that can’t hold much mana?”
What are you doing?! Are you trying to turn her into the Goddess of Neon Lamps?!
Charlotte and I instinctively looked at one
another. We were both concerned, but Wilfried was just doing his best to help
her with the knowledge he had.
“This introduces the risk that they might turn
to gold dust if you pour too much mana into them,” he said, unmistakably
serious, “but they’ll shine more easily.”
“A splendid idea,” Detlinde said, clapping her
hands together.
Aaaaaah! She’s actually going to do it?!
“It will require a great deal of mana to make
even feystones of a lower quality light up like that...” Charlotte said, trying
to appeal to Detlinde’s better judgment. “I do not believe there is any need to
use so much for the dedication whirl.”
Detlinde smiled and shook her head. “Fear not;
I will practice ahead of time so that I can determine the lowest quality that
does not turn into gold dust. Oh, and may I see the hairpins I will be wearing
for my graduation ceremony?” she asked cheerfully.
Wilfried’s attendant got straight to work—and
after various checks, Detlinde’s apprentice attendant, Martina, accepted the
box.
“I intend to debut these at a tea party
consisting only of top-ranking duchies,” Detlinde said.
“In that case, we will need to show your
attendants how they are worn,” I replied. “Brunhilde.”
After responding with a brisk nod, Brunhilde
started teaching Martina, having been through this process countless times
before with Eglantine’s and Adolphine’s attendants, among others.
“Still, Lady Rozemyne—your rainbow feystones
truly are wonderful,” Detlinde remarked. “Should I ask my fiancé for a similar
ornament, I wonder?”
“I am sure he would be willing to make one for
you after your Starbind Ceremony.”
“Oh my. Only after?”
I took this opportunity to complain about a
matter of great importance to me.
“Well, as Ferdinand is staying in a guest room
until then, he has no workshop, no ingredients, and no tools with which to
work. There is nothing he can do. Ideally, he would at least have a workshop
for doing research, but...”
“Ah. There is no helping it, then.”
I had hoped that the allure of a rainbow
feystone ornament would encourage her to prepare a workshop at once, but her
response hadn’t sounded very positive. How unfortunate.
“Speaking of research,” Detlinde continued,
“how is your project with Ahrensbach faring? I must say, I am disappointed that
you have yet to send us a single report.”
“I delivered my second report to Professor
Fraularm several days ago,” I said, turning to Wilfried and Charlotte for
support. They both nodded, confirming that I was speaking the truth. “She
assured me that she sent the first to Ahrensbach, but has she really not said a
word to you? That is an unusual way to treat one’s archduke candidates...”
“To think she would send them to Ahrensbach
without showing them to me first...”
“It also seems that my first report never
reached Ferdinand. I struggle to believe that a greater duchy such as
Ahrensbach has any inattentive scholars, but I would be very appreciative if
you could investigate the matter as the next aub.” I made sure to add that it
was possible this was all a huge misunderstanding.
Detlinde gave a firm nod and said, “I shall do
just that. This research is being advertised as that of Lord Ferdinand’s
disciples, and anything that impacts my fiancé’s reputation impacts my own as
well. I would rather his name not be sullied through this project of yours.”
“To ensure that we meet his standards, Raimund
is constantly sending him letters and reports,” I replied. “We will only be
presenting that which receives his direct approval.”
“Yes, you do that.”
Her phrasing is really getting on my nerves...
but this might resolve our report incident, and it gives me an excuse to
contact Ferdinand more frequently. All’s well that ends well, I suppose...
As I was feeling satisfied with our unexpected
progress, Wilfried spoke with Detlinde. “Uncle went to Ahrensbach as Lady
Letizia’s instructor, but how has that been going?” he asked, eyeing her and
her retainers carefully. “He, um... has a tendency to be quite harsh when
educating others, so I am a bit worried.”
I could tell that Wilfried was actually trying
to find out whether Detlinde knew about Letizia and the royal decree. Her
retainers tensed up a little, but Detlinde herself merely rested a troubled
hand on her cheek.
“I do not socialize with Letizia much,” she
said, “so I could not tell you much about her. I departed for the Royal Academy
as soon as winter socializing began, but according to the letters I’ve
received, Lord Ferdinand is working rather hard on his administrative duties.
Surely he has no time to be teaching some child.”
This pretty much confirmed it: Detlinde was
completely blind to the significance of Ferdinand moving to Ahrensbach to teach
Letizia. She didn’t realize that she was only a temporary, interim aub—and,
upon sensing this, Wilfried gave her a sympathetic look.
“More importantly, look at this,” Detlinde
continued, redirecting the focus of our conversation. “It was a gift given to
me by someone from Lanzenave who visited Ahrensbach during the summer.”
What followed was a slurry of uninteresting
chatter as Detlinde bragged about her duchy, her fiancé, or some other person
with whom she was connected, then pointed out how she stood above them all as
Ahrensbach’s next aub. She clearly wanted us to praise her or give her advice
on how to strengthen her duchy’s influence.
As our tea party continued, Detlinde made no
attempt to inquire about or even mention the purge happening in Ehrenfest. I
started to wonder whether she really was oblivious—whether Georgine was
intentionally keeping her unaware and excluding her from her plan.
Detlinde continued to prattle on and on about
herself and her position as the next aub... and soon enough, our meeting came
to an uneventful end.
“That was tiring...”
Such were my first words upon our return to
the Ehrenfest Dormitory. We had spent the entire tea party being expected to
prop up our host, and as it had been a private tea party without guests from
other duchies, we had been treated entirely like a lesser, inferior duchy while
everything went as Detlinde wished. It really had been exhausting.
To me, the worst part had been when Detlinde
started bragging about the legendary tales of Ferdinand—which she had
apparently gathered from other students and those who had attended alongside
him—as though they were based on her own accomplishments. I’d only barely
suppressed the urge to scream that he had still been from Ehrenfest when all
those things had taken place.
“I was fearful of what she might know about Ehrenfest’s
current situation and prepared for her to start probing us,” Charlotte said,
“but I evidently worried for nothing.”
I shook my head. “Lady Detlinde might have
been oblivious, but there were moments when her retainers seemed especially
tense. I expect that some of them know more than she does.”
Wilfried frowned, his face clouded with
concern. “I know this isn’t our problem, but I’m kind of worried about Lady
Detlinde. Is she gonna be okay as the next aub when her own retainers are
hiding so much from her?”
“Perhaps they are doing it because she is only
planned to be a temporary aub,” Charlotte said.
Indeed, considering their behavior, I was
fairly certain that Detlinde’s retainers were actively hiding information from
her. The real question was whether they were carrying out Aub Ahrensbach’s will
or enacting some plot by Georgine.
“I feel like that’ll just make things worse
when she eventually does find out, but...” Wilfried trailed off.
“That is something for those of Ahrensbach to
think about,” I interjected with a sigh. “As long as it doesn’t impact
Ferdinand, it’s nothing for us to bother ourselves with.”
Wilfried glared at me; his dark-green eyes
really were just like Detlinde’s. “Your tone was a little cold there, Rozemyne.
Aren’t you worried about Lady Detlinde?”
I could guess that Wilfried related to
Detlinde in some regards; after all, he had once been kept in the dark,
manipulated, and fooled into tarnishing his own reputation. Unfortunately for
him, I was so exhausted from dealing with her garbage that my heart was
completely unmoved. The fact that I hadn’t outright said, “She can explode for
all I care” deserved a medal, if you asked me.
“If she is still so unaware despite her
position as the next aub and having so many retainers by her side, then it must
be the will of Aub Ahrensbach. I am far more concerned about her doing
something that results in Ferdinand getting punished by association.”
“Uncle can manage. He’s strong enough on his
own.”
Hearing him worry about Detlinde but not
Ferdinand made something inside of me snap. “Ferdinand is not in the same
position that he was in before, when he was in Ehrenfest; he has few people he
can trust and no environment in which to make new magic tools. And on top of
protecting himself, he must also protect Lady Letizia. I think you seem cold, Wilfried.”
I would rather he worry about his uncle, the
man who had worked his fingers to the bone for his sake, than some nuisance who
had no value to us other than being a way for us to contact Ferdinand.
Wilfried and I continued to glare at one
another until Charlotte gave a heavy sigh. “Brother, Sister, neither one of you
is being cold; you are simply worried about different people. The fact that you
are fighting over something so trivial just goes to show how exhausted the two
of you must be.”
“Charlotte...”
“You’re right. My bad.”
Having been admonished by our little sister,
Wilfried and I apologized to each other and then had our attendants brew tea so
that we could calm ourselves and start going over the tea party.
“By having Lady Detlinde, ignorant as she is,
take center stage, they were able to hide their machinations—that is, Lady
Georgine’s actions and intentions—even more thoroughly than would normally be
the case,” I said. “This is rather painful for Ehrenfest.”
We had spent the entire tea party paying lip
service to Detlinde’s boastful remarks and learned absolutely nothing new about
Ahrensbach in the process. That realization suddenly made me feel all the more
tired.
The tea parties didn’t end there; before I
could even recover from the exhaustion of our time spent with Detlinde, I found
myself needing to meet with some middle- and bottom-ranking duchies. I was
still feeling absolutely miserable, so my fake smile was even more phony than
usual.
This time, our sweets were the focus of
excessive praise, with the participants even asking for the recipe. I decided
to mention that Dunkelfelger had developed its own kind of pound cake made with
its local specialty, rohres.
“They used their local specialty...? Why,
that’s splendid. I will get my chefs to follow their example at once.”
“You certainly are on good terms with
Dunkelfelger, Lady Rozemyne. You are even collaborating on research...”
“We of Immerdink asked to join but were
refused. We only wanted to be of some assistance...”
Every duchy was interested in our joint
research, since it provided an excellent chance to deepen one’s bonds with
greater duchies. It was nice that this tea party wasn’t just a slew of negative
rumors about Sylvester and the rest of my family, unlike my meeting with
exclusively bottom-ranking duchies, but I didn’t want to listen to nonstop
whining from those who hadn’t been allowed to join our research.
“Perhaps we will have an opportunity to
collaborate next time,” I noted, putting a swift end to this topic of
conversation. From there, I started talking about Ehrenfest’s books; some of
the students here had already read our new volume after borrowing copies from
Charlotte during other tea parties.
“Lady Lueuradi of Jossbrenner, I am told that
you borrowed a copy from Charlotte as well,” I said. “Have you finished it
already?”
“Oh, yes, I did. Last year’s volume of Royal Academy Love Stories was truly delightful, so I was on
the edge of my seat for the new release.”
Lueuradi was here as an archnoble
representative for Jossbrenner the Tenth, and she leapt at this opportunity to
speak at length about Royal Academy Love Stories, her
light-green eyes sparkling all the while. I was relieved to know that everyone
was focused on books now.
“Lady Rozemyne, how are things with your
fiancé, Lord Wilfried?” Lueuradi asked. “Do you share a wondrous romance like
in the stories?”
I couldn’t help but falter in the face of so
many hopeful stares. “Um... Our love is familial and nothing like what can be
found in books. That said, is there not value in such stability? My mother says
that stories should have dramatic peaks and valleys, but I would rather my own
life be an even line.”
I was hoping that my lame response would make
everyone tire of the discussion and move on, but Lueuradi continued to press me
on the matter. “Oh my... You would say that your romance is so plain despite
that magnificent hair ornament he has given you?”
“It is magnificent,
isn’t it?” someone said in agreement. “It has so many rainbow feystones. Their
love and passion is clear for all to see.”
Because members of the royal family and
greater duchies had started gifting hairpins during their graduation
ceremonies, students of middle- and bottom-ranking duchies were beginning to
view hair ornaments as romantic objects that one received from one’s lover.
They measure love by the fanciness of one’s hair
ornament? That’s news to me. No way can I ever tell them I got this from
Ferdinand and not from my fiancé, Wilfried.
Keeping those thoughts in mind, I explained
that my hair stick was a gift from all of my
guardians, taking care to keep the details consistent with what I had already
told others. This would more or less shatter the fantasies of these young
girls, but I needed to emphasize that Ferdinand had designed it, else
Detlinde’s inevitable hairpin disaster would give him a bad name.
“This hair stick was not a gift from Wilfried
alone,” I said. “My guardians prepared the rainbow feystones, and my mentor,
Ferdinand, designed the ornament.”
“My... Given how much they all must care about
you, it seems strange to think that they sent you to the temple. You do not
need to cover for your aub, Lady Rozemyne; we are on your side.”
Once again, Sylvester was being treated as a
villain. Having to correct people all the time was getting seriously
exhausting.
“I do not know what the temples of other
duchies are like, but in Ehrenfest, we take religious ceremonies very
seriously,” I said. “I am not the only one who visits our temple; Wilfried,
Charlotte, and even the aub himself go there as well.”
“I cannot believe that the Ehrenfest archducal
family deigns to visit a temple. Those buildings are so filthy...”
Hm. That wasn’t at all what I expected them to
take away from that.
“Religious ceremonies are performed in the
temple,” I explained, “and the duchy’s harvest will suffer unless the giebes’
chalices and the Central District are supplied with mana. Ehrenfest’s temple
lacked the mana for that after our blue priests and shrine maidens were moved
to the Sovereign temple, so we archduke candidates are acting in their stead.”
Of course, I made sure to add that Wilfried and Charlotte likewise circled
farming towns for Spring Prayer and the Harvest Festival. “If your duchies are
suffering from a smaller harvest, then I would advise that you have your
archduke candidates do the same.”
“But going to the temple and to farming towns
is simply...”
I was feeling increasingly foolish for smiling
and repeating the same thing over and over again when my words were only ever
met with ignorant grimaces. To be frank, I was sick of all this nonstop
complaining from people who didn’t understand the importance of religious
ceremonies or how bad things really were. It ticked me the heck off that these
people couldn’t grasp how much Wilfried and Charlotte had struggled to take my
place, even back when they had barely been able to control their mana.
“So, Lady Rozemyne,” said Immerdink’s archduke
candidate. “Forget about the temple; I wish to discuss your joint research.
What manner of research are you doing with the greater duchies?”
I shrugged. “For our research with
Dunkelfelger, we are focusing on the religious ceremonies that you all despise
so much.”
“We are not so opposed to religious ceremonies
done in the Royal Academy. We have to perform the ritual for obtaining divine
protections in class, so...”
Oh, I see. So it’s the temple you take issue
with, huh?
I spat on the inside—but then I was struck
with an epiphany.
Wait. I’ve got it. It’s perfect!
“As part of our joint research, Ehrenfest will
be demonstrating a religious ceremony. Would you care to join? If we can obtain
permission from Dunkelfelger, that is.”
“Oh my. You would allow me to?” the Immerdink
archduke candidate asked with a bright smile, having been pleading to join for
so long. She went on to say that I was very kind indeed, then grumbled that
Charlotte had refused to budge no matter how much she asked.
“If you are allowing Immerdink, then I would
like to join as well.”
“If men can participate, then I will speak
with our archduke candidate.”
“Jossbrenner has no archduke candidates at
present, so please allow me to participate as a representative.”
I smiled as everyone collectively asked for
permission to join. Surprisingly enough, they didn’t seem to mind participating
in religious ceremonies when it meant they could put their names on our joint
research project.
“Of course, this all depends on us receiving
Dunkelfelger’s permission,” I said. “I will ask them, but you all must do the
same. Permission will only be granted if your passion is adequately conveyed.”
Given that Dunkelfelger had relied on
passionate appeals and the verbal equivalent of a human wave attack to convince
the king to send Ferdinand to Ahrensbach, I was sure it would embrace a similar
approach from these girls. At the very least, it seemed far more likely to work
than me asking on my own—and this way, everyone would be able to participate in
our religious ceremony.
Oh, and I’ll need permission from the royal family
too.
Doing a Little Scheming
“Milady, I wish to be told exactly
what you are planning. What do you mean to accomplish by having archduke
candidates from other duchies participate in this religious ceremony? We were
told nothing of this!” Rihyarda declared immediately upon our return to the
Ehrenfest Dormitory. I could tell from the way her eyebrows were raised, her
hands were on her hips, and her feet were planted firmly that a lecture was on
the horizon—but I hadn’t done anything to warrant one.
“This will only happen with Dunkelfelger’s
permission, though,” I said.
“That is not the issue. My reproach is because
you did not consult us before making such a significant move.”
“Did the aub not say that research done among
students requires neither consultations nor permissions?” I asked, looking at
her quizzically. There had to be some kind of misunderstanding at play.
Rihyarda shook her head. “Putting aside the
fact that, in your case, you should be seeking such things regardless... I am
saying that you should speak with your retainers, who work to your benefit. At
the very least, tell us what you are thinking and planning before you take
action.”
“But have we not already discussed the ritual
to be performed as part of our joint research? I simply proposed that the other
duchies take part. We will be doing it either way.”
Indeed, whether those students took part or
not, the ritual was still going to be performed.
Rihyarda shook her head again. “Who are you
trying to fool, exactly? We have only ever discussed you performing the ritual alone. Why have you suddenly decided to involve archduke
candidates from other duchies?”
My retainers were all wearing stern
expressions, and none of them argued against Rihyarda. I pursed my lips in
dissatisfaction, then put on an exaggerated smile.
“Well, I can tell you one thing: I most
certainly did not grow weary of putting up with greedy middle and lesser
duchies who seek nothing but personal gain, speak ill of my adoptive family,
mock rituals to no end, and refuse to listen to anything I say. Why, that
wasn’t it at all.”
“You are rather frustrated, I see... You have
gotten much better at concealing your emotions,” Rihyarda muttered, then shook
her head in exasperation. “Now, you will need to learn how to keep those
emotions from influencing your actions. But in any case, milady—what is your
intention, having them participate in the ceremony?”
“If they receive permission from Dunkelfelger,
then we will hold a Dedication Ritual here at the Royal Academy.”
“A Dedication Ritual...? As in, the one always
performed at the temple around this time?” Philine asked, placing a hand on her
cheek as if remembering Hartmut and the others preparing for it.
“Indeed,” I said. “Is there a more fitting
ritual to show Dunkelfelger than the one I perform the most in Ehrenfest? I
would struggle to fill the chalices myself, so I was racking my brain for an
alternative... but with so many helpers, it should be easy.”
“Erm, Lady Rozemyne... is that not stealing
mana from the archduke candidates of other duchies?” Gretia asked timorously.
My other retainers paled as well.
I met her gaze and gave a refined cackle. “Oh
my. Mind your phrasing there, Gretia. There will be no stealing. The
participants will all be good-natured individuals who were so eager to assist
us that they pleaded with Dunkelfelger for the privilege. They will be offering
their mana out of the goodness of their hearts. It would be rude to call that
theft, would it not? And I am sure the royal family will be pleased to see so
many archduke candidates eager to help.”
I wasn’t forcing anyone to participate. Anyone
who took issue with the ritual shouldn’t have asked to join in the first place.
“Lady Rozemyne, where exactly is the royal
family going to be involved in this?” Laurenz asked, looking like he had just
heard something extremely ominous. Theodore was bobbing his head in agreement,
looking like he wanted to run away; both of them were evidently afraid of the
royal family.
“We will need their permission to use the
Royal Academy’s shrine, will we not? Furthermore, even if our participants have
agreed to help, it would be in poor taste for me to use everyone’s mana for
myself when the country is in such dire straits. That is why I intend to allow
the royal family to use it all as they see fit.”
I was confident that the mana-deprived royal
family would rejoice over an offering from such a large crowd of archduke
candidates. Having their gratitude would also keep our participants from
complaining.
After listening to my explanation with a
frown, Matthias nodded, his blue eyes now carrying a certain thoughtfulness.
“Do you think Dunkelfelger is likely to give these students permission after
refusing so many others? The opinions of greater duchies cannot be changed so
easily.”
I curved my lips into a grin. “I am sure that
those from Dunkelfelger will be a little more open to the idea—after I suggest
that they only accept those who play them at ditter, of course. It can only
work to their advantage, as they wish to both investigate the ritual and face
more opponents.”
“In other words, you mean to sacrifice our
so-called ‘good-natured participants’ to Dunkelfelger...” Matthias said in a
daze.
“Tut, tut. More poor phrasing. Those students
will simply be proving their fervent desire to join our research. I’m certainly
not thinking about how this will save me from having to find another ritual,
nor how they will spare me the trouble of dealing with Dunkelfelger. No, not at
all.”
“They will also be providing more
opportunities for us to research Dunkelfelger’s ditter rituals,” Leonore added
with a smile, having been convinced that this was in our best interests. “Why,
they are so passionate and willing to help that I can hardly believe it. I am
entirely in favor of Lady Rozemyne’s suggestion.”
Matthias sighed and then muttered, “I’ll
admit, we wouldn’t want to have to play ditter over and over again...”
Dunkelfelger was a greater duchy with a very
large population, so all of our duchy’s apprentice knights had to come together
whenever we faced them at ditter. That was all well and good for the occasional
game, but it would become increasingly problematic if we had to play against
them repeatedly and under varying conditions. Wilfried’s and Charlotte’s guard
knights would need to be mobilized too.
“Dunkelfelger will get to explore its ritual
and play ditter, I will receive the assistance I need for my ceremony, the
royal family will receive a boon of mana... and finally, the lesser and middle
duchies will get to participate in our joint research. Sure, the participants
may find themselves stretched thin between dealing with Dunkelfelger and having
audiences with the royal family, and they may struggle more when trying to use
their mana during classes, but is this not a glorious idea that benefits all
parties?”
My retainers gave uncomfortable looks, like
they agreed and disagreed at the same time.
“You have listed a lot of advantages for
others, Lady Rozemyne, but what do you gain from this
personally?”
“I would say that not having to play more
ditter with Dunkelfelger is enough... but, in truth, there is something else I
seek. I cannot reveal any more than that, but let me just say this: if the
royal family approves, then we will gain tremendously.”
And so, I wrote to Dunkelfelger and to
Hildebrand. I’d selected the third prince specifically because I was asking to
use the Royal Academy’s facilities, and I figured that he was more likely to
give me permission than Anastasius.
In my letters, I made sure to cover all the
important details: that there were many who wished to join our research, what
Dunkelfelger would gain from forcing them to play ditter first, that it was in
our best interests to have more people witness Ehrenfest’s Dedication Ritual,
how the mana obtained would be given to the royal family, and that I wanted to
use the shrine within the Farthest Hall.
“I will need to hear more first,” came a
response. “Come to my villa tomorrow afternoon.”
I sent the letter to Prince Hildebrand, but
Anastasius replied... It just doesn’t make sense.
In the end, I was summoned to Anastasius’s
villa once again. My request was only to borrow the shrine in the Farthest
Hall, so I was relatively fine about going—but that soon changed when I
actually arrived. As well as Hannelore and her retainers, our two dormitory
supervisors had been called. This joint research project among students had
suddenly turned into a big hullabaloo.
“Now, Rozemyne—tell us exactly what you intend
to do,” Anastasius demanded with a glare, seeming exceedingly on guard. “Hide
nothing.”
I described our joint research project and
explained my intentions for Ehrenfest’s ritual. Naturally, I made sure to
emphasize that the royal family would benefit considerably.
After listening to my explanation, Anastasius
placed a hand on his forehead before looking between Hannelore and me. “Why do
the both of you always turn small matters into large ones?”
“The both of us?” I repeated.
Hannelore looked down at her feet,
embarrassed. “I, um... caused a bit of a fuss and troubled the royal family.”
As it turned out, while researching their
ritual, Dunkelfelger had ended up creating a massive pillar of light. The royal
family had received a lot of questions about the strange event, though I had to
wonder—had it resulted from Hannelore and the others trying to recreate the
ritual that I’d performed...?
“That... is my fault, isn’t it?” I asked.
“Not at all. We experimented with offering our
mana as you did, Lady Rozemyne, and with changing the spear into various forms.
The result was, as you now know, that tremendous light, which formed even in
our dormitory. We are entirely to blame.”
They had apparently separated into two teams
to perform the pre-ditter ritual in the training grounds built next to their
dormitory. It really spoke to their extravagant wealth as a greater duchy.
Well, that doesn’t surprise me. Dunkelfelger will
do anything or spend any amount of mana for the sake of getting stronger.
“We had many duchies come to us yesterday
asking to participate in our joint research,” said Rauffen, their dormitory
supervisor. A broad smile then spread across his face. “First you lit a fire
under everyone with A Ditter Story and a ritual for
obtaining real blessings, and now you’ve given us a mountain of opponents. I
can’t thank you enough, Lady Rozemyne. Your reputation in our dormitory shot up
all at once; we threw a huge celebration last night in your honor.”
Yeah, I don’t really want a reputation like that,
thanks.
I’d been hoping that the wave of new
challengers would slow Dunkelfelger down a little, but they had welcomed them
all without even breaking a sweat. In fact, now they were inviting other duchies to participate too.
“If you intend to play ditter after receiving
blessings from the gods, then perhaps you should allow the other duchies to
group together into teams,” I said. “Plus, if you demonstrate the strength that
can be obtained through rituals, they might take religious ceremonies more
seriously henceforth.” It would be just like how I’d told Ehrenfest’s
apprentice knights to learn from Dunkelfelger and earn blessings on their own.
“Hm.”
“Erm, rather... won’t it be way more exciting
for Dunkelfelger if your opponents are stronger too?”
“INDEED!”
Rauffen was clearly enthusiastic, though our
conversation began to simmer down now that we were in agreement. It was then
that Hannelore nervously spoke up.
“We are fine with letting these other duchies
participate, as Dunkelfelger benefits as well, but will there not be too many
names to credit? My brother said their contributions will hardly be
meaningful.”
I personally disagreed with that last
statement, since they were going to be participating in the Dedication Ritual and playing ditter, but that still meant very little to
Dunkelfelger.
Playing ditter and performing rituals come as
naturally as breathing to Dunkelfelgerians. It makes sense that they don’t
consider them worthy of credit.
We needed some kind of compromise—something
that would ease Dunkelfelger’s concerns that the other duchies weren’t doing
enough while simultaneously appeasing those who wanted credit. Now that I
thought about it, however, I’d only extended invitations for people to
participate in the ritual. There hadn’t been any promises of them being
credited; they had convinced themselves of that.
After some thought, I pointed a finger in the
air and smiled. “In that case, how about we list them as helpers
at the end of the research announcement? We can list the names of the
apprentice knights who answered our questionnaire and the archduke candidates
and archnobles who assisted with the ritual, while the joint research itself
remains between Dunkelfelger and Ehrenfest. Everyone should be satisfied with
that.”
“W-Well...” Hannelore examined me carefully
for a moment, then nodded. “That will do, I suppose. I am sure my brother will
agree too.”
“Please tell Lord Lestilaut to do his best
with his classes; we must wait for him to finish before we can start the
ritual.”
“It should not be long now. He has been
working especially hard to impress you with his speed,” Hannelore said with a
wry smile, remarking on how her brother was blazing through his classes. He was
apparently due to finish at about the same time he had finished last year—a
remarkable feat given that he was now a sixth-year.
“Well, consider me surprised. I did not think
he had it in him. Do contact me when your ditter games with the other duchies
are over and you have decided on our participants for the ritual.”
“You can count on me!” came an unexpected
interjection from Rauffen. Hannelore and I glanced at him, then shrugged in
unison.
Anastasius cleared his throat. “Rozemyne,
regarding your request... You may not know this, but the shrine in the Farthest
Hall is managed by the Sovereign temple.”
I was already aware of that fact; after all,
the Sovereign temple was responsible for performing both the Starbind Ceremony
at the Archduke Conference and the Royal Academy’s coming-of-age ceremony.
“You will need their permission to use the
Academy’s divine instruments,” Anastasius continued, “but it seems they are
fairly busy at the moment.”
“Yes, the Dedication Ritual is surely underway
around this time,” I replied.
The Sovereign temple had scraped together the
blue priests and shrine maidens with the most mana from all sorts of duchies,
so it probably wasn’t struggling as much as Ehrenfest. At the same time,
though, it was possible that it had more chalices to fill.
“In that case,” I continued, “I will take what
we need from Ehrenfest. Could we at least borrow the room with the shrine? I
want our participants to understand they are praying to the gods.”
“You may—as long as you do not touch the
shrine itself.”
“I am grateful,” I replied, but then something
occurred to me. “U-Um, but if we cannot touch the shrine, then we won’t be able
to take down the chalices to fill them with mana, will we? How will we get
around that? Could you make an exception for that one case?”
We could always get Ehrenfest to send over a
mana-conducting carpet, but unless we could actually move the chalices, we
wouldn’t be able to offer our mana.
“No, no. We must accept that our hands are
tied.”
“I suppose I can just make a chalice with my
schtappe, so that won’t be a problem, but...”
“You can?!” Anastasius exclaimed, wide-eyed.
I could indeed; one of the spells that I’d
come across in the underground archive had outlined the process clearly.
“However,” I continued, “the royal family will
not be able to bring my chalice back to the Sovereignty. You will either need
to learn to make chalices yourselves, or you will need to bring an abundance of
empty feystones.”
It would be far quicker for the royal family
to make chalices with their schtappes, but creating divine instruments was only
doable if you’d frequently channeled mana into them. It would also be
impossible to make chalices without touching the shrine, and maintaining them
would require an exceedingly large amount of mana—more than the royal family
could spare, I assumed. For those reasons, perhaps the feystone approach was
more reasonable.
Anastasius heaved a tired sigh; the royal
family had apparently been convinced that they would need to pass on this
generous offering of mana, as they didn’t expect the Sovereign temple to allow
it. “So, in other words, if we are unable to borrow the divine instruments, we
can fashion chalices ourselves or move the mana from your chalice using empty
feystones. You certainly know many underhanded tricks, Rozemyne.”
I cackled. “You can thank my teacher.”
Anastasius put a hand on his forehead again.
“To be frank, the windfall mana you are providing through this Dedication
Ritual will be of tremendous help to us.”
“I am glad to hear it. I would like the royal
family to participate as well, but will that be possible?”
“You wish for us to
participate?” Anastasius asked, again surprised.
I gave a solemn nod. By having them take the
lead, we could make it all the more difficult for other duchies to back out.
Plus, the royal family needed divine protections, and the more opportunities
they had to pray seriously, the better.
“Am I right to assume that this conflict with
the Sovereign temple has prevented the royal family from engaging in any true
religious ceremonies?” I asked. “Praying together improves the flow of mana and
makes it easier to receive blessings, so why not join us? Of course, you are by
no means obliged to.”
“I... shall think about it.”
Thus concluded the groundwork for the ritual.
After receiving a scolding from Hirschur, who
told me not to interrupt her research with such pointless summons again, I
returned to the dormitory and reported back to Ehrenfest. I explained the
sequence of events that had resulted in our plan to perform a Dedication Ritual
with the royal family, then asked them to send over a mana-conducting carpet,
offerings to the gods, my ceremonial High Bishop robes, and my siblings’
ceremonial robes, among other things.
“Charlotte and I are joining too?” Wilfried
asked.
“Indeed. If we all perform together and in the
same way, then we can eradicate one negative rumor contributing to our father’s
bad reputation. This is going to be your first time joining me for the
Dedication Ritual, but the process is the same as channeling mana into the
foundational magic. I have no doubts that you will succeed on your first
attempt, so please try to act as though you have done it all a hundred times
before.”
They both nodded in response.
“Lady Rozemyne, a reply from Ehrenfest has
arrived.”
According to the letter, our situation here in
the Royal Academy had blown so far out of proportion that Florencia had fainted
upon reading my report. A note written in Sylvester’s hand specified two
things: that they would be sending everything we needed, and that we weren’t to
fail under any circumstances now that the royal family
was involved.
Incidentally, also included was a letter from
Hartmut. He had apparently cried bitter tears upon reading Clarissa’s report
and was once again bemoaning the fact that he had graduated “too soon.” His
handwriting was a little, er, intense. He had written
so forcefully that the lines were all shaky, and each word was practically
engraved in the page.
“I’m actually kind of afraid to return to
Ehrenfest now...” Leonore muttered. “Hartmut is going to be an enormous pain,
I’m sure.”
I sent a response to Hartmut, explaining my
plan to have all of my adult retainers redo their divine protections ceremonies
and noting that he would want to memorize the gods’ names and pray to them
daily in preparation. I thought that having something to do would raise his
spirits, but Judithe was unconvinced.
“Hartmut will complete that task in no time,”
she said. “Perhaps you should also ask him to help Angelica memorize the names.
That should keep him busy all winter.”
Philine’s face turned a shade paler. “Won’t
that just put more of a burden on Damuel...?”
“Ah,” Judithe squeaked, then laughed. “I’m
sure he’ll be fine.”
“N-No, he w-won’t!”
As my retainers continued to chatter, the
corners of my lips curved into a warm smile. It was nice to see them acting
like such good friends.
Indeed, for the first time in a while, I was
truly at peace.
Preparing for the Ritual
We had agreed to perform the Dedication Ritual
in front of the shrine in the room behind the Royal Academy’s auditorium, but
it wasn’t going to happen right away—Lestilaut still needed to finish his
classes, and Ehrenfest had to complete its own Dedication Ritual. In the
meantime, the duchies that had approached Dunkelfelger about joining our
research would play ditter to decide who was actually allowed to participate.
“Muriella, please send an ordonnanz to
Dunkelfelger regarding the participants,” I said. “Ask them to grant permission
only to archnobles and archduke candidates, as anyone with a smaller mana
capacity will struggle greatly. Furthermore, inform them that any first-years
who have just recently learned mana compression cannot participate either.”
Even while relying on feystones filled with my
mana, Wilfried and Charlotte had struggled to perform the ritual back when they
were just getting used to controlling their own mana. Plus, in other duchies,
it was apparently common for children to wait until they had picked up a mana
compression method at the Royal Academy before supplying their foundational
magic. We wouldn’t have adults there to assist all of the beginners, so it was
simply too dangerous for those who had never supplied mana before to participate.
“A reply has come, Lady Rozemyne—they accept
your conditions and are prepared to play. They are just waiting for the lesser
and middle duchies to form teams among themselves.”
Wowee. They all have my deepest sympathies.
I clasped my hands in silent prayer, then
reached for the books that I was borrowing. “I suppose I shall read for now.
Everything else can be prepared after the temple’s Dedication Ritual is
concluded.”
And so, my time was spent leisurely reading
books, going to Hirschur’s laboratory, and just otherwise relaxing. I attended
some tea parties, but pretty much all anyone did was complain about having to
play ditter to participate in our research.
It seemed that those from Dunkelfelger still
weren’t massively impressed that we had finessed our way into playing speed
rather than treasure-stealing ditter previously, as they had taken great care
to ensure that these next games were going to be of the treasure-stealing
variety. The other duchies had certainly learned about this version during
written lessons, but they had never actually played it. As a result, even after
forming a team of their best players, they had been utterly thrashed. No amount
of rejuvenation potions had been enough.
I smiled at their grumbling. “Ditter is a
necessary requirement for doing research with Dunkelfelger. Ehrenfest had to
play against them as well.”
Though our game of treasure-stealing ditter took
place during my first year. Still, I’m not lying to them. Mm-hmm.
All this talk about joint research and playing
ditter was so much less emotionally draining than listening to people bad-mouth
Sylvester. For the first time in my life, I was actually grateful for
Dunkelfelger’s obsession.
Aside from that, I also had to listen to
progress reports from the apprentice scholars doing research with Drewanchel.
Gundolf was putting a lot of passion into the project, apparently; he had
already included the paper in various brews that brought out the special traits
of each feyplant. The changes themselves were only slight, such as the nanseb
paper we used for identification traveling faster or showing movements from
farther distances than before.
“So the paper’s effects are enhanced...” I
mused. “My end goal is to produce moving books for my library, which are sure
to be much heavier than lone sheets of paper, so please tell them to keep
working hard until such a thing is possible. These books will also include
magic circles, and I would like to reduce mana expenditure by improving the
quality of the ingredients.”
Apparently, one could transcribe a song onto a
sheet of effon paper and then run a feystone across it to produce music. Still,
there was plenty more room for research.
“If one simply needs to move a feystone over
the sheet music, then perhaps we could stick effon paper to instruments to
create automatic performances,” I murmured. My thoughts immediately wandered to
a pipe organ from my Urano days that had automatically played whatever music
roll was inserted into it. The spectacle truly had been amazing.
I had mostly been speaking to myself, but
Marianne heard my mutterings and said, “Allow me to pass these suggestions on
to Professor Gundolf. We of Ehrenfest were recently chastised for having ‘no
interesting ideas.’”
“If you are fine with using my thoughts rather
than your own, then certainly.”
It seemed that Ehrenfest’s scholars weren’t
yet able to keep up with those from Drewanchel, who were pouring their all into
their research. Marianne in particular had lost some of her confidence.
“After you graduate and return to Ehrenfest,
there will not be many opportunities for you to participate in research of such
a high caliber as this project with Drewanchel,” I said. “Though there may be
times when you struggle with the perceived gap between you and the other
students or when you feel disheartened by the stern words of your professors,
you mustn’t get so down. Keep your chin up and press on with your research.”
We had just received a report from Clarissa,
informing us that Lestilaut had finished his classes. She had also included the
results of their questionnaire; it seemed that Dunkelfelger’s attendants and
scholars of the sword possessed many divine protections as well.
“Dunkelfelger truly is a duchy that exists for
and has thrived on ditter,” Philine observed, moved.
I gave a firm nod of agreement. “According to
what was discussed during the tea party, the apprentice knights are still
overwhelmed by the ditter matches. Dunkelfelger may be livelier than ever, but
the other duchies are exhausted.”
“I can imagine.” Philine then produced a
board, which she extended to me. “On that note, here is a list of students who
will be participating in the ritual. Do have a look.”
I accepted and then started to read from the
board. Listed were the duchies that had passed the ditter selection process,
and alongside each one were the names of three to eight students, with the
higher-ranked duchies having more representation. More than half of all the
duchies in Yurgenschmidt were due to participate, with more than sixty students
in total.
“I see there are going to be greater duchies
participating as well,” I said. “I had assumed they would simply observe until
the results became clear.”
“This is a perfect opportunity to learn what
other duchies are researching ahead of time, and our research into increasing
one’s divine protections is expected to draw more attention than anything at
the Interduchy Tournament.”
In other words, they were taking full
advantage of this chance to participate in what was sure to be a very big
event. Names from Klassenberg, Drewanchel, and Ahrensbach were listed as well.
Every single archduke candidate from Drewanchel was going to be involved, while
Ahrensbach was putting forward only apprentice scholars, meaning that Detlinde
would not be participating herself.
I tilted my head as I continued to look
through the names. “I see that Immerdink is not here, despite how much its
representatives expressed their desire to participate during tea parties.”
“There were only a few lesser and middle
duchies with the leeway to play ditter. Many backed out when they heard about
others getting beaten down and the costs of rejuvenation potions and such.”
Mm... I can see why. I dumped all this on other
duchies specifically because I didn’t want to endure it myself.
I wondered whether the Dedication Ritual would
prove a nightmare for the duchies that had expended a ton of rejuvenation
potions on their ditter games. Ehrenfest’s gathering spot was overflowing with
high-quality ingredients, but the same could not be said for those of other
duchies.
Maybe we should distribute rejuvenation
potions...
“Lady Rozemyne, we will need to explain the
process of the ritual to the participants,” Philine continued, snapping me back
to reality.
“True. Let’s see... I suppose they will need
to know to cleanse themselves on the morning of the ritual, to prepare
rejuvenation potions, and to memorize the relevant prayer. They will not have
ceremonial robes, but there is no helping that,” I said, recalling my days as
an apprentice blue shrine maiden, when the temple had only wanted me for my
mana. “Perhaps we should send these instructions by ordonnanz and then guide
the apprentice scholars separately. The prayer they need is written on this
board, so have them transcribe it for themselves.”
“Understood,” my apprentice scholars replied,
all nodding their assent.
“Rozemyne,” Wilfried called out to me, looking
worried, “I don’t know the prayer for the Dedication Ritual either. I’ve only
ever helped with Spring Prayer and the Harvest Festival.”
“It is the same prayer that we speak when
supplying mana to the foundational magic. Would you like a reminder, though?” I
wrote the prayer out on a separate board and then handed it over.
After skimming the text, Wilfried visibly
relaxed and sighed in relief. Charlotte looked it over as well, having been
watching from the sideline, then smiled; she was going to be fine with it as
well.
“By the way,” Wilfried said, “we got a report
from Ehrenfest. Seems like their Dedication Ritual is over, and they’re
preparing the tools we need. Sounds like getting everything from the temple to
the castle during the snow is proving difficult.”
Moving luggage was never a problem with my
Pandabus, but those in Ehrenfest were currently relying on normal highbeasts.
They had also yet to slay this year’s Lord of Winter, so the blizzards were at
their worst. Cornelius, Hartmut, and the others were apparently having to go
back and forth between the temple and the castle.
Wilfried continued, “They also said you should
get the royal family’s permission for Hartmut to participate in the ritual.”
Just as Ferdinand had brought the bible last
year, there needed to be someone present who could manage the tools used for
the ritual. Hartmut maintained that this duty belonged to the High Priest.
“I get the feeling that he just wants to see
your ritual, Lady Rozemyne...” Judithe said.
Leonore nodded. “Without a doubt.”
Philine and Roderick exchanged glances, both
wearing amused smiles.
“I imagine you are correct, Judithe, but there
are no gray priests in the Royal Academy to prepare the ritual,” Philine said.
“Nor are we receiving help from the Sovereign temple, correct?”
“Status is important when working in the Royal
Academy,” Roderick added. “You will struggle to manage and prepare everything
on your own, Lady Rozemyne, and Hartmut, an archnoble, would make for an ideal
assistant.”
Indeed, it would be a struggle to carry out
the ritual with only those from the Ehrenfest Dormitory. Philine and Roderick
had both witnessed Hartmut’s preparations for becoming the High Priest, and
they knew how many strict, detailed traditions needed to be observed during
religious ceremonies, but that wasn’t enough. They didn’t have any of the
temple’s ceremonies memorized, nor had they even watched one, as only the
priests were allowed to attend. We needed someone who could take charge.
“I suppose we have no choice but to summon
Hartmut,” I conceded.
I swiftly wrote a letter to Eglantine. No
matter which member of the royal family I attempted to contact, it was always
Anastasius who replied, so maybe we would have been better off sending it his
way to begin with.
As expected, an ordonnanz soon arrived from
Anastasius. He said that Hartmut was allowed to attend, then added, “Father is
going to be participating in the ritual as well, so send us both a thorough
description of the process and a list of every expected participant. He seems
to believe it proper and necessary to thank all those who are gathering to
offer us mana.”
The king himself was going to participate,
perhaps because I had advised the royal family to experience rituals for
themselves. They would surely receive plenty of divine protections if they
learned the prayer for the Dedication Ritual, since they were pouring such
enormous quantities of mana into Yurgenschmidt.
But while I merely saw this as a nice
opportunity to ease the burden on the royal family, everyone else was
absolutely losing their minds.
“Hold on!” Wilfried yelped. “The king is joining?! Doesn’t that make this an even huger
deal than it was already?!”
“This is unexpected, dear brother, but there
is no stopping it now,” Charlotte said, a vacant look in her eyes.
“Is this really that serious?” I asked. “All
we’re doing is getting everyone to offer up their mana.”
Charlotte gave me a very troubled look. “I can
understand why you may not value mana much yourself, Sister—your capacity is so
large, and receiving all those divine protections has given you more than you
can handle—but the shortage affecting the world is severe beyond words. The
king himself considers it necessary to thank those who are offering theirs in
support.”
“Normally, the only way to get direct praise
from the king is to come first-in-class,” Wilfried added. “Yet now he’s
offering to praise all of our participants. That’s how big of a deal this
ritual of yours has become.”
Charlotte was right: my abundance of mana had
caused me to greatly underestimate its value. Only now was it occurring to me
that my little plot had ballooned out of control.
As requested, I copied the ritual process and
a list of participants onto a board, which I then had delivered to Anastasius’s
villa.
“If mana really is this important, then
perhaps I should offer rejuvenation potions as a participation reward...” I
mused aloud.
“A participation reward...?” Charlotte
repeated, blinking.
I nodded. “It seems the duchies that played
ditter had to use a significant number of rejuvenation potions in the process.
Surely they will need more after offering their mana.”
The lesser and middle duchies were already
assisting us with the ritual; it would be too great an ask to have them supply
their own potions on top of that. Plus, if they could immediately replenish
their mana, then perhaps they would feel more at ease about it being stolen.
“As we are going to be receiving so much mana
from everyone,” I continued, “perhaps we should distribute Ferdinand’s
kindness-filled potions to help everyone recover.”
“Sister, I do not mean to sound rude, but any
duchies that receive those potions will surely assume they are some manner of
cruel joke. Is there not something better tasting that we could give them?”
Blenrus fruits made the rejuvenation potions
fairly drinkable, but they were rare and could only be gathered in Haldenzel.
That is to say, they weren’t something we could easily obtain in the Royal
Academy.
“If we’d rather use an alternative... there
are potions that rejuvenate one’s mana but don’t relieve exhaustion.” I wasn’t
sure about using those, however, as the students not used to the ritual were
sure to end up feeling completely spent.
“Replenishing their mana should be enough. How
do they taste, though?”
“Not that bad, in my opinion.”
“But how are we supposed to trust your sense
of taste when you down Uncle’s potions like they’re nothing?” Wilfried asked.
“We should taste-test them ourselves.”
Charlotte nodded in enthusiastic agreement, so
I went into the dormitory’s brewing room and made a few mana-exclusive
rejuvenation potions for them to try. Also serving as our test subjects were
the apprentice knights who had gathered the ingredients.
“It doesn’t taste that bad,” Wilfried said.
“Not much different from normal rejuvenation potions.”
“The strength and onset of action is far
inferior, though,” I noted. “If we are going to distribute them to other
duchies, then we would want something more effective. Let us go with the
kindness-infused potions.”
Unfortunately, it seemed that I was the only
one who held this opinion; the apprentice knights who regularly used normal
potions for their classes all shook their heads.
“For those of us who are used to normal
potions, the less effective version is more than enough. They act quickly and
restore a lot of mana.”
“Plus, rather than giving the other students
potions they may refuse based on the taste and smell, is it not safer to
distribute something they are guaranteed to drink?”
On the strong, strong
recommendation of Charlotte and the apprentice knights, I elected to distribute
mana-only rejuvenation potions. They could easily be made from ingredients that
were readily available at our gathering spot.
“In that case, we shall make potions for all
participants,” I said. There was no time for me to ask Ferdinand whether
leaking the recipe was okay, so I simply asked Roderick and Muriella to help
and ordered them to tell no one.
“Lady Rozemyne, I believe you could have done
this on your own...” Roderick said, exhausted, having taken quite some time to
cut and subsequently brew the ingredients.
Muriella smiled and noted that it would have
been improper for me to hole up in the brewing room all on my own. And with
that, she began carrying the boxes out of the brewing room.
It was the day of the ritual.
After finishing our breakfast, we archduke
candidates were carrying out final checks in the common room when Hartmut
arrived from the teleporter, dressed in his ceremonial blue priest robes. “Lady
Rozemyne,” he said, “I have with me the tools required for the ritual. And here
are your ceremonial robes.”
“Rihyarda, Gretia—please make the necessary
preparations to change my clothes,” I said. They sprang into action at my
instruction, as did those serving Wilfried and Charlotte.
“Lord Wilfried, Lady Charlotte, as you have
never participated in the ritual, you do not have cords or ornaments that are
the divine color of winter,” Hartmut said. “I have asked your retainers to find
materials and such that will do as replacements.”
Apparently, this task was keeping their castle
attendants especially busy.
“The ceremony is this afternoon,” I said. “We
must ask the royal family to open the Farthest Hall, then spend the morning
carrying out any final preparations. Hartmut, can I trust you to oversee things
there?”
“You may count on me. This is a ritual
representing Lady Rozemyne, the Saint of Ehrenfest. It must be perfect. I offer
my prayers and gratitude to the gods that I am able to participate in the Royal
Academy’s Dedication Ritual!” Hartmut declared, drawing all eyes to himself as
he pretty much launched into prayer. I was a little concerned about his
over-the-top enthusiasm, but we were moments away from a ritual that was going
to involve the royal family; having someone so invested in making things
perfect was just what I needed.
As I watched Hartmut out of the corner of my
eye while he continued to pray, I sent an ordonnanz to the royal family. Only
they, archdukes, and those entrusted with the royal family’s mana through
feystones were able to open the Farthest Hall. That was one of the reasons why
there always needed to be a member of the royal family present at the Royal
Academy.
“All of my retainers not preparing my changes
of clothes—that is, everyone except Rihyarda and Gretia—will be accompanying me
to the Farthest Hall,” I said. “It would be rude of us to arrive after the
royal family, so let us hurry.”
Wilfried and Charlotte likewise brought their
retainers along. We had our retinue bring everything we would need for the
ceremony, then started waiting in the auditorium. Hildebrand arrived in no time
at all.
“Rozemyne,” he said.
“Prince Hildebrand. I offer my humble
gratitude for your assistance today.”
After we had exchanged lengthy greetings,
Hildebrand got his head attendant, Arthur, to lift him up so that he could
touch the feystone on the door leading to the Farthest Hall. It promptly
opened.
“For classes, we lend feystones to the
professors so they can open the door themselves,” Hildebrand explained. “Today,
however, I was really adamant about doing it myself.”
Hildebrand was still too young to participate
in the actual ritual; he had asked to join, but it would be unacceptable for a
member of the royal family to overexert themselves and pass out, so we had
asked Anastasius to talk him out of it. Perhaps as a compromise to keep
Hildebrand from feeling too left out, the king had permitted him to open the
door instead.
After ensuring that everything we needed was
brought into the Farthest Hall, Hartmut started to oversee the preparations. I
was about to follow after him, but Brunhilde tugged on my sleeve and smiled at
me; it seemed that my duty here was to deal with Hildebrand.
“Father has ordered that only those from
Ehrenfest may enter the hall until the preparations are finished,” Hildebrand
said.
“I see that you are actively looking for ways
to assist us, Prince Hildebrand,” I said, finding his pride in his job very
heartwarming. From there, I answered any questions he had about the ritual.
“Rozemyne, there are a lot of people due to
participate today, aren’t there? Where will the guard knights be standing?”
“No guard knights may be present for
ceremonial events. Only those participating in the ritual are allowed inside
the Farthest Hall.”
“What...?” Hildebrand asked, blinking.
I started blinking in turn. “Only priests and
shrine maidens may be present for ceremonies. The same is true for the
Sovereign temple’s Starbind Ceremony, is it not? I asked them whether I could
bring guard knights with me when participating as the High Bishop, and they
were strongly against it. This is also a religious ceremony, so any guard
knights will need to wait outside the auditorium.”
Arthur inhaled sharply and then cried, “I was
not aware of this!” His eyes were wide, and he was intensely resistant to the
idea, but I wasn’t going to budge.
“There will be a great many archduke
candidates involved in the ritual,” I said, “and there simply is not room for
everyone to bring their retainers inside. Furthermore, all those present when
the mana begins to flow will be at risk of having their mana sucked out,
whether they are actively participating or not. Any guard knights in attendance
will struggle to protect their charge effectively.”
“But there is no precedent for archduke
candidates or members of the royal family leaving their guard knights behind.
It is unthinkable,” Arthur protested. Both he and Hildebrand were unwilling to
accept reality.
“As I understand it, the one religious
ceremony that archduke candidates and the members of the royal family still
perform is Mana Replenishment upon their foundations,” I said. “In Ehrenfest,
guard knights cannot enter the room where we supply mana to the foundational
magic and instead stand at attention outside the door. Do guard knights enter
the Mana Replenishment hall in the Sovereignty?”
“No,” Arthur replied. “Only those of the royal
family who are supplying their mana.”
“The same principle applies to all other
religious ceremonies as well. Now, let me propose this: would the royal family
feel safe if we positioned only Ehrenfest guard knights in the room for the
ceremony?”
“No; they would only feel safe in the presence
of the Sovereign Knight’s Order,” Arthur replied, airing his distrust of other
duchies.
“Precisely. And with the participants in such
vulnerable positions, having to kneel with their hands on the floor and channel
their mana, it is only natural that they would be on guard against those with
weapons. Just as the royal family would not be able to trust Ehrenfest’s guard
knights, we would not be able to trust the guard knights of another duchy. It
is best that we simply rid ourselves of those with malice to begin with.”
“Rid ourselves of those with malice? How would
we accomplish that?”
“By filtering the participants through
Schutzaria’s shield. Those who wish the royal family ill will not be able to
enter.”
The Royal Academy’s Dedication Ritual
Hildebrand and his entourage took their leave,
then we did the same, entrusting the remaining preparations to Hartmut and
returning to the Ehrenfest Dormitory.
While I was getting changed into my ceremonial
robes, I received an ordonnanz from Hildebrand, who had since finished his
report to the king. We were being summoned to explain the circumstances of the
ceremony to the king himself, meaning we had to make our way to the auditorium
sooner than planned.
And so, we started down the halls once again,
Wilfried and everyone else looking sick to their stomachs. We met up with
Dunkelfelger along the way.
“Oh my,” Hannelore said, surprised. “Lord
Wilfried and Lady Charlotte are wearing temple clothes as well, I see.”
“These are formal outfits within the temple,”
I explained. “My siblings have their own, since they perform religious
ceremonies back in Ehrenfest. Under normal circumstances, all participants
would need to be dressed in such robes, but we have relaxed the standards due
to a lack of time.”
Hannelore merely blinked at my response.
Not long after we arrived at the auditorium,
we met with the royal family and the Sovereign Knight’s Order.
Aren’t there a few too many royals here?
I could recognize Eglantine, Anastasius, and
Sigiswald, for obvious reasons. Adolphine was also participating as the fiancée
of royalty. However, there were two royals whom I was meeting for the first
time. The first, an older man, was the king. The second, a younger woman, was
presumably Sigiswald’s wife.
“Lady Rozemyne, Prince Hildebrand informed me
that—”
“I understand your impatience, Raublut, but
stand down,” the king interjected. “Greetings come first.”
The Sovereign knight commander clearly wanted
to interrogate me, but nobles took formalities very seriously. First-time
greetings were the priority.
Dunkelfelger performed their greetings, then
those of us from Ehrenfest knelt before the king. I was acting as our duchy’s
representative, since I was in charge of our joint research.
“Zent Trauerqual, may I pray for a blessing in
appreciation of this serendipitous meeting, ordained by the harsh judgment of
Ewigeliebe the God of Life?”
Just as archdukes and archduchesses were
addressed as aubs, it was proper to put “Zent” before the name of a king. After
finishing my greeting, I received permission to stand, then took a closer look
at Trauerqual. He had silver hair tinged with blue, much like Hildebrand, while
his facial features made him resemble Anastasius.
Though he looks extremely unwell and practically
reeks of rejuvenation potions...
His obvious exhaustion and the cloy of
rejuvenation potions hanging over him immediately brought my first time seeing
Ferdinand to mind. They didn’t look very much alike, but when Trauerqual gazed
downward, the resemblance was definitely there. Maybe it was their hair being a
similar length.
I can tell at a glance that he’s pushing himself
extremely hard.
As I continued to examine Trauerqual, he gave
me a somewhat contemplative look and then said, “Ehrenfest, I ask for an
explanation as to why guard knights cannot enter the ceremonial hall.”
“The reasons are as I described to Prince
Hildebrand. I first proposed that the royal family take part because I
sincerely believe it is important for you all to experience a true religious
ceremony, but I am not trying to force your hand, by any means.”
“Rozemyne!” Anastasius barked. “This is not my
villa nor the underground archive. You stand before the king!” He was telling
me to dress things up more, like a noble should, but I could only tilt my head
in response.
Um... How do you say, “Accept my terms or leave”
in noble speech again?
I was planning to give all the mana we
gathered to the royal family, so having them participate would make that part
more convenient, but we didn’t actually need them. We could do the joint
research ourselves—in fact, not having them present would make things a lot
easier for us.
As I was mulling over what to say, the Zent
waved Anastasius away. “We are the ones who asked to participate in the
ceremony. I do not mind as long as those with malice can indeed be removed.”
“I implore you to reconsider, Zent,” came an
unfamiliar voice. “I do not believe that a means of identifying those with
malice truly exists.”
After seeing how Hildebrand and everyone else
had reacted earlier, I wasn’t surprised. Even if the royal family wanted to
participate, their guard knights would never allow it. I could just stay silent
and wait for them to convince the king.
As I thought that, however, the Sovereign
knight commander, Raublut, crossed his arms and looked down at me. “Lady
Rozemyne, is this shield you speak of the translucent dome that appeared during
the attack on the Interduchy Tournament last year?”
I nodded in response, seeming to recall just
how much my Schutzaria’s shield made to protect the students had stood out back
then.
Raublut continued, “This is the first time I’m
hearing that the shield can detect those with malice, but I can confirm that it
is impervious to attacks. The king should be perfectly safe inside it.” He had
evidently seen the shield somewhere else before.
I stared at the knight commander in wide-eyed
surprise. At no point had I expected the very man who knew that Ferdinand was a
seed of Adalgisa and who treated everyone from Ehrenfest with suspicion to
acknowledge the usefulness of my shield.
“Although your word as the knight commander
holds much weight, we cannot act on it alone,” one knight said. “At the very
least, please allow us to test this shield with our own attacks.”
The royal family looked to me for my response.
I understood their desire to confirm that the shield worked as suggested.
“If doing that will convince you, then be my
guest,” I said.
Thus, it was decided that the Sovereign
Knight’s Order would provide a demonstration for the royal family. Everyone
distanced themselves from me, after which I produced a shield just big enough
for one person. I wasn’t sure how strong the knights’ attacks were going to be,
so I put my all into maintaining it for the sake of my own safety.
“Go forth, Loyalitat,” the king said to his
guard knight—the man who had suggested this test to begin with. “Do as you
must.”
After morphing his schtappe into a sword,
Loyalitat started with a noticeably restrained attack; his first blow must have
just been to test the waters. He was immediately blown back by a gust of wind.
There were murmurs of surprise—and from there,
the other knights started trying to destroy Schutzaria’s shield as well, using
a variety of weapons. Gradually, more and more joined in, and their attacks
became increasingly intense.
Thankfully, I was completely safe inside my
shield, channeling my mana like it was nothing. I was genuinely more concerned
about the knights, who were getting increasingly wounded as the shield
continued to throw them back and deflect their attacks.
“As expected, Lady Rozemyne’s shield of
Schutzaria is invincible! How absolutely wonderful!”
“I was informed that it blocked an attack from
none other than Lord Heisshitze himself. Verily, I am moved to be seeing it
with mine own eyes.”
Hartmut and Clarissa were trembling with
excitement, while the Dunkelfelger knights were watching with bated breath,
thoroughly enjoying this test as they would a game of ditter. I couldn’t decide
who was worse.
Just how long is this going to continue, I
wonder?
No sooner had that thought crossed my mind
than Raublut gave an instruction to one of the knights, who then smoothly
entered the shield.
“I see,” the knight muttered, looking around
the inside of the shield with great interest. “Those without malice really can
enter.” He then turned his schtappe into a weapon. “But what happens if someone
attacks from within?”
I didn’t know the answer myself, but the brave
knight quickly changed that. As it turned out, such a person would be blown
from the shield the instant they drew their weapon and tried to begin an
attack.
How interesting.
No matter what attacks they tried, how many
offensive magic tools they used, or how much mana they fired, everything was
repelled by my shield. The knights soon began to lose their will to fight, and
it was then that Trauerqual intervened.
“Enough. We have seen what we needed to see.
It is inconceivable that such a resilient shield would succumb to mere apprentices
of the Royal Academy.”
Indeed, we had proven the strength of my
shield, but those who had taken part were now in an absolutely terrible state.
“Zent Trauerqual, I wish to grant Heilschmerz’s healing to those of the
Sovereign Knight’s Order,” I said. “Would you permit me?”
“That would be appreciated, but do you not
mind...? They are many in number, so it will require a lot of mana.”
“I shall use Flutrane’s staff, which will make
the expense almost insignificant. We will soon need the knights to guard the
auditorium, as I expect the retainers of other duchies to protest as well.”
Using my ring would require me to be close
enough to the knights that I could touch them. Flutrane’s staff didn’t have
that requirement, and it would allow me to heal a
bunch of people at once.
After securing the king’s permission, I
produced Flutrane’s staff and granted the knights Heilschmerz’s blessing. I
then presented the potions we had prepared and attempted to hand them out,
saying that I planned to distribute them to the participating nobles.
“You intend to give bottles of strange liquid
to other duchies?!” Raublut exclaimed. This wasn’t the first time that someone
had suspected foul play.
“It is our duty to be cautious,” Loyalitat
said, “but we need only investigate them ourselves, as we did with the shield.
I, myself, do not suspect Lady Rozemyne. Had she mixed something dangerous into
her potions, then she would have given them out before healing us.” He then
took one of my rejuvenation potions and downed the entire thing in full view of
the other knights and the royal family.
“Well, Loyalitat? Feeling at all sick?”
“The potion is... wonderful. It rejuvenates so
tremendously well that I can physically feel my mana recovering. Lady Rozemyne,
was it not quite an ordeal to prepare so many rejuvenation potions of this
strength?”
“I simply thought that, as we will be
receiving so much mana from everyone, it only makes sense to help them recover
what they spend. They have endured many hardships already, I am told, given
that they were required to play ditter to participate...”
“There are many duchies that will consider
these a great aid.”
With that, both Schutzaria’s shield and my
rejuvenation potions had been tested—and approved—by the Sovereign Knight’s
Order. Better still, Dunkelfelger and the royal family
had been present to witness it.
Whew. Now we can do the ritual without incident.
After heaving a silent sigh of relief, I
parted ways with the Sovereign Knight’s Order and moved to the Farthest Hall.
Dunkelfelger’s archduke candidates, Lestilaut
and Hannelore, would not be participating in this Dedication Ritual; as per our
agreement, they were going to spectate and nothing more. We were going to be
relying on the other duchies for their assistance.
“Those of the royal family, please line up
here,” I said. “I will produce Schutzaria’s shield at the entrance to detect
anyone with bad intentions. We will then guide the participants ourselves, but
they will each need to greet you all. Once those greetings have concluded,
please move here, to the center.”
A voice then announced that the participants
were gathering in the auditorium, and that everyone was to move to their
specified positions.
First to be permitted entry was a Klassenberg
archnoble. He saw the lined-up members of the royal family and went rigid with
fear.
Buddy, I know exactly how you feel.
“Please do come over and greet them,” I said,
urging him to come forward.
He came back to his senses, moved to greet the
royal family, then followed Hartmut’s instructions immediately after. The next
person came in right away.
The first person to face any resistance from
Schutzaria’s shield was an Ahrensbach student, who was abruptly knocked back.
As she blinked in confusion, Ehrenfest’s and Dunkelfelger’s apprentice knights
moved to intercept her.
“This is Schutzaria’s shield,” one of the
knights said. “It denies entry to all those with malicious intent. My
apologies, but as guard knights cannot attend the ritual, we cannot allow those
who may pose a threat to go inside.”
“This isn’t right!” the girl cried, glaring
daggers at me as the knights took her away. “I’m not malicious in the
slightest! It’s Lady Rozemyne! This is all a plot by Lady Rozemyne!”
In the end, two out of the five participating
Ahrensbach students were denied entry. Things proceeded smoothly from there,
though several students from duchies on the losing side of the civil war had to
leave.
“I hold no malice!” they would desperately
exclaim... but they were from duchies that had complained about their rank
dropping and their lands being ravaged after they lost the civil war.
Schutzaria’s shield had rejected them, so they could not enter.
“Perhaps your venom is directed at me rather
than the royal family,” I said, trying to frame it as something more
innocuous—though the royal family knew better than anyone that the civil war
had earned them many enemies. “Either way, I must ask that you sit this one
out. We cannot afford to have those who may be a threat in a ceremonial hall
without guard knights.”
Once the royal family had been greeted by all
of our participants, I directed them to move to the center. I then dismissed
Schutzaria’s shield and took a rejuvenation potion from my belt as I moved to
the door.
I should probably recover some mana, right? I’ve
lost a surprising amount.
Naturally, the Sovereign Knight’s Order was
made up of many strong individuals; taking so many of their attacks and then
healing them had proven quite taxing. Screening all of the students had taken
longer than expected as well. Maintaining the shield really did require a lot
of mana.
And now I’m about to make a chalice. Creating a
divine instrument takes a hefty chunk of mana, and today’s participants are
archnobles and archduke candidates, so there’s going to be a lot of mana being
offered, right?
Feeling anxious, I stealthily drank my
personal rejuvenation potion, then stood by the door as I waited for my mana to
recover. At the time, it hadn’t occurred to me what repercussions this might
have.
At the center of the room, Wilfried,
Charlotte, and Hartmut were giving an explanation about the ritual. They spoke
of various things—that we had formulated a theory that rituals and prayer were
important for obtaining divine protection from multiple gods, the number of
protections that Wilfried and I had obtained, the fact that our mana
expenditure had gone down as a result, that Dunkelfelger could now earn
blessings through a ditter ritual, and that we hoped this ritual would change
how everyone thought of the temple and religious ceremonies.
Hopefully this helps to diminish all the bias
against temples.
Once the explanations were complete, Hartmut
addressed all those in attendance. “The Dedication Ritual shall now begin.
Please kneel where you are and place your hands on the red carpet. Then, you
will need to repeat the prayer stated by Lady Rozemyne, the High Bishop of
Ehrenfest.”
First the royal family, then the
participants—who had been sitting as directed—took a knee. Hartmut confirmed
that Wilfried and Charlotte were at the edges and adopting the same position,
then took out a bell-adorned staff and rang it loudly.
“The High Bishop shall now enter!” he
declared.
Right on cue, I made my way from the door to
the center of the room and stopped in front of the shrine. I then offered a
prayer to the gods while looking at the chalice in Geduldh the Goddess of
Earth’s hands, and transformed my schtappe.
“Erdegral.”
It was a spell that I’d read in the
underground archive. My schtappe transformed into a chalice without incident,
but the feystone was entirely transparent—perhaps because I had been too
focused on the shrine. There was now a divine instrument in my hands, but it
hadn’t required much of my mana.
Mm... This is a bit unexpected.
Hartmut helped me to set down the chalice,
then we knelt and put our hands on the red carpet as well.
“I am one who offers prayer and gratitude to
the gods who have created the world...” I said, beginning the ritual. Everyone
repeated after me and offered their mana.
In Ehrenfest, only a few people gathered to
perform the Dedication Ritual, but here we had quite a sizable group. As we
chanted the prayer together and our mana started to flow, it started to feel as
though we had all become one. It elated me in the kind of way that festivals
did.
And then, everyone’s mana shot up toward the
ceiling in a pillar of light. It was red, the color of Geduldh.
“Wh-What is the meaning of this?!” Trauerqual
exclaimed.
“I expect that a portion of our mana flew to
some unknown point in the Royal Academy,” I said. “This always happens with
rituals done here. It does not happen in Ehrenfest, so I expect it is something
unique to the Academy.”
This was the king’s first ritual, so it made
sense that he’d require a little reassurance. I was sure that Anastasius had
already told him about Dunkelfelger’s ritual producing a blue pillar of light,
but listening to someone else’s account of an event was incomparable to seeing
it firsthand.
Seeing is believing, as they say.
I watched the light while continuing to
channel my mana, but I was soon interrupted by an almost hysterical cry from
Charlotte.
“That should be enough, Sister!”
“Everyone, please remove your hands from the
floor,” I said. “I expect some are beginning to run low on mana.”
Things had been going so well. I was actually
a little disappointed that Charlotte had called for the ceremony to end... but
that feeling quickly faded when I was faced with the aftermath. First, the
archnobles from the lesser and middle duchies stumbled forward and collapsed.
The archduke candidates stayed in their praying stances, looking sick, and even
those of the royal family appeared a little tired.
Charlotte intervened, but I still overdid it!
“Everyone, thank you for participating in the
Dedication Ritual,” I said. “Those of the royal family and the archduke
candidates here today are used to supplying mana to foundational magics, but
this must have been especially hard on the archnobles. We have prepared
rejuvenation potions to reward those of you who have given us your valuable
mana. Hartmut, the potions.”
I wanted to speed things along as much as
possible, but I still needed to consume a potion myself to prove that they
weren’t poisoned. Saying something like “Oh, I’m already overflowing with mana”
wouldn’t be enough to excuse me; it was about as weak as refusing to taste-test
your own sweets at a tea party because you’re “much too full.”
Having no other choice, I drank another potion
meant to significantly recover one’s mana.
This isn’t good...
And I wasn’t talking about the taste. The
ritual hadn’t been as demanding as I’d expected; at this rate, my mana was sure
to overflow. I watched with a smile as the king drank a potion and everyone
else followed suit, showing surprisingly little resistance, all the while
compressing my mana.
The rejuvenation rate of these potions is slower
than what I’m used to, so I might be able to act fast enough...
I desperately compressed my swelling mana,
wishing that I could share it with the students so exhausted from the ritual
that they were having to sit down. However, compression alone was not enough;
my mana was growing faster than I could contain it. Cold sweat beaded on my
forehead as I observed Anastasius and Sigiswald place a net with feystones into
the chalice.
What should I do?! I can’t stop recovering mana!
“Sister, is it just me, or is your bracelet
shining?” Charlotte whispered, having stealthily approached me. We were on the
cusp of repeating the blessing bomb incident.
“I am recovering too much mana,” I whispered
back. “Either my charms are going to shine one after another, or I’m going to
suddenly give out blessings. I need to expend a large amount of mana at once,
but how?”
Charlotte looked at the royal family, who were
peering at the feystones within the chalice, then at the students, then at my
bracelet. “Perhaps you could bless everyone with healing. That would be a
fairly natural way to expend your mana.”
I went with her brilliant idea immediately. If
my mana was going to overflow and turn into a blessing bomb anyway, then I was
better off taking the initiative. Rather than making an unexpected scene, I
would make it clear that I intended to heal everyone.
But how do I go about this, exactly?
The best approach would be to produce
Flutrane’s staff and heal everyone at once, but I still had the chalice out.
Not to mention, it was still packed with mana; I was pretty confident that the
feystones hadn’t finished absorbing it all.
I can’t make the chalice go away, but trying to
heal people one at a time with my ring would take too long. I need Flutrane’s
staff so that I can expend all of my built-up mana at once.
“I wish to produce Flutrane’s staff separately
from the chalice,” I said.
“Is such a thing even possible?” Charlotte
asked.
Surely it was, especially now that I was
overflowing with mana. The old sovereign’s record had mentioned producing the
divine shield and spear at the same time, and I’d once seen Ferdinand produce
several shields of Wind.
Besides, I don’t really have a choice. Inaction
would only result in my feystones lighting up in front of the royal family and
all these archduke candidates, then a blessing would pop out. I need to expend
my mana naturally. Do your best, me.
I opened and closed my fist, gathering my
mana. It was recovering steadily because of the potions I’d imbibed, so time
really was of the essence.
Another one of my charms began to shine.
Gaaah! Not another one! This is bad! So bad!
Come, schtappe! Make another instrument right away! Even apprentice knights can
use weapons and shields at the same time! I don’t know how it’s done, but it
must be possible!
My desperate plea must have reached the gods,
as another schtappe suddenly appeared in my right hand. At the same time, one
of the feystones on my bracelet stopped shining.
Charlotte inhaled sharply.
“It seems to be time, so if you’ll excuse
me...” I moved away from Charlotte and stood in front of everyone to make my
announcement. “Your mana is recovering but not your stamina, correct? My mana
has recovered as well, but I would not want you all to be stuck sitting on the
floor, so...”
I produced my schtappe and chanted, “Streitkolben” to produce Flutrane’s staff.
“I must rely on Flutrane’s staff to heal so
many people at once,” I continued with a smile, trying to sidestep the issue of
my mana. “My inexperience is a great source of embarrassment.”
I really was telling the truth about my
embarrassment; I hadn’t been able to judge how much mana I needed for the
ritual.
“May Heilschmerz’s healing be granted,” I
said.
I prayed while putting my absolute all into
channeling my mana... and soon enough, green light overflowed from Flutrane’s
staff. Light shot up into the air just as it had during the Dedication Ritual,
and the rest of the mana rained down on all those gathered. Heilschmerz’s
healing didn’t actually do much to alleviate exhaustion, to my knowledge, but I
didn’t care about that; my top priority was expending my mana.
With that, I’d granted everyone healing. Gone
was the threat of my feystones shining obnoxiously in front of everyone and a
blessing bomb detonating out of nowhere again.
I got into a real panic over all this, but now
that it’s over, everything feels... fine? The phrase “all’s well that ends
well” was made for times like this. I wiped the sweat from my brow. Ferdinand, I’ve become a schtappe dual-wielder! Hopefully one day I’ll
be able to make a ton of schtappes, just like you!
I could feel the satisfaction of now being
even a step closer to my mentor. Clearly the best move here would be to inform
him by letter and receive a showering of praise.
It was possible that the downed archnobles
from lesser and middle duchies had gotten hurt when so much of their mana was
sucked out of them. Still, although Heilschmerz’s healing didn’t do much to
ease their exhaustion, it at least allowed them to get back on their knees.
I was just beginning to think how this
differed from the time I’d healed Elvira in Haldenzel when I heard someone
mumble, “Mestionora...”
“I concur, Lady Hannelore!” Clarissa
exclaimed, her fists clenched passionately. “I received exactly the same
impression! Lady Rozemyne’s actions clearly parallel Mestionora, who was
permitted by the gods to use all of their instruments!” She was on the verge of
another long-winded speech, but I wasn’t sure that I agreed.
Hartmut looked similarly doubtful. “I do not
seem to recall such an idea being expressed in the temple’s bible...”
“It is spoken of within old Dunkelfelger
books.”
“Mestionora is said to be the daughter of the
God of Life and Goddess of Earth, is she not?” Eglantine suddenly added in agreement.
“Some old books in Klassenberg say the same. To hide from the God of Life, she
received hair as dark as the night sky from the God of Darkness, and golden
eyes from the Goddess of Light. She then became the subordinate of Wind, the
strongest defense of all the gods...” She gave a teasing smile. “Indeed,
Mestionora is just like Lady Rozemyne.”
I had absolutely no idea how to respond.
“I speak in jest, of course,” she said.
“Please do not look so troubled.”
“Anyone would be troubled to be compared to a
goddess, Lady Eglantine...” I replied. How was I supposed to react to a member
of the royal family—one so often mentioned in the same breath as the Goddess of
Light, no less—comparing me to Mestionora?
Hartmut smoothly stepped forward. “I had no
idea that such a tale existed... I find it fascinating beyond words and would
certainly like to read it myself.”
After expressing his thanks, Hartmut brought
the event to a swift close. I’d genuinely expected him to join Clarissa in
freaking out and causing a fuss—a hasty conclusion that I was now ashamed of.
From the bottom of my heart, I was grateful to have someone so competent on my
side.
Using the Rest of the Mana
“That should do,” Anastasius said.
The feystone-filled net was pulled out of the
chalice with a wet plop. After absorbing the mana, the
previously transparent feystones had turned red, the color of the chalice.
Anastasius held them up to show everyone.
“We intend to use the mana gathered from this
ritual to enrich Yurgenschmidt in its entirety.”
“Each and every one of you has my sincerest
gratitude,” the king added.
There were many small, proud smiles among the
crowd. Some of the students had given so much mana that they had ended up
collapsing in front of the royal family. Partly to apologize to them and thank
them for their efforts, I decided to reveal some information.
“What I am about to say will be made public
during the Interduchy Tournament, but I shall tell those of you who
participated now. Our research thus far has shown that, to obtain divine
protections, one should pray when supplying mana to one’s foundational magic,
as well as before and after putting one’s all into things such as brewing or
training. This is made even more effective by channeling mana into a protective
feystone engraved with the sigil of the god whose divine protection one wishes
to obtain.”
I turned to Hannelore, who smiled and showed
the Dregarnuhr charm on her wrist. She had apparently received it from one of
her attendants.
The apprentice scholars looked at the charm
with bright eyes; unlike the archduke candidates, they lacked chances to pray
to their foundational magic. “In that case, we can pray without going to the
temple,” one said.
I would have liked to change their opinion on
the temple, but getting them used to prayer came first. Perhaps adults would
see the god-worshipping temple more favorably when their children started to
earn divine protections.
“You say that one can earn more divine
protections through prayer, but I have already performed the ceremony for
divine protections,” Ortwin said. “Praying now will not earn me any more.”
He wasn’t alone; most of our participants had
already completed the ritual, and their looks of optimism quickly faded.
The king raised a hand, seizing the attention
of everyone present, and then said in a collected tone: “In that case, I would
suggest granting those who are gathered the right to repeat the ceremony after
their graduation. This will allow us to confirm the accuracy of Dunkelfelger
and Ehrenfest’s research.”
Everyone’s expressions lit up. Ortwin seemed
motivated as well. Many of the students had years until their graduation; I was
confident that, if they prayed seriously, many of them would obtain new
protections.
“Naturally, the sixth-years will find
themselves at a disadvantage,” I said, “but know this: Aub Ehrenfest obtained
the divine protections of Liebeskhilfe the Goddess of Binding and Glucklitat
the God of Trials after just a year of prayer, then wonderfully obtained a
first wife from a duchy of a higher rank than his own. You would all do well to
offer your prayers and mana to the gods while striving toward whatever you may
desire.”
Leaking the divine protections that Sylvester
had obtained earned me a few giggles. Hopefully that would make people see him
in a better light.
So much of what happened today wasn’t according
to plan, but I’m glad everything ended safely.
As I watched everyone leave the Farthest Hall,
looking satisfied, I clenched and unclenched my fist, confirming that my mana
really had settled down. I seemed to be in the clear.
“Rozemyne, explain how in the world you
produced two divine instruments at once,” Anastasius asked as the participants
were replaced with Ehrenfest and Dunkelfelger students coming in to clean up.
The other members of the royal family were silently urging me as well, but I
just knew that they wouldn’t believe the truth: that I had completely winged
it.
“You ask for an explanation, but I do not
believe the process is that unusual,” I replied. “Even apprentice knights can
use a weapon and a shield at the same time.”
“Yes, but only after taking the knight course.
You have done no such thing.”
Oh yeah...
“My predecessors were simply inspiring,” I
said with a smile. “The record of an old sovereign in the underground archive
mentioned the spear and shield being used at the same time, and I have seen
someone produce multiple shields of Wind at once.”
Anastasius grimaced, evidently displeased with
my answer.
“So the weapons and shields used by knights
are the same as divine instruments to you?” Sigiswald asked. He was wearing a
calm smile, but his features were noticeably stiff.
“The spell is the same, so yes, that is my
opinion.”
“Lady Rozemyne... you certainly have a
perspective unique to the rest of us,” Adolphine remarked. Both she and
Eglantine seemed rather unsettled, and not in a good way. It was probably best
that I not say anything I didn’t need to.
“Still, the healing was necessary, was it
not?” I asked. “Collapsing in front of the royal family and not even being able
to kneel is seen as a serious blunder. I could not have left the archnobles in
that condition.” I’d needed to prevent them from thinking that they’d shamed
themselves, and the blessing had clearly made the archduke candidates and those
of the royal family feel better. In other words, it hadn’t been a waste.
“Furthermore, I wished to grant healing to the Zent.”
“To Father?”
“Although this is my first time meeting him, I
can tell that he is pushing himself beyond the limits of what is healthy...”
The king may have resembled Anastasius in
appearance, but his exhausted demeanor and the sickly sweet scent of
rejuvenation potions that hung in the air around him kept making me think of
Ferdinand. I was aware that they didn’t want my sympathy, but things had to be
bad if not even his standard noble poker face was enough to keep his true
feelings hidden. My concern was entirely justified.
“It did ease our burden, yes,” the king said.
“I express my thanks.”
“I am honored to have been of use to the
Zent.”
I’d wanted to add, “Be sure to eat, and get
enough sleep each and every night” but I stopped myself. That was a sign of
growth, surely.
“Putting that aside, what should we do with
the mana left in the chalice?” Anastasius asked, shooting a glance at it. The
royal family hadn’t brought enough empty feystones to absorb it
all—understandably so, as I’d stealthily added more to blow off some steam.
“I cannot keep the chalice formed forever, and
we declared that it would all be offered to the royal family... so I believe we
should use it for the sake of everyone at the Royal Academy.”
“Oh? Do you have something splendid in mind,
Lady Rozemyne?” Adolphine asked, watching me closely, her amber eyes betraying
her interest. Eglantine looked equally as absorbed.
“Let us give it to the library,” I said. “In
the past, it depended on the mana of three archscholars and several
medscholars, but for the past several years, Professor Solange, a lone
mednoble, was managing everything herself. Even the preservation magic has worn
off from the archives, and the rotting of valuable documents has created a lot
of extra work.”
Hortensia, the Sovereign knight commander’s
first wife, was apparently doing her best to maintain things, but they still
were two archnobles short. I couldn’t help them either, both due to an order
from Sigiswald and because I needed to avoid registering with Schwartz and
Weiss.
“I request your permission to use the mana to
preserve those valuable documents, and to enter the library myself,” I
concluded.
The king thought for a moment, then
nodded—perhaps because the royal family now knew about the underground archive,
which was absolutely of use to them. “Very well. The remaining mana may be used
for the library. We cannot all go there at once, so Anastasius, Eglantine, I
ask that you see it done.”
“Understood.”
“I leave the rest to the both of you. We will
excuse ourselves first.”
With that, the royal family and the Sovereign
Knight’s Order filed out of the room. The cleanup could not proceed while the
king was present, so he had probably acted out of consideration. We all knelt
as we saw him off, then began discussing our immediate plans.
“One moment, Anastasius,” Eglantine said. “I
will send an ordonnanz to the library to inform them.”
“Yes, thank you,” Anastasius replied, flashing
her a sweet smile. It must have been a look reserved exclusively for his wife,
as he had returned to his usual expression when he turned to me. “Hannelore
will come with us as Dunkelfelger’s representative. You will need to see this
done as well, I expect.”
Hannelore flinched upon hearing her name.
“W-Wait, I’m going with you? Should it not be my brother...?”
Lestilaut briskly waved away the suggestion.
“It is better that you go, as you have already been entrusted with one of the
keys. I will stay here and oversee the cleanup as Dunkelfelger’s supervisor.”
Hannelore nodded and began selecting retainers
to accompany her. I turned to my own retainers and did the same.
“Matthias, Laurenz—you two carry the chalice.
The rest of my apprentice knights will accompany me as guards. Rihyarda,
Brunhilde—you will be my attendants. Lieseleta, Gretia, and the apprentice
scholars shall stay here and assist Hartmut.”
“Understood.”
My retainers here at the Royal Academy all
nodded in response, while Hartmut alone looked at me in shock. “Lady Rozemyne,
I would very much like to go as well,” he said.
“Oh, but you are the High Priest, granted
entry only to manage the tools needed for the ritual. We cannot allow you to
simply wander the grounds at your leisure. Not to mention... you have so little
time to spend with Clarissa; this is an excellent opportunity for you to speak
with her.”
I was trying to be considerate, but Hartmut
looked exceedingly disappointed for some reason. We were going to be channeling
mana into the library, not performing a ritual, so I wanted him to focus on
cleaning.
“Wilfried, I would like you to stay here as
well and represent Ehrenfest,” I said. “Once everything is finished, send word
to Prince Hildebrand and have him shut the door.”
“Got it.”
And so, I started making my way to the
library, leaving the cleaning to Wilfried and Charlotte. I couldn’t walk very
fast, as always, but I did my best to avoid falling too far behind Hannelore’s
group.
“There was excess mana from the Dedication
Ritual, so we received permission from the Zent to use it for the library,” I
explained upon our arrival, having brought the chalice with me.
Hortensia and Solange enthusiastically
welcomed us inside; it seemed that the library’s mana shortage was severe
indeed.
“If possible, use the mana on this magic
tool,” Hortensia said. “I understand it as being the most important tool for
the library’s operation, but my mana alone is not enough for it.”
As it turned out, Raimund had asked Hortensia
all sorts of questions about what kind of magic tools were in the library. She
had only recently been assigned here, however, and she still wasn’t very well
informed, so the two of them had started investigating the library’s
construction and magic tools. Meanwhile, Solange, Schwartz, and Weiss oversaw
the daily operations.
“After looking into the library’s mana
requirements and reading the diaries of past librarians, we deduced that this
magic tool, abandoned since the departure of the previous archlibrarians, is
more important than any other. After calculating how much mana remains in the
tool, we realized that it might run out within one year. We were planning to
discuss this matter with the royal family as soon as possible—tomorrow, even,
if we were so lucky.”
“Then let us pour the mana in now,” I said.
Hortensia directed my retainers as they
brought in the chalice, then Matthias and Laurenz slowly poured the red liquid
that was inside onto the massive feystone atop the tool, covering it
completely. None of the liquid spilled onto the ground; it was all quickly
absorbed.
Soon, the almost transparent feystone slowly
became a veritable rainbow of colors. The mana we had poured onto it had been
red, so this didn’t really make sense to me, but I didn’t expect an
explanation.
Hortensia sighed in relief. “The color is
returning! I tried so hard to refill the magic tool myself, but no matter how
much mana I channeled into it, nothing seemed to change. I truly had started to
fear that it would cease operating during my tenure, but now... I am so very
thankful.”
Solange was also glad. She noted that, with
the magic tool replenished, she could finally relax again.
“During today’s Dedication Ritual, we received
the assistance of not only archnobles and archduke candidates, but members of
the royal family as well. That is why we had so much mana,” I explained. “I am
glad that we have been able to use some of that to assist you.”
Anastasius and Eglantine checked that the
chalice no longer contained any mana, then gave brisk nods, signaling that it
was safe for me to unform it. I was pleased to have helped the library, despite
how unexpected it had been.
As we went to leave, Schwartz and Weiss hopped
over merrily.
“Milady. Lots of mana.”
“Gramps very happy.”
By “milady” they were referring to Hortensia,
so she must have been working very hard for the library’s sake. I was genuinely
moved to hear that.
“Schwartz and Weiss are glad to have received
your mana as well, Professor Hortensia,” I said.
“Oh, well, considering how much mana the
library requires, my contribution is almost inconsequential,” Hortensia
replied. She was speaking humbly, of course, since we were in the presence of
royals.
I smiled at Hortensia, and she smiled in turn.
Anyone who was willing to work hard for the library was a good person in my
book.
“More importantly, who is this ‘gramps’?”
Anastasius asked, intruding into our pleasant conversation.
Hortensia and Solange exchanged looks, wary of
the prince’s scrutinous eyes. They didn’t have an answer that would appease the
royal family, it seemed... but in their place, Schwartz and Weiss spoke up.
“Gramps is gramps.”
“He is old. Powerful.”
It was exactly the same answer that I’d once
received, and no more comprehensible—though their flopping ears certainly were
cute. I gazed up at Anastasius and Eglantine, wondering whether the royal
family had any ideas, but they both seemed just as unsure.
“What was that supposed to mean...?”
Anastasius asked the librarians; he had presumably concluded that there was no
point questioning the shumils.
Hortensia and Solange both looked troubled.
“Professor Solange, you said it might be a
magic tool even older than Schwartz and Weiss, right?” I asked.
“Indeed,” she replied with a nod, “but that
was only speculation. I thought it might be a named magic tool, like Schwartz
and Weiss, but none of the documentation we have mentions such a nickname. At
present, we cannot tell what purpose the magic tool might serve or whether it
even exists in the first place.”
According to Solange, the register that listed
all of the library’s magic tools omitted nicknames and such to avoid any
confusion when they fell out of use.
“Is that so?” I mused aloud. “But in the diary
I borrowed, Schwartz and Weiss were referred to by name...”
“Yes, but that was a personal effect, not an
official document to be stored publicly.” It seemed that most diaries weren’t
left behind for long.
Hortensia looked upward, perhaps searching her
memories of the documents she had read while looking through the magic tools.
“I personally investigated the library’s magic tools and can confirm that no
‘gramps’ was mentioned. However, we do know that it was pleased by this tool
being refilled, so perhaps the tool is gramps.”
“I see. What does it do, exactly?”
“One could call it the very foundation of the
library. There is no mistaking that it was created at a time before even
Schwartz and Weiss.”
“As a foundation, it must be an old and
powerful magic tool,” Anastasius said with a nod, completely satisfied. He then
went to leave, but I called out to him first.
“Prince Anastasius, when will we next be going
to the underground archive? You must inform us in advance so that the library
can prepare.” I was only here today because the king had granted me his
permission, so it made sense that I was eagerly awaiting our next visit.
Anastasius’s brow twitched a bit, then he
casually replied that there were no plans for us to go there again.
“Why not? If today’s ritual helped you to
understand the importance of religious ceremonies and divine protections, then
shouldn’t investigating the archive filled with valuable documents be your
highest priority?”
Part of my rationale for getting the royal
family involved in all this had been to quell everyone’s dissatisfaction, but
that wasn’t my true objective. I’d wanted them to learn the importance of
ceremonies and then be like “Wow, we’ve gotta investigate all the documents in
the underground library right away!”
And the ritual went so well too... Was there a
mistake in my expert calculations?!
“We are going to be busy for the near future,”
Anastasius said. “We must enrich Yurgenschmidt with the mana we have received.”
It was only natural that this sudden offering
of mana would make the royal family very busy, and the king’s sickly appearance
was enough for me to gather that he valued supplying the country over reading
documents. They no doubt wanted to get through all the mana and then take a
breather instead of poking through an old archive.
NOOOOOO! There really was an error! A critical
one!
My master plan to make the royal family want
more frequent archive visits was turning to dust before my very eyes.
“But the Zent gave me his permission to come
to the library...”
“And here you are. Father said nothing of
going to that archive today or of scheduling a date.”
I failed to get proper assurance! I made it all
this way and then fell at the final hurdle! Gahhh, I suck!
Seeing me get depressed, Eglantine gave a kind
smile. “As you suggest, Lady Rozemyne, looking over the old records is very
important... but supplying mana to magic tools and divine instruments will have
an enormous impact on next year’s harvest. Thus, we must hurry and act as soon
as we can, before spring comes. Have patience for now.”
“As you wish.”
Despite my crippling disappointment, I was a
High Bishop; I understood the importance of the winter Dedication Ritual. I
wanted to go back into the archive—I really, really did—but I had no choice but
to wait.
“Rozemyne, do you not treat Eglantine with far
more respect than you treat me?” Anastasius asked pointedly.
“Not at all. Were the royal family entrusting
the divine ceremonies to the Sovereign temple, I would want you to prioritize
checking the documents in the archive. But if you are supplying the mana
yourselves, then, as a High Bishop, I can hardly interfere.”
I was sure that I could endure a little longer
without the archive. I didn’t have a choice anyway, since I needed their
permission to go inside.
“There will come a time when we must enter the
archive again,” Anastasius said. “Until then, push it from your mind, act only
as is necessary, and focus on preparing to make your research public. Is that
understood, Ehrenfest? And you, Dunkelfelger.”
Hannelore recoiled at being dragged into the
conversation so suddenly.
“Many will have seen the pillar of light
during today’s ritual,” he continued. “We are in no position to deal with the
many concerns and complaints that will surely follow, so, Dunkelfelger, address
them in our stead. I expect you have the leeway.”
Hannelore shrank into herself and politely
replied, “Understood.” It was so sad to think that even though the apprentice
knights were the ones playing ditter, Hannelore would be the one rebuked.
“I will return to the auditorium with you to
see whether they have finished cleaning up,” Anastasius said. And with that, we
made our way out of the library.
“They seem to be finished,” Anastasius said.
Clarissa and my retainers were the only ones
remaining in the auditorium. Even from some distance away, I could see that
Hartmut and Clarissa were passionately raving to each other, while my retainers
were watching from afar.
Hartmut had been granted special permission to
participate in today’s ritual as a High Priest, but that didn’t change the fact
that he wouldn’t have been allowed here at the Royal Academy under normal
circumstances. Even though he was engaged to Clarissa, it seemed that my
retainers didn’t feel comfortable leaving him alone with her.
Though it’s clear as day how much they want to
leave.
Lieseleta, who was the first to notice our
arrival, came over to give us an update. “After finishing the cleanup, we
contacted Prince Hildebrand, who came and closed the door to the Farthest Hall
for us. The others were dispersed so that Hartmut could speak without being
disturbed, which is why only Lady Rozemyne’s retainers remain.”
“My apologies for leaving such a difficult job
to you all,” I replied. Hartmut was an archnoble, while the other retainers I’d
tasked with cleaning were laynobles and mednobles; none of them were in any
position to stop the overzealous couple.
Maybe I should have left Rihyarda here as well...
As I was lost in thought, Anastasius looked
down at me and muttered, “Then our job is done.” He then gave Eglantine a soft
smile, extended a hand to her, and said, “Let us return, Eglantine.”
“Yes, Anastasius.”
And so, the two royals briskly returned to
their villa. Anastasius seemed pleased as he escorted Eglantine.
Once the happy newlyweds were gone, I turned
to Hartmut and Clarissa, who were still very much off in their own world.
“Hartmut, Clarissa, it pains me greatly to separate a couple waxing romantic,
but sixth bell will soon ring. Let us return to our dorms.”
They both snapped back to reality and turned
to look at me.
“Lady Rozemyne... Very well. It seems that
will be all for today, Clarissa.”
“But, Hartmut... I wished to speak with you
even longer,” Clarissa said, gripping his sleeve and gazing at him intently,
her blue eyes wet with tears. They really were like two lovers loath to
separate.
Hartmut gave Clarissa a truly regretful smile.
“I feel the same way. Never have I had such a wonderful time extolling Lady
Rozemyne’s virtues with another.”
As they gazed into one another’s eyes, I could
tell that they were in their own little world once again. Hartmut’s
disappointment at having not been allowed to accompany me to the library was
nowhere to be seen. I really wasn’t sure what to do—but then Hannelore turned
to Cordula and called out her name.
Cordula quietly said, “In that case, if you
will excuse me...” and stepped forward. “Clarissa, if you continue this, then
you will become Ewigeliebe upon losing Erwaermen.”
In an instant, Clarissa released Hartmut’s
sleeve and hurried to the very back of Hannelore’s group of retainers. I could
only blink in surprise at her sudden change.
Hannelore smiled. “My sincerest apologies for
Clarissa, Lady Rozemyne.”
“Oh, no; it was I who caused you trouble.”
We promised to meet again soon to discuss the
Interduchy Tournament announcements, then went our separate ways and returned
to our dormitories.
Tea Parties and Negotiations
“Hartmut,” I said, “if you do not hurry back
to Ehrenfest, sixth bell will ring.”
In general, sixth bell marked the end of the
workday. There were knights on duty at the teleportation hall at all times in
case of emergencies, but after they clocked out, they wouldn’t do anything for
us without very good reason or an order from the aub. This was especially
troubling because Hartmut, an adult and the Ehrenfest High Priest, was
permitted to be in the Royal Academy only for the day of the ritual. He needed
to leave in time, or else he would be soundly punished.
I forced Hartmut, still in his High Priest
robes, into the teleportation hall, alongside a wagon stuffed with boxes and
the like.
“Please inform Sylvester that we will send our
cleaned ceremonial robes at a later date,” I said to Hartmut. “Also, be sure to
personally deliver a report on today’s ceremony.”
“Understood.”
Things had started to get busier, but Hartmut
safely managed to teleport away in time. Sixth bell rang as I saw him off, then
I returned to my room.
“It’s time for dinner, Lady Rozemyne,”
Lieseleta said. “Let us get you changed.” She and Gretia wasted no time
undressing me and putting me in the normal clothes I wore around the Royal
Academy.
As I arrived at the dining hall, I found that
Wilfried and Charlotte were already eating. “You took a while, Rozemyne,” said
the former.
“We just supplied mana to the library’s
foundational magic tool,” I replied, “but it was located somewhere that
students cannot usually reach, quite out of the way. Still, it was fun. There
were many magic tools there.” I intended to make note of any beneficial ones
mentioned in Raimund’s report and incorporate them into my own library. “How
did the cleaning go?”
“Let’s see... What to say...?” Wilfried mused
aloud. “Ah, right. Lord Lestilaut requested a tea party. We need to finalize
our research, including the parts related to today’s ceremony, and decide how
we’re going to present it all during the Interduchy Tournament.”
I’d made a similar promise with Hannelore. I
looked around at my attendants, wondering when would be a good time—and it was
then that Charlotte started to giggle.
“Sister, Wilfried and Lord Lestilaut
actually—”
“Charlotte!” Wilfried snapped, sounding a
little hysterical. He was acting a lot like one of my childhood friends from my
Urano days; I’d found his stash of dirty books, and he’d desperately tried
everything in his power to keep his mom from finding out about them.
“Come on then, Wilfried,” I said. “Tell me
where you were hiding them. I wouldn’t recommend under your bed; that’s far too
predictable.”
“Uh, what are you talking about...?”
After blinking at Wilfried, surprised at his
surprise, I turned to Charlotte for an explanation.
“There is no reason to hide it, Brother. In
fact, it must be reported. Sister, Lord Lestilaut is
going to bring several of the illustrations he has drawn to our next tea party.
He has asked that you buy whichever ones you find most suitable for A Ditter Story. It seems that he wishes to read a ‘complete’
version of the book as soon as possible.”
Wilfried met Charlotte’s remarks with a slight
frown. “I’ve been looking forward to it, since Lord Lestilaut told me his
illustrations have turned out really heroic and all that, but I was going to
wait a bit before telling Rozemyne. She just doesn’t understand the hearts of
men like us. Also, once the tea party becomes the subject of conversation,
you’ll hear about it from your attendants anyway.”
I was overwhelmed with the urge to sigh.
“Wilfried, the actual transaction may take place here in the Royal Academy, but
the payment will not come from the dormitory’s funds. Instead, it will come
either from my own money or from that set aside for the printing industry.”
“Hm?”
“We need to correspond with Ehrenfest to
decide which budget the funds will come from—and communication by letter takes
time.”
I’d written to Elvira as soon as we’d
confirmed that we were buying illustrations from Lestilaut, but we’d yet to
come to an agreement. First of all, our choice would depend on whether we could
use Lestilaut’s illustrations in our books. If we couldn’t, then I would
purchase them with my own money and print only a few copies specifically for
Dunkelfelger. If we could, then we would use the printing industry’s funds and
distribute the books more widely.
Of course, in the latter scenario, we would
need Elvira’s permission.
“Book-related payments always seem to come
from you, so I didn’t even realize...” Wilfried said.
Now that Ferdinand was gone, Hartmut was
overseeing my finances. Although I might have money to throw around, I never
had any on hand.
“Indeed,” I replied. “That is why you must
give proper reports at all times.”
“I can’t believe I’m hearing that from you, of
all people... You need to do the same, you know. Like today—that wide-scale
healing thing wasn’t part of the plan. I assume you’re going to explain your
reasoning to Father. You have to give a proper report,
after all.”
I slumped my shoulders. In an unexpected
twist, my own lecture had come back to bite me.
After sending my report to Ehrenfest, I ended
up bedridden with a fever.
Plans for the upcoming tea party were
gradually decided in my absence. Even from my bed, I tried to find out what was
going on and what the budget was looking like, but Rihyarda just gave me a look
of exasperation.
“Milady, focus on getting better before the
tea party with Dunkelfelger.”
Brunhilde nodded. “It was wise not to schedule
any tea parties for immediately after the ritual.”
They continued to observe my health carefully,
assisting with preparations for the tea party all the while. In the meantime,
Philine and Muriella came with a report.
“Money has arrived from Lady Elvira,” Philine
said. “It seems to be your own funds, Lady Rozemyne. We can use this to buy
Lord Lestilaut’s illustrations.”
If the illustrations were of a high enough
quality, then our printing officials would simply buy them from us.
“For now, Lady Rozemyne, rest and recover.”
It was only two days before I could move
again; my fevers were much shorter now than before. It was reassuring to know
that my health truly was getting better—and on that positive note, I went to
the dining hall to eat, then moved to the common room to find out what I had
missed.
“Wilfried and I were invited to Professor
Gundolf’s laboratory while you were bedridden, Sister,” Charlotte began.
“Everyone from Drewanchel is very serious about obtaining divine protections.”
“Right. I don’t think any other duchy has
every single one of its students preparing charms,” Wilfried added, a serious
look in his eyes.
“I see that Drewanchel more than deserves its
position as a greater duchy,” I said. It was impressive that they had
distributed charms to all of their students within two days—or at least given
them the ingredients they needed to make their own.
“Yeah. Ehrenfest knew all this before them,
but none of our students made charms marked with the sigils of the gods. Our
apprentice scholars who experienced the same ritual didn’t even take the
initiative to make charms to give out. There’s a pretty clear gap between our
duchies.”
To be clear, the only Ehrenfest apprentice
scholars to have participated in the Dedication Ritual were those serving
Wilfried and Charlotte. My apprentice scholars were all mednobles and
laynobles, so they hadn’t been able to join.
“As we speak, Ignaz and Marianne are making
charms in the brewing room,” Wilfried continued. He then lowered his voice to a
whisper and said, “To be honest, I’ve been feeling a little down about it all.
We had the intelligence before anyone else and still couldn’t use it well. I’m
not leading my duchy as well as Ortwin, even though we’re the same age.”
Charlotte tried to console him by saying that
such skills were far from easy to master. Then she continued, “I have plans for
a tea party with a middle-ranking duchy tomorrow. There, I will see what other
duchies thought of this event. You and Sister can focus on the tea party with
Dunkelfelger.”
I nodded in response.
And so came the day of our tea party with
Dunkelfelger. Wilfried and I went to their tea party room at the agreed time,
exchanged greetings with Lestilaut and Hannelore, then took the seats we were
offered. Everything was proceeding normally... that is, until Lestilaut gave
his retainers some kind of signal.
“Now, have a look at these.”
“Brother, your illustrations can wait until
after we have discussed the research and—”
“We will only be able to focus once this
matter has been dealt with,” Lestilaut replied, waving away Hannelore’s
attempted protest. He then got one of his apprentice scholars to spread ten or
so illustrations on the table, positioned so that Wilfried and I could see them
in all their monochrome glory. “As I was unaware of what degree of
black-and-white contrast you would prefer, I determined it best that you decide
yourself. Pick whichever ones will suit the book most.”
My favorite was a close-up illustration of a
knight atop their highbeast, brandishing their weapon; it was so evocative that
I could practically hear the fluttering of the cape. Lestilaut had presumably
adopted a thing or two from Wilma’s artwork, as his lines were well organized
and nicely suited our preferred black-and-white style. However, while Wilma’s
work was kind and gentle, Lestilaut’s was particularly energetic, befitting a
battle over treasure.
To be honest... I underestimated Lord Lestilaut’s
art skills.
I should have known that he was an excellent
illustrator; after all, he’d been particularly vocal about his talents instead
of merely saying that art was something he “dabbled in” or what have you. He
truly was on a whole other level.
“Very impressive,” I said, peering down at the
illustrations. “These are even better than I imagined.”
“These are wonderful, Lord Lestilaut!”
Wilfried exclaimed soon after, his dark-green eyes sparkling with admiration
and respect. “With such amazing illustrations, we can make A
Ditter Story even more enjoyable. Do you not agree, Rozemyne?”
“I certainly do; they are
wonderful. However, I should make one thing clear: as we will need to use a
process known as stenciling to prepare these illustrations for print, their
atmosphere is sure to change, even if only a little. Can we confirm that you
understand this, Lord Lestilaut?”
Lestilaut knit his brows. “What do you mean,
their atmosphere will change...?”
“I cannot say any more for fear of revealing
our technique, but at some point during the printing process, your art will
need to be altered by another.”
Upon hearing this, Lestilaut grimaced. As a
pure-blooded artist, he must have found the very thought of someone else
touching his work offensive. “I can perform that part of the process myself,”
he said.
“That would make you privy to our method, so I
must refuse. The current plan is for us to purchase the illustrations and then
print them ourselves. If you cannot accept others making amendments to your
work, then we will not be able to buy it.”
No matter who bought the illustrations, in the
end, we were going to do the stenciling in an Ehrenfest workshop. Putting aside
cases when people wed into our duchy or started serving our archducal family, I
wasn’t going to allow those from other duchies to do any of the cutting. That
was doubly the case for the archduke candidate of a greater duchy like
Lestilaut.
My declaration received a panicked
response—not from Lestilaut, however, but from Wilfried.
“Hold on, Rozemyne. We won’t get illustrations
this good anywhere else! We need to buy these to make A
Ditter Story as good as it can be, right? We can have Lord Lestilaut do
the altering stuff as long as we contract him not to leak any information.”
Wilfried seemed very invested in Lestilaut’s
illustrations. I appreciated that he was so enthusiastic about a book—it really
was nice to see—but this wasn’t the time.
“Above all else, Ehrenfest needs illustrations
that are easy to print,” I said. “Though we do value their beauty as well, we
gain nothing from buying art that we cannot actually use. Furthermore, we do
not want to risk a greater duchy like Dunkelfelger stealing our newly
researched technique before we have even begun selling books formally.”
“I see,” Lestilaut replied. “That is
reasonable.”
Even then, Wilfried refused to give up. “But
we have a chance to use such phenomenal art...” he said, his eyes desperately
flitting between me and the illustrations he loved so much.
“Indeed” was my response. “These pictures are
wonderful. Once we begin selling copies of the book in Ehrenfest, and our
buyers start producing their own splendid leather covers, Lord Lestilaut can
add these illustrations to his and revel in their glory.”
“But then I—others
will not be able to see them,” Wilfried said.
I shrugged. “There is no helping that; keeping
our industry secrets from leaking is our greatest concern. If your duchy,
Dunkelfelger the Second, were to steal from us, then we would not be able to
protest.”
Stenciling was the very foundation of
mimeograph printing—yet someone with a sharp eye would probably be able to
deduce how it worked simply by cutting out one of our illustrations. On top of
that, the wax paper, styluses, and files were all the result of my Gutenbergs
putting their heads together and really working hard; I couldn’t let the fruits
of their labor be stolen so easily. We would one day spread our printing
knowledge to other duchies, but we hadn’t even started selling books yet, so
that wasn’t going to happen anytime soon. Only when Ehrenfest’s position had
stabilized more would we consider that next step.
As well as all that, allowing Dunkelfelger to
make its own stencils would set an unwanted precedent that future duchies we
collaborated with might attempt to follow. Swearing them to silence through
magic contracts would surely be a nightmare—and an expensive one, at that. Our
actions here were going to have consequences for years to come.
Besides, my aim here was to bring a talented
artist into Ehrenfest, not buy illustrations from an archduke candidate.
“Printing is entirely different from drawing
with pens,” I said, trying to hammer home my argument. “If nobody else is
permitted to touch the illustrations, then I expect Lord Lestilaut will
complain when he sees the finished, printed product.”
Even back on Earth, copier machines didn’t
create perfect copies—some lines came out incorrectly, or hard-to-control
factors like dust caused minor imperfections. In this case, although
Lestilaut’s illustration was designed to work in black and white, it had many
thin lines. It was unavoidable that its atmosphere would change after it was
stenciled.
“This is going to be our first time buying art
from another duchy,” I continued. “If we charge ahead with this collaboration
only for Lord Lestilaut to express his displeasure with our results, then we
will severely damage the reputation of our printing industry. In that regard,
not buying the art at all will spare both parties a great inconvenience.”
“True...” Wilfried reluctantly muttered,
conceding with a look of severe regret.
Relieved, I turned back to Lestilaut, who was
now watching me with an intrigued expression. “With all of this in mind,” I
said, “will you sell your illustrations to Ehrenfest?”
His red eyes, which had just a moment ago been
evaluating me, crinkled in a slight smile. “I understand Ehrenfest’s position.
I will consider whether I am willing to entrust them to another and then give
you my response.”
“Your work truly is splendid,” I said,
returning his smile, “so I await a positive reply.”
Thus concluded that portion of our discussion.
Lestilaut gestured for his apprentice scholars to begin clearing away the
illustrations, then watched them work while sipping his tea. Once they were
done, he turned back to us and said, “Now, with that settled, let us decide who
shall announce our joint research and in what manner.”
It seemed that, if the two duchies working
together each presented the results of their joint research, visitors would
only visit the greater duchy. Thus, at times, even the lower-ranking duchy was
made to present.
“In the case of our research, the only shared
element was the questioning of the apprentice knights and your duchy’s
students,” I said. “As there were quite notable differences between the rituals
we performed, I believe we can announce our findings separately. Don’t you
agree, Wilfried?”
“Yeah. I heard that Dunkelfelger’s
successfully made pillars of light to obtain blessings, so you can include
notes about that. If we publicize Ehrenfest’s rituals, then there should be no
overlap.”
Hannelore gave a relieved smile; how one
publicized their joint research often mattered most when trying to get the
attention of adults visiting the Interduchy Tournament, so it tended to cause
disputes between the collaborating students.
“In that case,” she said, “perhaps our
scholars can discuss the shared elements. That which is not shared our duchies
can present as we please.”
Wilfried and I agreed. We looked across the
apprentice scholars present, and those involved in the joint research nodded to
express their understanding.
Ahrensbach is going to present Raimund’s
findings, so all we need to think about now is negotiating with Drewanchel.
For that project, Ehrenfest was only supplying
the ingredients and wasn’t contributing much to the actual research, so perhaps
it would be best to leave most of the announcements to Drewanchel. My only
concerns were knowing their findings and securing more kinds of paper made from
feyplants to use.
“It seems we have finished our discussion
sooner than expected. Hm...” Lestilaut turned to Wilfried. “How about a game of
gewinnen?”
Most girls could spend forever chatting at tea
parties, but boys found that exceptionally boring.
Wilfried nodded, a broad smile on his face. “I
might have lost last year, but I want to win against you at least once before
you graduate, Lord Lestilaut.” He was said to be rather skilled at gewinnen,
and I’d heard that he often played against Ortwin of Drewanchel.
“Unfortunately for you, if you still cannot
consistently beat Ortwin, then you will never beat me,” Lestilaut scoffed,
lighting a competitive fire under Wilfried.
Dunkelfelger’s attendants got straight to work
setting up a game of gewinnen on another table, showing neither surprise nor
any sense of urgency. They must have planned it from the very beginning, in
case we ended up having time to spare.
Not having anything else to do, I watched
their preparations while eating sweets. My eyes soon came to rest on a blue
gewinnen piece, which I noticed was modeled off of the clear, crystal statue
also decorating Dunkelfelger’s tea room.
“I see Dunkelfelger loves not just ditter, but
gewinnen as well,” I said. “That piece is based on that decorative statue, is
it not?”
“Hm? Oh, yes. We, um... use gewinnen when
debriefing after ditter games,” Hannelore replied, looking a little
embarrassed.
Those from Dunkelfelger loved ditter so much
that not even their pre- and post-game rituals were enough; they gathered
together to review each match as well. I had to wonder how much time they spent
on ditter-related activities each year.
“Although you did not know what it was,
Verfuhremeer’s staff was passed down through the ages,” I explained. “It would
not have survived if you did not care so much about ditter and rituals.”
“Speaking of divine instruments... Yesterday,
during a tea party of top-ranking duchies, we discussed almost nothing but the
other day’s ceremony,” Hannelore began. “Those who did not participate still
spoke with those who did.”
Those who had participated in the Dedication
Ritual had apparently been deeply impacted by their first proper religious
ceremony. The feeling of us all becoming one and the light that had shot up
from the chalice had left a great impression on all those present, offering
something they had never experienced in their everyday lives. Those who had
been unable to join now greatly anticipated their next opportunity.
“Normally, one must be first-in-class to
receive direct praise from Zent Trauerqual,” Hannelore continued. “Everyone was
moved, though not by that alone—many were also touched by the divinity of your
form, Lady Rozemyne.”
“Divinity”? What the heck?
Hannelore was looking at me somewhat dreamily
as she described the ritual as she had witnessed it. From her perspective, I
had produced one divine instrument after another, performed a religious
ceremony that none had experienced before, and even rejuvenated everyone’s mana
before healing them all with a blessing. In other words, I had come across as
quite the saint, despite all the panicking I was doing on the inside. My calm
and composed act had paid off.
So, in other words, nobody noticed that I was
sweating bullets trying to keep my mana from leaking out? Wow, I really have
grown!
“It has become something of a trend to make
charms for prayer, and many are looking into whether they can wield the divine
instruments as you do,” Hannelore said. Some wanted to use Flutrane’s staff so
they could heal groups of people at once, while others were fighting hard to
get Leidenschaft’s spear. “However, as of yet, none have succeeded. They are
producing the same spears with their schtappes as before, and offering one’s
mana as per the ritual remains the most reliable way to earn blessings.”
That said, there were still people dying to
wield Leidenschaft’s blue-glowing spear—including Aub Dunkelfelger, who had
heard about it through a report.
“Thus, um, unless it is a secret that you must
keep to yourself, might I ask how you learned to create multiple divine
instruments?” Hannelore asked. She looked extremely apologetic; someone had
clearly told her to ask me this.
“Well, how did you learn to create
Verfuhremeer’s staff used in Dunkelfelger’s rituals?”
“We watch our parents make it, touch it, then
channel our mana into it. Like this.”
Hannelore stood up to demonstrate. It seemed
that my on-the-spot question had been interpreted as “If you want our secrets,
reveal yours first.”
“Streitkolben.”
Hannelore spoke the chant, and Verfuhremeer’s
staff appeared in her hand.
“May I touch it?” I asked.
“Yes, go ahead. Try channeling some of your
mana into it, even.”
I touched the staff and channeled a small
amount of my mana into it, as instructed. A magic circle rose up into the
air... then Hannelore let out a little shriek as our mana rebounded.
“M-My apologies,” she stammered. “That was,
erm... a bit surprising. I did not think I would feel another’s mana going
inside.”
It wasn’t a big deal when members of the same
family channeled mana together, since they had similar mana to begin with, but
mine felt particularly strange to Hannelore. I understood how strange it was
having another’s mana flow into you, so...
“I sincerely apologize for having made you
uncomfortable,” I said.
“Oh, no. I should have known that would
happen. Now I understand why the method of creating this staff is passed down
only through our archducal family’s bloodline...” Hannelore replied, her
shoulders slumped. She then noted that she had thought it would be convenient
if everyone could learn to make the staff. Dunkelfelger was a very hot duchy,
so maybe she wanted to perform a large-scale ritual to cool things down.
“If we only need the magic circle, we could
try looking in the library’s underground archive. I recall seeing a circle
similar to the one that arose just now on one of the ceremonial instructions
there.”
“Oh my. In that case, we will need to wait for
the royal family to summon us again,” Hannelore said with a giggle. She then
asked me how I had learned to make the divine instruments—though the process
was pretty much the same as how she had been taught to create Verfuhremeer’s
staff.
“If you offer your mana to the divine
instruments in the temple, then magic circles will arise,” I explained. “If you
dedicate a certain amount of your mana to them, then the magic circles end up
being... seared into your mind, so to speak. They will naturally come to you
when you transform your schtappe.”
In my case, Schutzaria’s shield was the first
instrument I’d ever offered my mana to, and the circle that had appeared at the
time became my basis for making it. Perhaps the divine instruments in the
temple were just there as guides for people to make their own.
“It seems that the first-ever Zent was a High
Bishop,” I said. “My current theory is that their children learned to make
their own divine instruments by offering mana to the ones in the temple.”
“Following the civil war, there were many from
the temple who came to the Royal Academy,” Hannelore noted, “but none of them
seemed to be able to use the divine instruments like you can.” She sounded
curious, but the explanation was simple.
“I imagine some of them could, but why would
they display such a talent when the temple receives so much scorn? Not to
mention, as you know, it requires a lot of mana to wield a divine instrument.
Former blue priests and shrine maidens would not have learned to compress their
mana before arriving at the Royal Academy on special terms, so I presume they
would have struggled to maintain the instruments’ forms.”
Damuel struggled even now, and he had
compressed his mana to such an extent that he was comparable to a mednoble. It
was hard to imagine that students who had formerly been in the temple would
have much luck trying to wield divine instruments.
“I would assume that any former priests who
performed the temple’s religious ceremonies seriously obtained multiple divine
protections, but I cannot say the same for those who reviled the temple and
wanted nothing more than to return to noble society or those who resented the
gods alongside their situation.”
To be frank, if the life the blue priests had
lived under the previous High Bishop was the norm, then they would have been
too corrupt to earn any extra divine protections. Not to mention, it was very
possible that they hadn’t been able to fill the magic circle during their
ceremonies. I kept that all to myself, though, and merely wore a smile for
Hannelore.
“Dunkelfelger has stories about divine
instruments and gods not worshipped at shrines, correct?” I said. “Your history
overwhelms us. Just the other day, one of your attendants said that Clarissa
will ‘become Ewigeliebe upon losing Erwaermen.’ What did they mean? Such
phrasing does not appear in any stories I am familiar with.”
“The answer is within the book I am about to
lend you,” Hannelore replied. “Erwaermen the God of Binding was once a friend
and subordinate of Ewigeliebe the God of Life. It was he who assisted the God
of Life with proposing to Geduldh the Goddess of Earth and acquiring the
permission of the God of Darkness.”
It was because of Erwaermen’s assistance that
the marriage came to be, but what happened next was as the bible described:
Erwaermen, outraged by the poor treatment that Geduldh and her subordinates
received, got into a fight with Ewigeliebe before ultimately deciding to go his
own way. Then, determined to save the Goddess of Earth, he brought her
subordinates to Flutrane the Goddess of Water.
“To become Ewigeliebe upon losing Erwaermen
means to lose a person who supports your engagement—that belittling what you
should treasure will only lead you to lose your beloved,” Hannelore concluded.
I see... Now that Hartmut’s our High Priest,
Clarissa is going to need a lot of support to marry him.
“But is Liebeskhilfe not the divinity
responsible for binding?” I asked.
“Erwaermen felt responsible for binding the
threads that caused Geduldh’s suffering. For that reason, he surrendered his
position as a god, instead giving his power to Liebeskhilfe.”
“I see. That might explain why the bible does
not list him as a god...” My eyes darted to one of Dunkelfelger’s
scholars—specifically to what they were holding. “If your book contains even
more stories like that one, then I cannot wait to read it.”
“I, myself, have suffered quite a blow. To
think The Story of Fernestine would end where it
did... I am terribly curious about what will come next.”
So, Hannelore had caught the bookworm bug and
was now itching for more. That was a good sign. She told me how her skin had
crawled at the first wife’s cruelty, how she had wept for Fernestine’s
situation, and how her heart had throbbed for Fernestine’s protective
half-brother.
Her praise included the names of many gods, but I
think we’re doing okay. I think.
“I really am glad that the story is not based
on you, Lady Rozemyne.”
“Had it been, then the aub would not have
allowed it to be printed.”
“Yes, I suppose that would be like him
informing the world of his misdeeds. Still, there are many similarities between
you and Fernestine: your hair color, your coming first-in-class, your history
of being taken in before your baptism...” She lowered her voice. “I suspect
there will be many others under the same misapprehension.”
“I thank you ever so much for your concern,
but the second volume will clear up any such misconceptions. All will
understand that Fernestine and I are separate people. It should be out soon, I
believe.”
“Oh, please do allow me to borrow it! The
first volume ended right after she finally escaped the cruel first wife by
entering the Royal Academy and had such a wondrous romantic encounter. I’m
simply beside myself with curiosity...”
As it turned out, Hannelore was debating
whether she should root for the half-brother who protected Fernestine or the
prince whom Fernestine just met, since both were so wonderfully romantic.
Naturally, I wasn’t going to mention that the second volume started with the
half-brother finding another partner—but Elvira would surely be glad to hear
that people were so angry at the first wife and invested in the romance.
Speaking of being glad, Muriella sure seems to be
enjoying this conversation. She’s nodding along so vigorously.
“My one concern is that this author sometimes
writes bittersweet tales of love. They are very beautiful, but if Fernestine
meets a tragic end, well... I just do not know what I will do,” Hannelore said,
wavering with unease.
Though I didn’t want to spoil any of the
details, I decided to reveal that, in the end, Fernestine finds true happiness.
I was sure that would allow Hannelore to relax and properly look forward to the
sequels.
“I will support Fernestine until she finds
that happiness,” Hannelore declared with a smile—and at that moment, Wilfried
stood up from his chair with a clatter, looking outright furious.
“You’re wrong, Lord Lestilaut!”
What the...?!
The sudden exclamation caused all eyes to fall
on the gewinnen table. Wilfried was gritting his teeth, staring daggers at his
opponent. Meanwhile, Lestilaut waved his schtappe to move a piece, then
casually looked up again.
“Wrong about what?” Lestilaut asked.
“I am going to be
Ehrenfest’s next aub. Not Rozemyne.”
Confrontation
Hannelore informed me that she would be
leaving her seat for a moment, then calmly walked over to Lestilaut. “Brother,
what in the world did you say to Lord Wilfried...?” she asked quietly.
Lestilaut raised an eyebrow and, looking at
Wilfried, replied, “Nothing at all.”
His nonchalant answer made Hannelore’s face
cloud over. “If that were true, then Lord Wilfried would not have raised his
voice. You must have offended him greatly. Lord Wilfried, I offer my sincerest
apologies for my brother’s actions.”
Wilfried snapped back to reality and offered a
polite smile. “Oh, no—it was nothing that you should feel the need to apologize
for, Lady Hannelore. In fact, I should apologize to you all. My shallowness
caused me to flare up over a simple mid-gewinnen taunt.”
At that, Wilfried carefully sat back down,
turned to Lestilaut, and moved a piece. “Father—that is, Aub Ehrenfest—does not
intend to make Rozemyne the aub,” he said. “He would never do something so
cruel.”
“You mean to say it would be cruel to have her
become aub?” Lestilaut asked, moving a piece in response before directing
Wilfried a curious look.
Wilfried nodded and moved another piece. “As
you know, Rozemyne is sickly enough that she has collapsed during several tea
parties. He would not force his unhealthy daughter into such a demanding role.
I ask for your understanding on this matter.”
Is he attempting to clear Sylvester’s name? It is
true that Sylvester wouldn’t have his unhealthy adopted daughter serve as aub.
Hearing that, I understood what must have
happened: Lestilaut had used Sylvester’s bad reputation as a mid-game taunt.
I’d found the unending rumors irritating as well, so I could see why Wilfried
had reacted so aggressively. As an archduke candidate, I was probably expected
to chastise him and prop up Dunkelfelger... but I couldn’t see myself doing
that.
“I thought it only common sense that the
position of aub should go to whoever has the most mana and can benefit their
duchy most, but... I see,” Lestilaut said. “Due to your sister’s poor health,
you will become the next aub without consideration of your competence.”
I’d assumed that Hannelore’s interjection
would calm things down, but the taunts continued. Wilfried was balling his
hands into such tight fists that his knuckles had turned white.
I moved to the side of the table where the
gewinnen pieces were floating in place, getting in between Lestilaut and
Wilfried. “I do not see what is so strange about this. Is it not normal for a
healthy man with enough mana to support his duchy’s foundation to become the
next aub?”
Sure, I was getting healthier, but I was still
weak by any normal standards. And on top of that, I was a woman; I wouldn’t be
able to carry out my duties while pregnant or after giving birth. It was
totally expected that Wilfried would become the next aub instead, especially
considering his high grades at the Royal Academy.
Lestilaut’s red eyes betrayed amusement. For a
moment, it felt like he was teasing us—or maybe even sizing us up. I couldn’t
help but falter under his terrifying stare.
“So, in short, you intend to resign yourself
to becoming a first wife?” Lestilaut asked. “Despite all of your exceptional
qualities?”
I shook my head. “I am not resigning myself to
anything. I do not seek to be an archduchess in the first place.”
“Then what do you
seek?”
I smiled; there was only one answer to that
question. “I wish to become an archduke’s first wife, then the curator of my
very own library. I shall gather more books than anyone has ever seen before.”
That goal was why I started the printing
industry to begin with. We were gathering various stories in the Royal Academy,
making new books each year, and steadily increasing our readership. From there,
we would target the commoners, starting with the literate rich and then working
our way down until pretty much everyone could read. Such was my ultimate
ambition.
Yes, I wanted enough status to achieve my
aims, but I didn’t want to do any work other than making books. I certainly
didn’t want to become an archduchess; I was busy enough just being the High
Bishop.
“You wish to be a first wife and own a
library?” Lestilaut repeated. “That can be arranged. Become my first wife,
Rozemyne.”
Excuse me...?
There was a pregnant pause, then a hysterical
voice suddenly rang out. “Brother! What are you saying?!”
“Be silent, Hannelore,” Lestilaut said, waving
her away.
Hannelore took a step back, her lips pressed
together obediently. Those among Lestilaut’s retainers who had cried out in
surprise likewise closed their mouths, overwhelmed by his intensity.
This was all so sudden that I was struggling
to keep up. I wanted to believe that I’d simply misunderstood, but if all the
dazed faces around me were anything to go by, that probably wasn’t the case.
Still...
“My sincerest apologies, Lord Lestilaut,” I
said. “I seem to have misheard you. For a moment, I thought you asked for me to
be your first wife.”
“You are not mistaken,” he casually replied.
“That is exactly what I said.”
I placed a hand on my cheek. His wanting me as
a first wife was, in other words, a proposal. But this didn’t make any sense;
Lestilaut already had someone he was gifting a hairpin to, and proposals
between nobles had to go through both parties’ parents first. At least, that
was what I’d assumed. Maybe romances between students at the Royal Academy
didn’t get reported until afterward. I’d never really looked into it, since I
was already engaged, but now that decision was backfiring.
But don’t proposals involve a feystone and a
long, romantic speech filled with the names of the gods? I’m pretty sure you
don’t just slip them into an otherwise normal conversation... or have I been
living under a rock?
How was I supposed to take Lestilaut’s words?
He knew about my engagement to Wilfried, so maybe this was all in jest, and
taking it seriously would only result in me getting laughed at.
As I remained immobile, my hand still on my
cheek, Lestilaut looked at Wilfried and me. “You have shown me your value. You
have the mana to wield two divine instruments at once and a plethora of divine
protections. You start new trends, began an industry that brings wealth to your
duchy, have connections to greater duchies and the
royal family, possess fame as a saint... And yet, despite all that, Lord
Wilfried is calling himself the next aub—even though he knows so little about
what will soon be his duchy’s primary industry.” A taunting grin spread across
his face. “It would be comical were it not so sad.”
He continued, “Furthermore, Rozemyne, although
grades have risen all across Ehrenfest, you and your retainers stand far above
the rest, and this joint research has made the chasm between your archduke
candidates more than clear. It is a crime that your duchy’s rank has risen so
expeditiously due so largely to your singular influence. Those around you are
not keeping up at all. Ehrenfest lurked at the bottom of the rankings before
the civil war, and its neutrality secured it a middling rank after. You are ill-suited
for such a place.”
There wasn’t a significant difference among
our duchy’s apprentice knights; they had all undergone extensive training under
Bonifatius so that they were skilled enough to protect the archducal family.
Some of the dissimilarities among them were dependent on their age when they
had begun using my mana compression method; otherwise, it all came down to
their inherent talents and hard work.
Our apprentice scholars and attendants, on the
other hand, were a separate story. My scholars who visited the temple had been
molded by Ferdinand’s intense training, and my attendants had to work to be
ready for anything I might start. For those reasons, they were far more capable
than those serving Wilfried and Charlotte.
“A bottom-ranking duchy weighed down by such
outdated methods is no place for a ceaselessly inventive mind such as yours,”
Lestilaut continued. “Ehrenfest may be rising through the ranks through your
power, but it will not be able to keep up with you. Its rightful place remains
at the bottom of the rankings. I admire the aub’s sagacity in plucking you from
the temple, but one who would not immediately declare you the next aub does not
understand your value. Ehrenfest has neither the capacity nor the ability to
contain you forever.”
His smile exuding confidence, Lestilaut gazed
across Wilfried and all the Ehrenfest retainers in the room before returning
his eyes to me. “If you have decided to live not as an aub but as a first wife,
then come to Dunkelfelger. We have stockpiled countless books and documents
over our long history; our collection is larger than any other in
Yurgenschmidt.”
Excuse me? Books and documents stockpiled over a
long history, you say? A collection larger than any other in Yurgenschmidt? Oh,
be still my beating heart! It sounds so... so wonderful.
I couldn’t help being enraptured, and some
powerful emotions stirred in my chest. Still, I used all my might to keep my
body from visibly swaying. I needed to think carefully. This was an invitation
from Dunkelfelger. There was more to this than reading
books; experience made it clear that ditter was involved somehow.
“I... I will not go,” I said.
“You’re considering it.”
“N-No, I am not. A-And, erm, my engagement to
Wilfried already has the king’s permission. It cannot be canceled,” I retorted,
puffing out my chest. It didn’t matter what anyone said; this was a done deal.
Lestilaut waved me away as though he thought
the very idea foolish. “That is permission and nothing more. There is no royal
decree supporting it. Engagements within a duchy are always simple to cancel;
your aub could rescind it with a single word.”
It seemed that having the king’s permission
didn’t make my union to Wilfried ironclad after all. Sylvester could end it
without any trouble whatsoever.
“Dunkelfelger could even pressure Aub
Ehrenfest to cancel your engagement. The fact we have not done so already was
only because we did not realize your value. Now, we do. By discussing business
with me and not backing down in the slightest, you have all but proven that you
are fit to be our duchy’s first wife. If you wish to make books and spread your
knowledge, there is no better place for you. Come to me, Rozemyne.”
Financial resources, manpower, the fancy
footwork required to adopt new ideas, an understanding of the importance of new
technologies... One by one, Lestilaut listed off areas in which Dunkelfelger
was superior. They were all things that I wanted. My heart wavered more and
more.
“You will find much better workers in
Dunkelfelger than in a backwater duchy like Ehrenfest.”
EXCUSE ME?! I don’t think there’s anyone in the world who can match my Gutenbergs!
All at once, my excitement ceased. Going to
Dunkelfelger would mean not getting to see my family again. It would mean
abandoning my important duty of serving as a bridge between the nobles and the
commoners. Not to mention, Ehrenfest was home to the library that Ferdinand had
given me. I wasn’t going to sever all these connections that I treasured so
dearly.
“You have made a very appealing offer, but I
must refuse,” I said. At times like this, I needed to be clear and direct; even
the slightest hesitation would allow a greater duchy like Dunkelfelger to play
me like a fiddle. Above all else, I needed to make my stance clear: I had no
intention of going to Dunkelfelger.
Lestilaut moved a gewinnen piece, then stroked
his chin. “I offered what I considered to be good terms, but you ultimately
refuse...” he muttered. “Where was my misstep, after I made your heart waver so
strongly...?”
He had clearly been able to read my emotions
through my face.
I was starting to feel relieved about having
escaped this predicament, but then Lestilaut’s atmosphere changed. His calm
befitting a noble morphed into the intensity of a knight preparing for ditter.
“If you refuse, then I have no choice but to
take you by force.”
“Lord Lestilaut?!” I exclaimed.
“Brother, you must not—”
Lestilaut once again dismissed Hannelore’s
protest, his eyes like those of a predator watching its prey. “Obtain what you
desire. Gather the strength required to win. Face the challenge as many times
as it takes. Change your technique, change your equipment, but never give up.
That is the Dunkelfelger way.”
I’d never expected Lestilaut to look at me in
that way, especially when he had originally seen me as a fake saint and a
spineless trickster. Plus, I already knew from Clarissa’s proposal that those
from Dunkelfelger were ruthless when it came to getting what they wanted.
Lestilaut’s attitude and the way he was speaking reminded me of the same
forceful, dominant aura he had given off during our first confrontation over
Schwartz and Weiss.
I took a step back.
“Rozemyne,” Wilfried called from behind me.
I turned to look at him.
“I can’t deny that Ehrenfest lacks in more
areas than it thrives. Do you truly wish to stay?” he asked, looking
uncomfortable. “I, erm... Only now, after hearing Lord Lestilaut say all that,
have I come to understand your true value. I’ve always been focused on ways to
keep you under control; unlike Dunkelfelger and Drewanchel, I never thought
about putting all of your knowledge to use or spreading it throughout the
country. I may intend to become Ehrenfest’s next aub, but my focus should be on
how to use your gifts, not suppress them...”
His shoulders slumped, Wilfried continued,
“I’ve been an honor student for two years in a row, and my friendship and
rivalry with Ortwin made me believe I was standing shoulder to shoulder with
the top-ranking duchies. And yet, when we started our joint research with
Drewanchel and it came to light that my apprentice scholars were vastly
inferior, I gave up. I assumed there was no beating a top-ranking duchy.”
In Ehrenfest, Wilfried was always being
compared to me in a way that made him feel so mediocre. Here in the Royal
Academy, however, he was able to spend time with other archduke candidates and
actually develop some self-confidence. He considered himself above average for
an archduke candidate, though that mindset had soon turned to arrogance that he
was working hard enough already.
“The greater duchies immediately figured out
all your good points and tried to make them their own,” he muttered. “That
never even occurred to me. I always thought that, since making books is like a
hobby to you, it was best to leave the industry in your hands.”
There was no way that Wilfried would have
grown up with the sensibilities of a top-ranking duchy when he was raised in
what everyone still considered a bottom-ranking one. The only way he was going
to fix this was by learning while spending time with his friends from top-ranking
duchies.
“If you’ve noticed that you aren’t putting me
to proper use, then you need only start,” I said. “Everything I care about is
in Ehrenfest. I do not intend to leave. Ehrenfest is my Geduldh.”
“I see. Then, as the next aub, I will protect
you,” Wilfried declared with the utmost confidence. “Failing to do that when
you want to stay in Ehrenfest would make me a failure of a brother too.”
Lestilaut gave a ferocious grin. “If you are
to call yourself a future aub, then prove your worth and keep Rozemyne from us.
I challenge you to a game of ditter.”
To nobody’s surprise...
“This desire for Rozemyne to become
Dunkelfelger’s first wife is not just my own,” Lestilaut noted. “I made
agreements with both my father and mother. I shall use whatever means necessary
to secure victory and force Ehrenfest to cancel your engagement.”
In other words, he intended to use
Dunkelfelger’s status as the second-ranked greater duchy to slam us with
pressure. I couldn’t imagine Sylvester taking the stress of that very well.
“What happens if we refuse your challenge?”
Wilfried asked.
Lestilaut scoffed. “I will simply employ the
same methods I would have used upon winning.”
“And if we win? Will you give up on Rozemyne?”
“Ditter matches are sacred. I swear to the
gods that, if we lose, we will trouble her no further on this matter.”
Those from Dunkelfelger were annoying to deal
with, what with their aggressive nature and obsession with ditter, but when it
came to agreements like this, you really could trust them. That said, Lestilaut
had been whaling into us this whole time; the last thing I wanted was for
everything to go as he pleased.
What’s his weakness?
In his attempt to drag us into this ditter
match, he was targeting all of our weak points: the bad rumors about Sylvester,
the awkward position that Wilfried was in, my love of books... I needed to land
at least one clean blow on him—one that would leave a nice, big bruise—else I
wouldn’t be satisfied.
What weakness could I exploit to avoid this
ditter game? I scanned the room... and then my eyes fell on Hannelore. She was
looking right at us, her face a picture of worry and frustration after her
failed attempts to stop Lestilaut.
“In that case,” I said, “on the day that
Ehrenfest wins, my brother, Wilfried, will take Lady Hannelore as his second
wife.”
“What?!” Wilfried exclaimed. “Rozemyne, what
are you saying?!”
“Lady Rozemyne?!”
Shock and disbelief were clear on their faces.
Their retainers stirred too. Overall, it was a slightly bigger reaction than
when Lestilaut had proposed to me. I’d won.
“As you might know, Lord Lestilaut, my health
is tragically irregular, and Wilfried needs a second wife. Ehrenfest could ask
for nothing more than for an archduke candidate from Dunkelfelger to fill that
role.”
“You would drag a Dunkelfelger archduke
candidate as low as Ehrenfest, of all places? Don’t make me laugh!” Lestilaut
barked, his eyebrows raised in outrage as he protectively stood in front of
Hannelore. It appeared that my counterattack had succeeded.
“You can decide for yourself whether we go
ahead with this. I find it equally absurd that you would exploit your duchy’s
position to end an engagement approved by the king himself.” If they were
serious, then I was serious too. But if they were willing to play it off as a
joke, then I would do the same. “So, Lord Lestilaut? Is your ditter request
legitimate or merely a jest?”
Ideally, I wanted him to back down. The very
thought of sending Hannelore to be Ehrenfest’s second wife was unthinkable. But
while we would have no choice but to accept Dunkelfelger’s game, they would
need to consult their aub about one of their own being married into a middle
duchy.
Sorry, Lady Hannelore. I needed to do anything I
could to avoid this ditter match.
Wilfried must have figured out that I was
trying to stop the ditter match. He swiftly recovered from his surprise, then
gave Lestilaut a confident grin. “Do you really think it acceptable to wager
your own little sister’s future on a game of ditter? I would advise you to
consult your aub first. It is simply unfair of you to continue otherwise.”
“Lord Wilfried...” Hannelore uttered. “That’s
right, Brother. You cannot put our futures at stake, as a jest or otherwise.
Lady Rozemyne is already engaged.”
Unfortunately, her pleas fell on deaf ears.
“This is no jest,” Lestilaut said. “I am resolved to make Rozemyne my own. For
the future of Dunkelfelger.”
“You must not decide such things on your own!
If we lose, I—”
“Father and I will decide whom you wed,”
Lestilaut said firmly, forcing the now trembling Hannelore to avert her gaze
and take a silent step back. “Your answer, Ehrenfest?”
Wilfried glanced at me, his expression unsure.
“Rozemyne, are you really willing to put your future in my hands?”
“No game of ditter with me as the treasure
will ever be lost, Wilfried.”
My future depended on the outcome of this
game. I was going to go all out.
After receiving a much-needed push from me,
Wilfried turned to his retainers. “I will protect Rozemyne, the treasure of
Ehrenfest, with everything I have. Everyone, lend me your power!”
“Yes, my lord!” the apprentice knights replied
in unison.
Wilfried, having seemed to gain strength from
that, looked up at Lestilaut. “I accept your challenge! I am the next Aub
Ehrenfest, and we will not let another duchy take our treasure so easily!”
“Well said.”
Preparing for Ditter
“So, when will this game take place?” Wilfried
asked. “Right away would be completely unreasonable, and we need to match how
many knights you intend to put forward.”
“Indeed,” Lestilaut replied. “We of
Dunkelfelger also need to prepare the arena. Once we have confirmed that
Rauffen is available to judge and we have secured the grounds, I will contact
you again.”
While the two boys were working out the
details, the apprentice knights similarly gathered together. Theodore was left
to guard me—as a first-year, he couldn’t play ditter—while Leonore and the
others joined the meeting.
“How about some tea, Lady Rozemyne?” Hannelore
asked, on the verge of tears as she gestured to the table. So much had happened
over such a short time span; a hot drink sounded perfect.
I made my way to the seat indicated, and our
attendants immediately prepared to refresh our tea. As I was watching Brunhilde
pour my drink, Hannelore, eyeing Lestilaut and Wilfried, spoke in a hushed
voice.
“Cordula, I wish to speak with Lady Rozemyne.”
“Here you are,” Cordula muttered in response,
holding out sound-blocking magic tools. I gripped one at once; this was clearly
something that Hannelore didn’t want Lestilaut to hear.
“I cannot apologize enough that our tea party
ended up like this,” Hannelore said. “If only I were a stronger archduke
candidate...”
Even though things had been going so well,
Lestilaut had found it necessary to taunt Wilfried. Not even our attempts to
smooth things over had worked, as he had then disparaged Ehrenfest and proposed
to me in front of my fiancé. In response to my refusal, he had then pressured
us and challenged us to ditter.
“You even offered to pretend that nothing
happened,” she continued, “but my brother stomped all over your good
intentions. I truly apologize.”
I shook my head. “My only intention was to
escape this ditter game, but, in the end, I wrapped you up in all this as well.
I am the one who must apologize.”
“No, no. It was my brother who refused to take
the way out that you so graciously provided...” Hannelore replied with a sad
smile.
I glared at Lestilaut. “If we win, Lady
Hannelore, then I intend to nullify the condition that you be wed into
Ehrenfest. I wanted only to stop Lord Lestilaut; it would be much too rude of
us to take you as our duchy’s second wife.”
“I appreciate the thought, I really do... but
agreements made through ditter cannot be undone. Not in Dunkelfelger, at
least.”
“How annoying—um, I mean, obstinate—umm...” I
fumbled my words, unsure of the proper noble language to use.
Hannelore merely hung her head. “No, that is
accurate...”
“Well, what do you
want to do, Lady Hannelore?”
“Whatever do you mean?”
“If your heart is set on someone else, then I
will negotiate with Dunkelfelger so that you can be married to them instead.”
Her duchy would probably find that easier to swallow than her being a second
wife in Ehrenfest.
Hannelore blinked at my suggestion. “Well...
my brother and parents were always going to choose my partner for me, so I
never fostered any hopes of my own. But after you refused to bend to my
brother’s pressure—after you fought to see your will carried through—I started
to wonder. Maybe I really would like to select my own partner.”
“In that case, when Ehrenfest has won, I will
ask that Dunkelfelger make it so.”
“Oh, no, no. I could never burden Ehrenfest
more than we have already. That you even considered such a kind gesture is
enough for me,” Hannelore said. She was wearing a smile, but it was more
clouded than usual.
“Do not fear for your future—even if your move
to Ehrenfest becomes unavoidable, I will welcome you with open arms and ensure
that you find true happiness there. You will get to read new volumes before
anyone else. It will be a bookworm’s paradise!” I exclaimed, desperately trying
to make it sound not so bad.
Hannelore giggled. “I am truly glad that this
event has not convinced you to stop being my friend, Lady Rozemyne.”
Dunkelfelger truly was a pain in the neck, but
Hannelore was precious to me. At the very least, I didn’t intend to stop being
friends with her.
“After all, Lady Hannelore... you and I are
soulmates!”
“Then, as your soulmate, I have just one more
thing to say.” Even with the sound-blocking magic tools, Hannelore lowered her
voice to a whisper. “You may believe that your shield of Wind guarantees your
victory, but know that it is not invincible. My brother has discovered means by
which to deal with it. Do not let your guard down.”
And with that, our tea party came to an end.
“Brother. Sister. I do not understand,”
Charlotte said, her face ashen. “How did a simple tea party end in a ditter
challenge with your engagement on the line?”
We had gathered everyone in the common room to
explain the day’s events. Lestilaut’s blatant selfishness was clearly to blame
for our circumstances, but no matter what we said, Charlotte struggled to
follow.
“Rozemyne,” Wilfried muttered, “I now
understand how you feel when people are demanding answers but you have nothing
to say.”
“I am glad,” I replied with a smile. “In that
case, I leave convincing Charlotte to you.”
Wilfried smiled back. “No, I leave this to
you, since you’re so much more experienced.”
“Oh my. But have we not just learned from Lord
Lestilaut that you shouldn’t always rely on me?”
That was enough to twist his arm.
And, to be clear, I’m not being lazy here; I just
want Wilfried to grow.
Wilfried tried his very best to explain the
situation, only to eventually throw in the towel and declare, “There’s no point
explaining all this! Planning to deal with it comes first!”
In turn, Charlotte gave up on understanding
the specifics. “I still cannot see how one thing led to another, but indeed;
let us focus on dealing with it instead. I assume that, with Sister being able
to use Schutzaria’s shield, our victory is mostly assured.”
“About that...” I interjected. “Lady Hannelore
gave me a warning. It seems that Dunkelfelger knows how to defeat my shield.
Leonore, what are our chances without it?”
Leonore’s expression turned stiff as she said,
“Exceedingly low. However, as we do not know the extent to which the shield
will be nullified, not using it at all would be a poor move. And even if you
cannot use your shield, you still have your highbeast.”
Laurenz nodded. “The biggest weakness of using
the shield is how long it takes to form. Were I fighting alongside
Dunkelfelger, I would target Lady Rozemyne from the start. Countermeasures or
no, surely it would be better to finish things before she employs it at all.”
As he said, the chant for the shield was not a
quick one. We needed a way to keep me safe until our defenses were formed.
“How might we accomplish that?” I asked. “A
wide-range spell that could take them by surprise and make them falter for a
moment, perhaps? Like some kind of waschen flood.”
Matthias rejected the idea outright, a
calculating look on his face. “You are the only one who could cast such a
spell, Lady Rozemyne—and as this distraction is intended to secure you more
time to finish the shield, it must be done by the knights. Plus, even if our
knights were to combine their mana for such an attack, the fight would end then
and there.”
He made a good argument. I pursed my lips in
thought—at which point Rihyarda stepped forward.
“May I speak for a moment? As an adult, I am
hesitant to speak on matters of the Royal Academy, but I cannot allow milady to
be taken by Dunkelfelger. If you are playing treasure-stealing ditter, then
replace a couple of your knights without much mana with apprentice
archattendants who have a tremendous amount.” It seemed that she was basing her
suggestion on past ditter games she knew about.
“But what role would attendants play?”
“They can fill magic tools with mana and
manage rejuvenation potions. Judithe specializes in ranged combat, does she
not? Assign her an attendant with plentiful mana and get her to use magic tools
filled with mana. That will increase the number of magic tools she can be
entrusted with.”
There was a limit to how many rejuvenation
potions battle-ready apprentice knights could carry—but having attendants at
the ready to supply them would increase that number considerably.
“Attendants who could use healing spells were
also occasionally stationed in the home circle,” Rihyarda continued. “Unlike
the knights, they did not engage in direct combat and were primarily there to
provide mana. Scholars, on the other hand, spent the run-up to the game
preparing magic tools, rejuvenation potions, and the like, to the point that
they were completely drained of mana come the day of.”
Wilfried fell into thought, then looked around
at the attendants. “Who here has the most mana? We’ll replace two knights.”
Isidore, who attended to Wilfried, and
Brunhilde were ultimately selected, as they both knew my mana compression
method.
“Could the three of us cast a large-scale
waschen like Rozemyne suggested?” Wilfried asked. “If so, we could buy her time
without the knights having to use any mana, then recover our mana while they’re
fighting.”
Brunhilde suddenly turned to face me. “Lady
Rozemyne, did Lady Clarissa not say during last year’s Interduchy Tournament
that she was researching magic tools to amplify wide-reaching spells?”
“An excellent idea,” I replied. “Naturally, we
cannot ask Clarissa herself, but perhaps Hartmut or Raimund remembers the
details of her research.”
“Don’t you remember?”
Wilfried asked. “You were there as well, weren’t you?”
I averted my eyes, fully aware that I didn’t
have a good excuse. At the time, I simply hadn’t cared about Clarissa’s
research. In what could only be described as an “Angelica moment,” I’d just
been looking around and thinking to myself, “Wow, everyone sure is talking
about complicated stuff.”
“Leonore, I intend to leave the strategizing
to you,” Wilfried continued, “but I’ve got one request: I want you to come up
with a way to make good use of my mana.” He trained with the knights back in
Ehrenfest and, as an archduke candidate with an abundance of mana, could
utilize very strong attacks. His only issue was that he didn’t have much
experience with coordinated combat.
Leonore smiled at his request. “We will
entrust you with defense, Lord Wilfried. Our home circle will contain Lady
Rozemyne; Judithe, our long-range specialist; and the apprentice attendants. If
you guard them with your plentiful mana, then we can devote more manpower to
our offense.”
“Got it. Rozemyne, are there any divine
instruments I could use? During the ternisbefallen attack, you created an
opportunity for everyone using the divine cape. I just need something like
that—an attack that Dunkelfelger doesn’t know about—and we should be able to
catch them completely off guard.”
Something like that would give Wilfried an
important role to play and a good opportunity to use his mana even without him
joining the knights. I thought back to the temple’s divine instruments.
“You’ll need to offer your mana to the divine
instruments if you want to learn to make them, though, and I’m not sure there’s
enough time before our ditter game... Let us ask Sylvester to lend us the
temple’s instruments. You can use those simply by channeling mana into them.”
Forming divine instruments with your schtappe
required a lot of mana; there was the initial investment required to learn the
circle, then there were the costs of making, maintaining, and actually using
the instrument. However, if you used an instrument directly—like how I used
Leidenschaft’s spear during my first Lord of Winter hunt—then you could skip
all but the very last requirement.
“However,” I continued, “you cannot use
Leidenschaft’s spear. It is a fine weapon for taking down everything—including
treasure—but we cannot use it against Lady Hannelore. Nothing is quite as
terrifying as a spear piercing through a shield.”
“That’s right,” Wilfried said, nodding in
agreement. When it came to holding back power, it was important to use a
familiar weapon.
“I already intend to make Schutzaria’s shield,
so there’s no need for you to use that—especially if our opponents are able to
break it. We can rule out Flutrane’s staff as well; it heals everyone in the
area, meaning it would heal our enemies too.”
“That would be a problem, yeah.”
“We should also avoid using the God of
Darkness’s cape, since that might be mistaken for a black weapon and cause us
even more problems. I wouldn’t recommend the crown of Light either; that’s only
used for contracts, to my understanding. I think that leaves Ewigeliebe’s sword
as the only divine instrument I’ve not yet used.”
“Er... what does it do? Does it have some
special effect, like how the shield of Wind repels anyone malicious?”
“I don’t have a use for it, and it can only be
used during winter, which makes it rather inconvenient. However, it may be well
suited for this battle. I will send an emergency message to Ehrenfest asking
for it to be sent over.”
I penned a letter explaining that Dunkelfelger
was pressuring us into an unavoidable ditter game and what was at stake, then
sent it as a report alongside a request for Ewigeliebe’s sword to be sent from
the temple. Incidentally, I also requested that Hartmut be asked what he
remembered about Clarissa’s research.
“Send this to Ehrenfest immediately!” Wilfried
ordered.
“Understood,” his attendant replied, then
rushed out of the room.
Roderick looked up. “I have compiled a list of
magic tools from Lord Ferdinand’s ditter notes that might be of use to us.
Leonore, may it assist you with your planning.”
Leonore accepted the list with a smile and a
thank-you, then began giving directions. “Apprentice scholars, make
rejuvenation potions and the magic tools listed here. Apprentice knights,
mobilize at our gathering spot. We will train and collect ingredients.”
As the students began following orders,
Matthias approached me and said, “Lady Rozemyne, could I ask you to bless us
before we go? If we can get ourselves used to it, then it may raise our chances
of victory. We have a very low success rate when it comes to earning blessings
on our own.”
“The blessings I give will not actually
benefit everyone, but I suppose there is no helping that...”
As the saying went, one had to break a few
eggs to make an omelet—and, given what was at stake, we weren’t in a position
to be picky with our methods. I didn’t have a clue how advanced Dunkelfelger’s
blessings had gotten by this point.
I gave the apprentice knights Angriff’s
blessing and then saw them off. Wilfried went with them, leaving me with
Charlotte, the attendants, and the bare minimum number of guard knights.
“If possible... I would like to steal
Dunkelfelger’s blessing.”
We could hardly use blessings ourselves, but
Dunkelfelger had gotten used to them through practice, which made their
apprentice knights a huge threat. Hannelore had allowed me to touch
Verfuhremeer’s staff earlier today but, of course, that single time wasn’t
enough for me to learn to recreate it.
“Blehhh... I want to go to that archive. I
need the royal family’s permission, but... they’re busy with Mana Replenishment
right now, aren’t they? I wonder whether Prince Hildebrand would give his
permission, since he’s still in the Royal Academy...”
“I would not expect so,” Rihyarda said in
response, but I decided to try anyway. Even if he refused, which he most likely
would, we wouldn’t be in a worse position than before. I repeated that to
myself as I sent off the ordonnanz, and the next thing I knew—
“We can go, but only tomorrow morning. I’ll
send an ordonnanz to Hannelore too,” Hildebrand replied, sounding excited.
“Rihyarda... This may be very abrupt, but he
gave his permission.”
“I did not think you would get another chance
until the royal family has far more leeway...” Rihyarda muttered, baffled. But,
well, here we were. It was time to prepare for another trip to the library.
I made my way to the library the next morning,
brimming with excitement. Accompanying me were Leonore, since she was an
archknight and could enter the underground; Theodore, who couldn’t participate
in ditter as a first-year; plus Rihyarda and Brunhilde.
“Milady here.”
“Milady. Finally back.”
Schwartz and Weiss were exceedingly cute as
they welcomed me—but, for some reason, they had returned to calling me
“milady.”
“Professor Solange,” I said, “is it not
strange that Schwartz and Weiss are addressing me as ‘milady’ again?”
“It started the other day when you all offered
the library that chalice of mana,” Hortensia explained. “I consulted Prince
Anastasius, who said that ownership will likely return to me eventually.”
Evidently, that swap back hadn’t happened yet.
Hortensia guided us to the office, saying how
surprised she had been to receive a message from Hildebrand. The third prince
himself was already waiting for us.
“I apologize for the disturbance while you are
so busy,” I said. “To think that I forced you to come all this way...”
“I was taken aback by the suddenness of your
request, but what do you want to research?”
“I can tell you after we open the archive.”
Hannelore arrived while I was exchanging the
usual pleasantries with Hildebrand. She had fewer retainers with her than
usual, likely because they were training for our ditter game. We all exchanged
greetings, then the two librarians explained that, with final exams on the
horizon, they hadn’t been able to close off the reading room. As a result, we
were guided to the closed-stack archive in full view of the other students.
From there, Hortensia guided us downstairs. We
opened the locks, as we had done before, after which our attendants began
preparing tea.
“Rozemyne, the archive is open,” Hildebrand
announced. “Now, tell me what you are researching.”
“There is soon going to be a ditter match
between Ehrenfest and Dunkelfelger, so I am here to research rituals and divine
instruments.”
Hannelore gave me a slight, teasing smile.
“Should you be saying such things while I am within earshot, Lady Rozemyne?”
“It makes no difference. I am sure that
Dunkelfelger expected as much already.”
“Why is this ditter match happening to begin
with?” Hildebrand asked. “It was only recently that Dunkelfelger played against
the duchies wanting to participate in the ritual, was it not?”
I gave a light shrug. “Lord Lestilaut proposed
to me, and now my future husband is dependent on a game of ditter. Isn’t that
right, Lady Hannelore?”
“I-Indeed,” Hannelore added, her voice
quavering. “But, Lady Rozemyne, we do not have much time. Let us hurry and
start researching.”
I waved to Hildebrand, then made my way over
to the clear entrance of the archive.
“Hannelore,” Hildebrand called, “I wish to
hear more about this game of yours. You have nothing to research, I presume?”
I saw Hannelore pause in surprise as I stepped
through into the archive. Schwartz looked up at me and said the same thing as
before.
“Milady. Not enough prayer.”
“Understood,” I replied. “I don’t have time
today, but I will pray at a later date. For now, please bring me documents
relating to Verfuhremeer’s ritual for cooling the heat of summer and the ritual
for summoning spring.”
From there, I searched for how to make
Verfuhremeer’s staff, then transcribed the method. I also wrote down how to
make the stand needed for Haldenzel’s spring-summoning ritual.
“So, Prince Hildebrand has learned about our
ditter match...” came Hannelore’s voice.
I gazed up to see her looking down at the
documents I was transcribing. “Did you not want him to know about it?”
She offered a weak smile. “It was only
recently that Prince Anastasius scolded us and told us not to cause any
trouble. The royal family are going to summon us again for certain.”
“Well... we did nothing wrong this time. Lord
Lestilaut is at fault, so perhaps Prince Anastasius can scold him in our
stead.”
I was seeking Hannelore’s agreement, but she
didn’t seem convinced. “I expect we are going to be scolded even if we protest
that we are not at fault. I always receive the blame for my brother’s
actions...”
Hannelore then indicated that we should leave
the archive; fourth bell was upon us, it seemed. A quick glance around revealed
that Hildebrand had at some point disappeared from behind the transparent wall.
After locking the archive with Hannelore and
Hortensia, I asked Rihyarda where the prince had gone.
“He had quite a lengthy conversation with
Brunhilde about Ehrenfest books, but then he remembered that he had some urgent
business to attend to.”
It was quite impossible to “forget” urgent
business when you had attendants managing your schedule for you; that had
simply been an excuse for him to leave. He was still a young kid, so I could
imagine how antsy he had gotten having to sit around and wait.
Upon our return to the Ehrenfest Dormitory, we
found Ewigeliebe’s sword waiting for us—and Hartmut along with it. As it turned
out, my most recent report had caused Sylvester and Florencia such agonizing
headaches that they were unable to move.
“To think you would come as well, Hartmut...”
“As the High Priest, it is my duty to carry
our divine instruments. Furthermore, did you not write that you wish for me to
teach you the details of Clarissa’s research?”
“You remember them?” I asked, blinking.
“Of course,” he replied with a nod, speaking
as though it were obvious. “Clarissa requested my assistance, which I provided
to some degree, so I remember the schematics precisely.”
“Excellent, Hartmut! Oh, you truly are a
retainer I can rely on!” I declared, overcome with excitement.
Hartmut gave a slight smile and said that he
was honored to have pleased me, but then his expression turned serious. “I have
been given a room in the castle until your ditter match commences and will come
here daily to deliver Ewigeliebe’s sword. I can also help with the creation of
any magic tools within the dormitory. I will offer my all to protect you, Lady
Rozemyne.”
“Would it not be unfair to have you make magic
tools...?” I asked, tilting my head at him.
Wilfried grimaced, Ewigeliebe’s sword in hand.
“You asked for a divine instrument to be brought from the temple and used
Prince Hildebrand to transcribe documents from the underground archive, and now you’re worried about playing fair? We only need to win;
it doesn’t matter how we go about doing it. Use everyone and everything that
you can.”
And so, with Hartmut at the lead, Ehrenfest’s
apprentice scholars steadily began making magic tools for our upcoming battle.
The apprentice knights cycled between training and gathering ingredients, all
the while thinking up several strategies they could employ. And as for
Brunhilde and Isidore, they desperately compressed their mana, trying to
increase their mana quantities as much as possible, while learning how to use
the created magic tools one after another.
I accompanied the apprentice knights to our
gathering spot, where I practiced granting them blessings and then making
Verfuhremeer’s staff to remove them again. At the same time, I taught Wilfried
to use Ewigeliebe’s sword.
“As an example, I will make Ewigeliebe’s sword
myself,” I said, then turned my schtappe into a sword and spoke the God of
Life’s prayer. A blizzard formed around me, a pillar of white light appeared,
and mana shot off somewhere once again.
I got the feeling that, in the run-up to our
ditter match, there were going to be a lot of spontaneous lights shooting up
into the sky. Both from us and from our opponents.
Bride-Taking Ditter
“Ooh, Lady Rozemyne! The day has finally
come!” Rauffen said, welcoming us to the arena with a grin so eager it was
annoying. “Bride-taking ditter isn’t all that rare back in Dunkelfelger, but I
never thought such a large-scale version would take place here in the Royal
Academy. Ah, such passion is heartening to see!”
The only reason we’re here is because your duchy
is putting so much political pressure on us... Is that really “passion”? Is
this truly “heartening”?
According to Rauffen’s explanation, what we
were going to play was basically the same as treasure-stealing ditter, albeit
with a different name. In Dunkelfelger, it happened when a boy’s proposal to a
girl was refused by her parents; relatives from both houses would come together
so the bride could be with her suitor.
Generally, in cases when the groom-to-be lost,
he would simply stop pursuing the girl. Further conditions were very unusual,
so those from Dunkelfelger had been very surprised by my declaration that we
would get Hannelore if we won. This wasn’t an Ehrenfest custom, though; we
weren’t about to play ditter without anything to gain.
Though I suppose there’s some value in having a
way to make obstinate Dunkelfelger boys give up for good.
“You have my full support, Lady Rozemyne,”
Rauffen continued with a smile. “We would love to have you marry into our
duchy.”
He was making it sound as though I actually
wanted this ditter game to happen. I opened my mouth to protest, but before I
could speak a word, Hirschur literally pushed Rauffen aside and glared down at
me with a look of extreme displeasure.
“Lady Rozemyne, I believe I asked you not to
interfere with my research. What is the meaning of this?”
Hirschur had apparently been chosen to serve
as a judge from Ehrenfest. She would be watching the game from the audience,
while Rauffen would be flying around the arena, evaluating the match from atop
his highbeast. As a dormitory supervisor, Hirschur had been unable to refuse;
she had been cruelly dragged from her laboratory, and while she was so focused
on the upcoming Interduchy Tournament publications. No wonder she was ticked
off.
“It was Dunkelfelger who challenged us, and
their rank meant we could not refuse,” I said, trying to plead my case. “Please
complain to them instead.”
“Believe me, I have already.”
It seemed that not even my excuse was enough
to rid Hirschur of her discontent. Wilfried and I both went ahead and
apologized to her.
“My research environment has finally been
perfected,” she said. “I would not want you losing now.” She was supporting me,
in her own, unusual way.
I could only respond that I would do my best.
A look at the audience revealed that students
from both Dunkelfelger and Ehrenfest had come en masse to support us. A few
from Dunkelfelger were holding what appeared to be a large magic tool.
What is that thing...?
I decided to ask Hannelore. She was clad in a
full suit of armor, similarly to the other knights, though she wasn’t wearing a
helmet.
“Um, Lady Hannelore... what is that magic tool
some of your duchy’s spectators are holding? Audience participation is
forbidden, is it not?”
“Oh, that is simply for recording the ditter
match. Aub Dunkelfelger requested it so that he might see how the fight goes.
It will not influence the game at all, so please pay it no mind, if you can.”
Aub Dunkelfelger had apparently asked to come
to the Royal Academy to watch the bride-taking ditter game, putting Rauffen in
quite the bind. This magic tool was more or less a desperate compromise to keep
him in his home duchy.
“If your aub sent that magic tool, does that
mean he supports our decision to play with your marriage on the line?” I asked.
My hope had been that he would stop Lestilaut’s rampage, not enable it.
Hannelore lowered her gaze. “He said that he
could not shame us all by interrupting what must be decided through ditter. ‘Do
anything you can to win!’ were his words.”
“We would have been extremely grateful if he
had canceled things...”
Both Hannelore and I were being treated as
treasure, with our very futures on the line; we wanted this match less than
anyone. But some things just didn’t pan out how you wanted them to.
“Now then, shall we go?” Rauffen asked, then
took the lead and flew down to the arena grounds with the apprentice knights.
I waved goodbye to Hannelore, then climbed
into my highbeast. Inside was a box filled with magic tools and rejuvenation
potions.
“Brother, Sister, do your best,” Charlotte
said, having flown over to offer a few words of encouragement. The apprentice
knights surrounding her, who were all first- and second-years, looked
particularly anxious—as expected, considering that the older students were
about to play ditter.
“Theodore,” I said; he was among those
surrounding Charlotte. “Please keep my sister safe. Such is the duty I am
entrusting to you.”
“You can count on me. May Angriff be with you
and my sister.”
Charlotte and the others cheered me on as I
made my way down to Ehrenfest’s base in the arena. All of our players had
collectively dispelled their highbeasts and were now standing in formation.
After confirming that Brunhilde and Isidore had taken out the box of magic
tools and such, I got rid of my own highbeast and joined the others.
Making up our front line were our archknights
and our medknights with an abundance of mana. Matthias, Laurenz, and Traugott
were among them. The next line was composed almost entirely of medknights, with
Leonore being the sole exception; she was going to be giving instructions to
everyone. Behind them were the two attendants, wearing light armor that covered
only their important parts, rather than a full set of plate armor.
Incidentally, I was wearing light armor as
well. Full plate armor wasn’t actually very heavy—it was made with a feystone,
after all—but it limited one’s vision and was very restrictive. In that sense,
it was like wearing cardboard. I already found it difficult to move, so the
last thing I needed was to handicap myself even more.
Wilfried was positioned between the two
attendants, fully armored, and then there was the back row, which was simply me
(the treasure) and Judithe, who was going to protect me while firing off
long-range attacks.
Our opening move is going to depend on whether I
can get my shield up in time...
Leonore had told me to use geteilt right away,
then hide behind it while chanting to complete Schutzaria’s shield. The
apprentice knights were confident that our opponents would try to interfere,
and as there was some distance between our bases, a long-range battle was
pretty much guaranteed.
Thus, our apprentice knights would all use
geteilt to block Dunkelfelger’s attacks and buy me time. Meanwhile, Wilfried,
Brunhilde, and Isidore would target the enemy base with an area-of-effect
waschen.
Isidore touched the belt around his waist; we
weren’t allowed to hold our schtappes or magic tools until the signal that
marked the beginning of the game. The atmosphere truly was tense. I swallowed
hard, thinking through all the strategies we had gone over.
“Both leaders, come forward!” Rauffen ordered.
Wilfried did as instructed, his helmet under
his arm. From the other side of the arena, I saw Lestilaut do the same, helmet
in hand.
For the first time, I peered across at
Dunkelfelger’s base. Enhancing my eyes allowed me to see everything
clearly—including the large boxes by some of the students’ feet. It seemed that
our opponents had also thought to bring plenty of magic tools and rejuvenation
potions. They were all wearing full plate armor, which made me think they were
all knights, but perhaps there were some attendants of the sword among them
too.
Does this mean we came up with the same plan? Or
is this what they normally do for bride-taking ditter? I’m sure they received
advice and assistance from the others in their duchy too.
I wonder if we’ll be okay...
Everything was so tense, and I was anxious to
the point of trembling. I’d given Dunkelfelger a copy of A
Ditter Story some time ago, so they probably already knew about several
of Ferdinand’s strategies—and if they’d also received guidance from knights of
the day, then it was possible they had predicted our intentions.
Hartmut had been visiting our dormitory each
and every day, stressing that we weren’t to lose. Sylvester had allowed us to
borrow a divine instrument and was providing his support on top of that. And
then there were Bonifatius, Karstedt, and all the others who had advised us on
strategies. We had to come out on top here.
Wilfried and Lestilaut were soon face-to-face,
fixing one another with stern glares. Rauffen, who was standing between them,
took out his schtappe and pointed it toward the sky, spurring them both to do
the same.
“May this be a nice, fair game,” Lestilaut
said.
“Our aub instructed us to do everything in our
power to protect Rozemyne,” Wilfried replied. “We will not lose.”
At that, Wilfried and Lestilaut turned away
from each other, went back to their respective bases, and then donned their
helmets. After confirming that everyone was in position, Rauffen made his
schtappe—which was still pointed toward the heavens—turn blue, then swung his
arm down.
“Begin!”
“Geteilt!”
In an instant, Ehrenfest’s apprentice knights
all produced their schtappes and readied their shields. I did the same, then
began my chant.
“O Goddess of Wind Schutzaria, protector of
all...”
Isidore grabbed a magic tool from his hip and thrust
it up into the air, causing several magic circles to form. It was a device that
bolstered the strength of wide-ranging spells, made for us by Hartmut based on
Clarissa’s research.
“O twelve goddesses who serve by her side...”
No sooner had the magic circles appeared than
Wilfried, Brunhilde, and Isidore all raised their schtappes. At the same time,
Matthias shouted, “Dunkelfelger has thrown something! Ready yourselves!”
Even then, I continued my chant: “Please hear
my prayer and lend me your divine strength.”
An instant later, a blinding light flashed
across Ehrenfest’s base. Thankfully, the attack largely missed me—I was behind
several apprentice knights and shorter than everyone else—but the knights in
the front row got completely blasted. Some cried out that they couldn’t see a
thing.
“Waschen!”
Still, we didn’t need to see to accomplish
what was our main objective right now—flooding Dunkelfelger’s base. Wilfried,
Brunhilde, and Isidore had more mana than anyone else in the Ehrenfest
Dormitory, and, even with their arms covering their faces, they had unleashed
the greatest waschen they could manage. A torrent of water now raced toward our
opponents.
“Graaah?!”
“What the heck is going on?!”
Dunkelfelger’s knights who had been closing in
on our blinded apprentices were buffeted by a torrent of water, as were the
enemy knights who had raised their weapons while preparing to unleash a
full-power attack. Before they knew what was going on, they were all being
washed to and fro.
We could have ended the game then and there if
we had swept Hannelore out of her base, but alas, the apprentice knights who
had stayed to guard their treasure had stood their ground and blocked the water
with their shields.
The waschen was frightfully strong—as
expected, considering that it had come from three powerhouses—but it lasted
only about ten seconds. And since the spell merely cleaned things before
vanishing without a trace, we hadn’t even left their capes all wet and heavy.
In what felt like no time at all, the stunned
Dunkelfelger knights scrambled back to their feet and started following orders
to reconvene back at their base. We had managed to buy ourselves twenty seconds
in total—and that was more than long enough for me to finish Schutzaria’s
shield.
“Grant me your shield of Wind, so that I might
blow away those who mean to cause harm!” I declared.
There was a sharp noise, then the hemisphere
that was Schutzaria’s shield formed around me. At the same time, a pillar of
yellow light shot up into the sky.
“Bwuh?!” I sputtered, my eyes wide. I was used
to seeing beams of light during ceremonies performed at the Royal Academy, but
never for something like this. Thinking about it, I usually made Schutzaria’s
shield by channeling mana into my ring. This was my first time speaking the
chant after turning my schtappe into a shield with geteilt.
“Well, Dunkelfelger receives blessings, so
maybe the important part is using your schtappe for a ritual, or chanting the
prayer...?” I muttered, staring up at the light.
Leonore, having instructed our blinded
apprentice knights to retreat behind the shield, whipped her head around to
look at Judithe and me. “Lady Rozemyne, begin the ocean ritual at once!
Judithe, buy her time! The knights are worthless now!”
I produced my schtappe again and made
Verfuhremeer’s staff, which I’d researched in the library and then practiced
making. My schtappe shone as I drew Verfuhremeer’s sigil in the air and
chanted, “Streitkolben.” I needed to go through the
extra step so that I wouldn’t mentally confuse it with Flutrane’s staff.
“O Goddess of Oceans Verfuhremeer...” I said,
beginning the prayer while gently spinning the staff. My intention was to seize
the blessings that Dunkelfelger had received for this match and return them to
the gods.
“I’m going!” Judithe called out in response to
Leonore’s command and jumped onto her highbeast. She flew up and took the place
of the Wilfried squad, all of whom had fallen back to chug rejuvenation
potions. Then—
“Hyah!”
Judithe used a sling to throw a softball-sized
magic tool at our opponents reconvening at their base.
“Something’s coming!” one of their knights
shouted. “Knock it back!”
“It’s not worth the risk!” cried another.
“Catch it with a net!”
One of Dunkelfelger’s apprentice knights
transformed their schtappe into a net and caught the magic tool. They had
anticipated that it would explode—and explode it did, spraying out dust and red
smoke the instant it made contact.
“Gaaah! My eyes!”
“H-Hrk! M-My throat!”
“Don’t breathe in! It makes your extremities
go numb!”
The apprentice knights regrouping at
Dunkelfelger’s base suddenly began to flail and struggle in pain. They were in
no condition to attack us.
“Hartmut shows not even a shred of mercy for
Lady Rozemyne’s enemies...” Brunhilde uttered, awestruck, as she recovered her
mana using a potion. Hartmut had gotten the apprentice knights to gather a
red-and-white spiky fruit called a “negarosh.” He had then crushed the fruit
into powder and weaponized it with the use of an exploding magic tool.
Powdered negarosh was a very effective
irritant, making those who got even the smallest amount in their eyes weep
uncontrollably. Those who inhaled it wouldn’t fare any better; their noses
would itch and gush snot, and their throats would sting and burn. Some would
end up feverish, while others would lose all feeling in their hands and feet.
Hartmut had said that the effects were short-lived and that a simple waschen
could wash the powder from one’s eyes, but still—Ehrenfest’s magic tool had
proven far more vicious than Dunkelfelger’s simple blinding one.
“Do not falter!” Lestilaut exclaimed. “We
learned two years ago that Rozemyne uses vicious, cowardly tricks unbefitting a
saint. Wash the powder away with waschen!”
I didn’t come up with this; Hartmut did.
Putting that aside, I poured mana into my
physical enhancement magic tools while spinning Verfuhremeer’s staff. There
came the rushing sound of waves, then the Dunkelfelger apprentice knights
started being stripped of their blessings.
Our opponents, who were so accustomed to their
enhancements, immediately began to stumble and drop to the ground. I was also
trying to steal their passionate, competitive spirit and calm their hearts; it
would take them some time to pump themselves up again.
“What are you doing?!” Lestilaut roared at us
from Dunkelfelger’s base. “The match isn’t over yet!” This was far more than
just a post-ditter ritual, however; it was meant to calm heat.
Though it’s not really meant to be performed
midway through winter...
“To the gods who granted us their blessings,
with our gratitude and prayers, we offer our mana,” I prayed, holding
Verfuhremeer’s staff overhead. A tremendous boom then
followed as a pillar of light fired up into the sky, followed shortly after by
the mana of the blessings I had stolen.
Our opponents were dazed, their blessings
having been stolen before the fight could properly begin... but now we were
going to be playing on more equal terms.
By the time Dunkelfelger’s apprentice knights
were back in formation, our knights who had previously been blinded were able
to see again. Everyone was on highbeast, ready to fight.
“Lady Rozemyne may have removed our opponents’
blessings, but do not let your guard down; they still have Rarstark,” Leonore
said. “Traugott, Laurenz, stay on him at all times. Do not separate from one
another. Is that understood?”
“Yes, ma’am!” Traugott and Laurenz replied,
saluting. Whoever this “Rarstark” person was, he was evidently strong enough
that our two best close-range fighters needed to face him together.
Since our game two years ago, when we were
very clearly outmatched, our apprentice knights had learned to coordinate with
one another and gotten stronger by obtaining more mana. Still, our opponent was
on another level; according to Matthias, our research into earning blessings
through rituals had made them more impassioned than ever before.
Taking on Dunkelfelger was like playing an
imbalanced game of chess; we were stuck with the usual distribution of pieces,
while our opponent had many, many more to choose from. Its pawns were gone,
replaced with bishops, rooks, knights, and queens. We were already at a
disadvantage, yet now two of our high-value pieces were having to focus on
Rarstark.
“May Angriff the God of War bless those of
Ehrenfest,” I said, channeling mana into my ring and trying to level the
playing field. After performing back-to-back rituals, I was in a bad enough
state that I needed to replenish my mana too.
Wilfried is going to use Ewigeliebe’s sword soon,
so I’ll need a lot of mana to preserve the shield.
After a lot of experimentation, we had
confirmed that Schutzaria’s shield was weakened whenever Ewigeliebe’s sword was
used nearby. Divinity-wise, the latter was presumably stronger than the former.
I suspected that Dunkelfelger intended to use this knowledge for its
anti-shield plan.
“Lady Rozemyne,” Leonore said, “please get in
your highbeast and focus on recovering. Lord Wilfried, prepare to use
Ewigeliebe’s sword when I give the signal. Brunhilde, Isidore, take turns
giving Judithe more mana-filled magic tools, though take care not to deplete
yourselves.”
According to both Leonore and Matthias,
Judithe was essential to making this game as close to even as possible.
“Natalie, Alexis,” Leonore continued, “move so
that Laurenz and Traugott can focus on Rarstark. Matthias, watch the skies.”
“Ma’am!”
Our apprentice knights flew out of our base,
following their instructions.
“We will not lose simply because our blessings
were stolen!” Lestilaut declared. “Go, Rarstark! Smash Ehrenfest to bits!”
“Yes, my lord!”
Dunkelfelger’s apprentice knights mounted
their highbeasts and set off, enacting their own plan. I chugged a
kindness-filled rejuvenation potion while spectating the battle that followed
from within my Pandabus.
As per Leonore and everyone’s plans, Judithe
continued to attack Dunkelfelger’s knights with magic tools, forcing them to
increase their defenses and thereby devote less manpower to attacking. Even so,
every single one of their knights was as strong as an Ehrenfest archknight. We
were barely able to hold them back.
Wow. So quick...
Plus, even without their blessings,
Dunkelfelger’s apprentice knights were moving a little faster than our own.
“You can steal our blessings, but you cannot
steal our talent for swordplay!” declared one of the enemy knights as he
readied and then brought down his sword. Laurenz moved to block the attack,
which told me that it was probably Rarstark.
“There’s no point trying to act cool,” Laurenz
remarked. “You had snot pouring from your nose after Judithe hit you with our
magic tool.”
“S-Silence! That was after you
were all so pitifully blinded, was it not?!”
The battle in the sky began with a series of
taunts.
“The outcome of this fight will depend on
whether we can keep Rarstark in place,” Matthias warned. “Don’t get pushed
back.”
Now that I’d completed Schutzaria’s shield and
successfully stolen Dunkelfelger’s blessings, our main objective and second
challenge was to contain our biggest threat, Rarstark. Matthias had said that
our victory would depend on how much damage we could do now, while so many of
Dunkelfelger’s knights were holding back to guard their base.
“Hyaaah!” Traugott roared, filling his sword
with mana before charging at Rarstark. There was a resounding clatter as their
blades met, marking the start of an intense showdown. Laurenz was flitting
about, seemingly acting more as support for Traugott than a main combatant.
“Respectable enthusiasm, but how long will you
last?” Rarstark jeered, effortlessly knocking away even Traugott and Laurenz’s
desperate joint attacks. It seemed that he was far from reaching his limit.
“They appear to be going all out right from
the start,” I said. “Is Traugott going to be okay?” I was a little nervous,
since it seemed as though he hadn’t grown at all from when his only focus had
been rushing headlong into battle, but Leonore gave me a reassuring smile.
“Rarstark cannot be contained without going
all out. Plus, I can assure you, Traugott has begun to
listen to others. Once he starts slowing down, Matthias will change places with
him.”
The dexterous Matthias was providing support
with his bow while shouting out directions to those around him. Even while his
attention was elsewhere, he always had an eye on Rarstark and was apparently
ready to trade places with Traugott or Laurenz at any moment.
“I, too, will be providing support while
giving instructions,” Leonore said. “Judithe, attack the enemy lines.”
From there, Leonore stopped glaring at the
battlefield and moved to join the fight. I strained my eyes as I watched her
leave Schutzaria’s shield, but the highbeasts in the sky were moving too fast
for me to make anything out.
I wonder who’s who?
Everyone’s positions changed on a dime. I
could see weapons striking each other, but I couldn’t tell the knights apart,
since they were all wearing helmets. As my eyes darted across the battlefield,
the only people I could recognize were Matthias as he gave instructions, and
Laurenz and Traugott, since they were always sticking together.
Nobody even tried to attack Schutzaria’s
shield, likely because they had seen the Sovereign Knight’s Order confirm its
strength for the royal family. Their focus right now was the battle at hand;
everything else could come later.
“Judithe, use this next,” Isidore said,
handing her another mana-filled magic tool made by Hartmut.
Judithe flew out of the shield, then slung the
magic tool at the opposing knights with a loud “Hyah!” By the time she
returned, an explosion had rung out from the enemy lines, and there were
screams again. Hartmut’s magic tools really were proving effective.
“Still, I’m impressed that Hartmut managed to
make this many...” I said, peering into the box stuffed with magic tools.
Brunhilde smiled, having taken a pause to
recover her mana. “We left the apprentice scholars exhausted and unmoving
within the brewing room before coming here.”
Hartmut had made many different magic tools,
and they were organized according to their destructive might. The low-level
ones produced deafening noise or blinding light, like the tool that
Dunkelfelger had thrown out at the start. Others produced a nauseating odor or
made gross bugs fly out. They weren’t too bad, all things considered; anyone in
range when one went off would only be temporarily immobilized or distracted.
Mid-level tools were those that utilized
numbing or sleep powder, or that caused one’s eyes to water or nose to run
uncontrollably. The tool we had used at the very beginning of the game was
included in this category. They caused physical ailments, but since they were
generally dependent on powders, a quick waschen worked as an effective counter.
If using waschen wasn’t an immediate option, however, or if those affected took
in a lot of the powder, then the effects would last much longer.
The high-level tools were apparently to be
used in brutal, horrifying strategies taken from Ferdinand’s reference
documents. They were genuinely quite dangerous when detonated; some fired out
rock shrapnel, while others produced a sequence of explosions like fireworks.
The attacks from these magic tools could do serious damage if not properly
shielded.
Isidore was handing over low- and mid-level
tools seemingly at random, so we weren’t sure what any given one would do
before it exploded. Our opponents were equally unsure; all they could do was
ready their shields in fear of what was to come.
For now, we don’t need to worry about an attack
on our base, at least.
Just as that thought crossed my mind,
Wilfried’s guard knight Alexis dove into Schutzaria’s shield. “Heal me,
please!” he shouted, falling from his highbeast and then turning back to face
the battlefield, holding his arm all the while.
I followed Alexis’s gaze just in time to see
the Dunkelfelger apprentice knight who had been chasing him collide with
Schutzaria’s shield and get thrown back with great force. The burst threw him
out of position, but he quickly regained his footing and returned to the
battlefield; he must have understood that entering the shield wasn’t an option.
After confirming that his pursuer had given up
the chase, Alexis sighed in relief and removed his helmet. “Dunkelfelger’s
knights are much stronger than they were two years ago. They have better
technique and throw us into disarray faster than expected.”
“What?!” Wilfried exclaimed.
Alexis had ended up losing to an opponent whom
he had at least been expected to match on his own. At the moment, Leonore’s and
Matthias’s support was keeping the front line stable, but it seemed that it
wouldn’t last long.
Wilfried turned to watch the battle. I did the
same. From the look of things, Ehrenfest was already struggling to stand its
ground, and its position was only getting worse.
“Dunkelfelger comes across as more serious and
dedicated than ever before,” Wilfried remarked. “Apparently, they started
playing nonstop ditter in their dormitory to gain blessings from the ritual.”
“But we trained really hard as well...” Alexis
muttered, frustrated.
“And our opponents trained even harder,” I
said. It was clear at a glance, and they really were taking the battle a lot
more seriously. Their apprentice knights could obtain blessings on their own,
whereas our apprentice knights couldn’t.
“Not to mention,” I continued, “Dunkelfelger
is fielding mostly archknights. Ehrenfest, in contrast, is relying mostly on
medknights. Even with mana compression on our side, there can be no avoiding
the difference in our duchies’ mana quantities.”
Mana compression needed to be done with some
level of desperation; I could teach others my multistep method, but how much
they gained from it would depend on their own efforts. Sure, our apprentice
knights had gotten stronger through Bonifatius’s mandatory training, but
Dunkelfelger’s students simply cared way more. They played ditter nigh
constantly, and their skill level determined whether they would get to play in
the Interduchy Tournament.
“Alexis, allow me to heal you,” I said. “Then
return to battle as soon as you are able.”
I reached my ringed hand out the window of my
Pandabus and gestured Alexis over before granting him Heilschmerz’s blessing.
Once the green light had healed his wounds, he chugged a rejuvenation potion in
one go and then put a new one on his leather belt.
“They got me!”
This time, it was Natalie who flew over for
aid. Alexis’s expression hardened; he gave the empty bottle to Brunhilde, put
his helmet back on, and then headed off to take Natalie’s place.
“Come here, Natalie,” I said. “May
Heilschmerz’s healing be granted.”
“Thank you, Lady Rozemyne.”
While I was healing Natalie, two more
apprentice knights returned to our base. Dunkelfelger was largely on the
defensive, and we had more active fighters, yet more and more of our apprentice
knights were getting wounded. This meant fewer knights on the battlefield,
putting Ehrenfest in an increasingly worse position.
“How goes the battle?” I asked.
“Not well. Matthias is fighting in my place,
and Leonore in his.”
In other words, Matthias and Leonore were
having to observe the battlefield and give out instructions while at the same
time participating in the battle themselves.
But wasn’t Matthias supposed to take over from
Traugott or Laurenz?!
I frantically scanned the battlefield until I
spotted two ocher capes fighting one blue. Traugott had been fighting all out
from the start, so he was slower than before; now, he was providing support for
Laurenz instead of the other way around.
“Traugott, return to base for healing!”
Laurenz’s voice resounded.
“No!” Traugott roared in response. “I was
ordered to hold down Rarstark with you. I cannot leave until support comes or I
am ordered to do something else. Until then, I must endure!”
Traugott wasn’t just being stubborn; he was
acting strategically while keeping the entire battlefield in mind. Laurenz must
have realized this, as he replied with a determined “Right!”
Traugott and Laurenz were still cooperating
well, but with Matthias now covering for the wounded, support would never
arrive. Once they were both completely exhausted, there would be nobody to
contain Rarstark.
Our battle plan is falling to pieces...
Not only was our front line starting to waver,
but I was stuck healing one person after another, meaning I didn’t yet have all
of my mana back.
This isn’t good.
Still, what mattered right now was getting the
apprentice knights back into the fight. I continued to aid them as they
arrived, though I could feel that Dunkelfelger was slowly encroaching on us.
And soon enough...
“Ehrenfest’s front line is crumbling!”
Lestilaut roared. “Use this chance to crush them all at once!” He must have
been sure that victory was in Dunkelfelger’s grasp, as he sent some of the
knights defending their base to attack us instead. There was no way we would be
able to hold on when we were already stretched so thin.
“Rozemyne, do you think I should go now?”
Wilfried asked, eyeing the box containing Ewigeliebe’s sword. “We need to heal
all of our knights at once and get our front line back in order. I’ll go buy
some time.”
“You have my full support, Brother. No matter
what happens, do not stop until the ritual is complete.”
“Right.”
Keeping half an eye on Wilfried as he picked
up Ewigeliebe’s sword, I turned to those gathered in the shield and started
giving out orders.
“Brunhilde, stay with Judithe and use two or
three of the high-level magic tools in quick succession. After experiencing so
many low- and mid-level tools, our opponents surely have their guard down. They
might even call some of their knights back to defend and heal.”
“Understood.”
Brunhilde picked out a high-level magic tool.
Judithe accepted it, looking tense, and then flew up into the air.
“Hyah!”
Again, Judithe targeted the enemy base—this
time just as Dunkelfelger’s reinforcements moved to enter the fray. All of our
offensive tools thus far had produced sound, light, or powder, but not this
one; it detonated with a thundering boom, unleashing
violent flames and a pillar of smoke.
Hannelore shrieked, and the enemy knights all
turned to the source of the commotion. Both the would-be reinforcements and
those pushing back Ehrenfest were completely distracted.
“More are coming! Retreat!” one of the
opposing knights cried upon seeing Judithe throw a second tool. “Their attacks
are more devastating than before!”
Those in Dunkelfelger’s base readied their
shields and took defensive positions just as the second tool exploded,
scattering shrapnel in all directions. Those closest to the blast screamed and
reeled, providing Wilfried with the perfect opportunity to act. He left
Schutzaria’s shield with Ewigeliebe’s sword in hand; trying to activate it
inside the shield would cause the shield to disappear.
“All of you who can fight, protect Wilfried,”
I said. “Do everything in your power to ensure his ritual is not interrupted.”
“Right!”
Ewigeliebe’s sword had been preemptively
filled with mana, but that still wasn’t enough to use its power as a divine
instrument. It was similar to how you needed to infuse Leidenschaft’s spear
with an excess of mana to make it start crackling with blue lightning.
“Isidore, prepare for rejuvenation.”
“As you will.”
Anyone who used Ewigeliebe’s sword would find
themselves almost entirely drained of mana and unable to move—that was why it
was crucial to have someone standing by to retrieve them. This wasn’t something
we could leave to Brunhilde, so Isidore had accepted the responsibility as
Wilfried’s attendant and a fellow male.
“They’re doing something!” one of the opposing
knights cried. “Stop them!”
“We won’t let you!” shouted another.
Those protecting Wilfried while he channeled
mana into Ewigeliebe’s sword threw nets and Hartmut’s magic tools to fend off
the approaching enemies.
Over time, Ewigeliebe’s sword began to change.
Its white feystone blade shone bright white, and an icy wind started to swirl
around it. Pouring more mana into the sword would intensify the cold air until
it turned into a whirlwind of ice and snow.
“O God of Life Ewigeliebe, ruler of
restoration and death,” Wilfried prayed. “O twelve gods who serve by his side.”
He was squeezing his eyes shut while gripping the sword at his chest, pointing
its blade toward the heavens. The sight alone was enough to whip Dunkelfelger’s
knights into a frenzy.
“Stop him!” one cried. “Don’t let him finish
that prayer!”
All at once, Dunkelfelger’s knights dropped
whatever they were doing to swarm Wilfried. This sudden change came as a
surprise to our own knights who had been engaged in combat, but they quickly
recovered and gave chase.
“Protect him!” one of our knights shouted in
response. “Don’t let them get close!”
Dunkelfelger’s apprentice knights rained
arrows down on Wilfried, trying to interrupt his prayer. The surrounding knights
deflected as many as they could, but one or two met their mark. Thankfully,
Wilfried was wearing the charms he had received from Ferdinand, which reflected
the arrows and responded with mana counterattacks.
“Hear my prayer and lend me your divine
strength,” he continued, ice and snow now whirling around him. “Grant me the
power to protect Geduldh from those who would steal her.”
Dunkelfelger’s apprentice knights started to
back off. They could doubtless feel Ewigeliebe’s power and were on guard about
what was going to happen.
“I offer thee my unwavering faith. May my
highest ideals be met with praise and with lasting protection. Grant me thy
divine power so that no enemies may approach.”
His prayer complete, Wilfried suddenly opened
his eyes again. He was holding Ewigeliebe’s sword at the ready.
“Ehrenfest, return!”
Ehrenfest’s apprentice knights, who knew what
was about to happen, instantly retreated into Schutzaria’s shield. There were
so many of us that I needed to make the shield even larger, which only made it
harder to maintain. It was near impossible to use Schutzaria’s shield and
Ewigeliebe’s sword at the same time, so our plan really was testing my limits.
“Graaaaaah!”
Wilfried roared as he swung Ewigeliebe’s sword
horizontally, putting his heart and soul into the attack. In the blink of an
eye, twenty-some subordinates of the Lord of Winter appeared, all made of ice
and snow, and descended on the Dunkelfelger apprentices and their base. The
strength of these summons depended on the user’s mana; they were the result of
an ultimate move that drained almost all of one’s mana in a single swipe.
“Guh?! What’s going on?!”
“Those are feybeasts! Cut them down! Show no
hesitation!”
As the feybeasts started to attack, Wilfried
collapsed into a sitting position. Isidore rushed over at once, having been
waiting at the innermost edge of our shield, and started dragging his lord to
safety. Only once they were back inside did Isidore start giving Wilfried
kindness-filled potions.
“Have I... bought us enough time...?” Wilfried
asked.
“Indeed,” I replied. “Thanks to your efforts,
we can heal all of our knights. Judithe, make preparations once you have
recovered. We need to attack nonstop.”
Dunkelfelger would similarly return to their
base to heal after defeating the Lord of Winter’s subordinates. That would be
our moment to strike.
“While they are recovering themselves, we will
strike with a flurry of our most powerful attacks,” Isidore continued.
“Ideally, we would also have something to destroy their rejuvenation potions.”
At the moment, Dunkelfelger’s rejuvenation
potions were being closely guarded by knights in full plate armor. Their
defenses were effectively impregnable, but that would change when their
comrades returned to heal. Our goal was to exploit that opening and destroy
their whole supply with a magic tool.
“Our next target is their rejuvenation
potions?” Wilfried asked while returning Ewigeliebe’s sword to its box.
“Uncle’s notes did mention the importance of destroying the enemy’s supply
lines and means of rejuvenation, but... Look, I realize that we need to do
this, but we can’t blame them for calling us vicious.”
“Quite,” I replied. “Ehrenfest cannot compare
to Dunkelfelger’s attack power. If their treasure were a feybeast, then we
could use this opening to land a killing blow instead, but we are facing Lady
Hannelore. Our safest option is to gradually wear down our opponents, and to
that end, their rejuvenation potions are in our way.”
During last year’s battle between Ferdinand
and Heisshitze, Hannelore hadn’t once left her base of her own will. That would
presumably be the case today as well; we would need to get up close, ensnare
her with light from our schtappes, and drag her out.
“We’re almost there!” one of the enemy knights
shouted. “Take them down!”
“Those who need to heal, start getting in
line!”
The winter feybeasts had come from Wilfried’s
mana alone; defeating them all would take our opponents some time, but it
wouldn’t be very difficult if they worked together. It wasn’t long before their
knights began returning to heal.
“Now!” Leonore cried. She and Judithe flew up
above the battlefield, armed with the high-level magic tools that Brunhilde had
given them, and then launched successive attacks on the enemy base. The tools
exploded on impact, sending the knights being healed into a panic.
“Gaaah! Our rejuvenation potions!”
“How many are intact?!”
“Another’s coming! Shields! Get ready!”
“Close the boxes first!”
Dunkelfelger wasn’t having a good time.
“Rozemyne! This is reprehensible!” Lestilaut
bellowed, incensed. “You would call yourself a saint after such a craven
display?!”
I couldn’t recall ever calling myself a saint.
Plus, according to Ferdinand, the blame rightfully lay with those who had so
foolishly let down their guard. I thought that was true... but at the same
time, I thought Ferdinand was at fault for having inspired such a move in the
first place.
Basically, what I’m trying to say is: you can’t
blame me for this.
“Aim for the slinger throwing those magic
tools!” Lestilaut ordered. “Destroy her thoroughly. Ensure that she can bother
us no more!”
Throughout the battle thus far, Dunkelfelger
had prioritized our strongest knights over Judithe, as they had simply been
able to block her attacks with their shields. Now that her magic tools were
causing massive damage, however, something needed to be done.
“She always leaves Ehrenfest’s shield before
attacking. Her magic tool would no doubt be reflected otherwise. Do not miss
that opportunity!”
“Yes, my lord!”
Judithe recoiled upon hearing Lestilaut’s
command, then began to tremble. Lestilaut wasn’t participating in the fight
himself and was instead waiting at his duchy’s base, keeping a close eye on the
whole battlefield. His position had allowed him to make some very keen
observations.
Lestilaut then added that I was to be targeted
as well. “Rozemyne performed a sequence of rituals at the start of our game and
has been maintaining a shield ever since, on top of casting healing magic. She
must not have recovered much mana. Give her no room to breathe; focus on her
shield until you break through. I intend to use you-know-what.”
He also mentioned that I had drunk a
rejuvenation potion after taking so many hits from the Sovereign Knight’s
Order.
“Lady Rozemyne, is all that true?” Leonore
asked.
I nodded. Healing the knights and maintaining
Schutzaria’s shield, especially in the presence of Ewigeliebe’s sword, had
taken a lot out of me—and this had all taken place before my mana could even
fully recover from the rituals. I had actively avoided healing myself, since I
had assumed that could wait until everyone was back on the front line.
“I still have enough to maintain the shield
and my highbeast,” I said, “and I expect to be able to endure some attacks...
but if Dunkelfelger launches an all-out offensive, I will not last long.”
The Sovereign Knight’s Order had drained a lot
of my mana when investigating the strength of my shield. Our opponents right
now were mere apprentices, but after seeing them so swiftly cut down our
feybeasts, it was clear that I couldn’t lower my guard.
“Lady Rozemyne, running out of mana...?”
The apprentice knights still gathered in
Schutzaria’s shield all exchanged worried glances. I understood the feeling of
abruptly losing one’s safety net, but still. Dunkelfelger wasn’t using
Schutzaria’s shield; instead, its knights were all defending themselves
individually.
“There’s nothing to worry about,” Wilfried
said, standing up. “We just need to take down as many of Dunkelfelger’s
apprentice knights as we can. We’ve all received Rozemyne’s healing and are
recovering as we speak. Now, we just need to protect her and give her time to
replenish her mana. That’s no different from what we’ve been doing so far,
right?”
“Right, my lord!”
Just moments ago, Ehrenfest had been
completely overwhelmed to the point that our front line had crumbled. We all
understood that wearing down an opponent as numerous and capable as
Dunkelfelger wouldn’t be easy... but even so, our apprentice knights were all
riled up.
“Protect the Saint of Ehrenfest! Don’t let the
enemy near our shield!”
It seemed that Lestilaut had a plan to conquer
Schutzaria’s shield. To keep Dunkelfelger’s apprentice knights from getting too
close, our own knights took to the battlefield with magic tools in hand.
Only four of us were going to remain inside
the shield: Judithe, Brunhilde, Isidore, and me. Wilfried was leaving with the
others, also with a magic tool at the ready, saying that archduke candidates
had to take the lead at times like this. He had gotten that attitude from
Sylvester, in my opinion.
“We will protect you, Lady Rozemyne.”
I watched the knights leave, then brushed my
fingers against the potions hanging from my belt. Among them was the
ultra-nasty one.
Should I...? I need to recover my mana, but...
Having more mana meant more options, which
would be helpful... but at the same time, I’d already drunk a kindness-infused
potion; drinking an ultra-nasty one on top of that would be dangerous.
Considering how closely Rihyarda and Hartmut managed my potion consumption, it
wasn’t as simple as chugging one whenever I needed mana.
Plus, drinking more than I can manage would absolutely outrage Ferdinand.
I was already using a lot of mana to maintain
my highbeast and the shield, and with my current recovery rate, I wouldn’t be
able to endure a coordinated attack from Dunkelfelger. The ultra-nasty potion
would greatly help me in this regard—but consuming it now risked me recovering too much mana, which would be as problematic as during the
Dedication Ritual.
Let’s keep this as a last resort.
We hadn’t yet confirmed whether Lestilaut
really had a secret plan for destroying our shield. My decision could wait
until they made their move. I took my hand away from the potion and focused on
the battlefield; an intense clash was about to begin.
“CHAAARGE! Knock them all down!”
“Don’t let them get close!”
Knights flew from either base and charged to
the center of the battlefield. The blue-capes were in a tight clump, while our
own ocher-capes moved to engulf them, providing a colorful contrast.
“I’ll go provide support,” Judithe told me,
then darted outside the shield. She had in her hand a high-level magic tool
given to her by Brunhilde, which she then slung at the faraway mass of enemy
knights.
“Dodge it!”
The blue swarm heading toward us noticed the
magic tool and scattered in all directions. The tool missed them entirely,
instead hitting the ground and exploding quite harmlessly, after which the
knights returned to their blob-like formation.
“All at once!” Wilfried called.
Ehrenfest’s spread-out apprentice knights
began throwing magic tools of their own, causing explosions that kicked up
thick clouds of dust all across the battlefield. Some of the approaching
blue-capes were knocked from their highbeasts or got blown away by the blast,
but that didn’t stop the approaching mass; with Rarstark at their core, they
dodged magic tools while zigzagging forward, continuously scattering and
reforming as they charged.
“Rarstark!” Lestilaut shouted.
In sequence, Rarstark’s sword began to shine a
complex rainbow of colors. It was the large-scale mana attack that Ferdinand
often used when taking down massive feybeasts—one so powerful that even its
shockwaves were lethal—and it was being directed straight at me.
The blood drained from my face.
“Are they sane?!” Wilfried yelled.
I was in wholehearted agreement. Desperately,
I started channeling all of my recovering mana into Schutzaria’s shield. I’d
never experienced being hit with such a serious attack before.
I’ll die! Taking that head-on will kill me for
sure!
The attack wasn’t quite as bright as the one
Cornelius had used to finish the ditter match two years ago. Rarstark was
probably holding back somewhat—his performance thus far made it clear that he
was capable of more. Not that that made me feel any safer.
“DODGE IF YOU WANT TO LIIIVE!” Rarstark roared
as he swung down his sword. An imposing light shot forth, heading straight for
our base, swirling with all sorts of complex colors.
Ehrenfest’s apprentice knights held up their
geteilt-made shields to defend against the attack, but the shockwave alone
scattered them with ease. Indeed, the monstrous light blew through all
obstacles in its path as it shot toward me. Brunhilde, having never experienced
a battle like this before, let out a high-pitched squeak before fainting into a
heap on the ground. Isidore similarly dropped, his head in his hands.
Judithe was the only person in the shield
still able to guard me. She was standing in front of me, her back turned to the
light, spreading her cape in an attempt to keep me safe. “This is the most I
can do...” she said—though her voice was dwarfed by the crackling and
screeching of Schutzaria’s shield.
Rarstark’s attack had reached our defenses.
Even with Judithe’s cape blocking my view, my vision went pure white. A
deafening roar assaulted my ears, and the mana needed to maintain the shield
was sucked out of me all at once.
My only focus was channeling mana into
Schutzaria’s shield. Brunhilde was unconscious, Isidore was in the fetal
position, and Judithe was standing in the path of a terrifying attack. I
couldn’t afford to collapse; too many people were at risk.
I wasn’t sure how long the clash between light
and shield endured. Was it mere seconds, or much longer? All I knew was that,
eventually, the light disappeared, and shapes and colors slowly returned to my
vision. My ears were ringing so much that everything sounded muted, but I could
make out the din of combat somewhere in the distance.
Judithe was still standing with her cape
spread out in front of me. We were both gazing upward, albeit from different
angles.
“Ah...”
I suddenly dropped to the ground. My highbeast
had vanished, and its feystone landed at my fingertips. Maybe I’d been too
focused on maintaining the shield, or maybe I’d simply run out of mana.
“Is it over...?” Judithe asked, dazed, still
spreading her cape to protect me.
I stood, looked to the sky, then nodded.
“Schutzaria’s shield is still there. It must be over.”
We both sighed and smiled at each other—but
then a shadow darkened the earth between us.
“Wha...?”
I turned my attention back to the skies,
surprised that something was right above us. There was a highbeast over our
shield with its wings spread, though not for long—it disappeared a moment
later, leaving Lestilaut in its place. He was falling toward us, a large black
shield attached to his left arm.
“Eep?!”
There was no way that Lestilaut, an enemy
knight, would be able to enter our shield during a game of ditter. He would
naturally be knocked back... and yet, he somehow made it through, forcing his
way inside from behind his black shield.
“B-But how?!” I exclaimed, looking between
Lestilaut and our shield. Some of my mana had been sucked out, but our defenses
were still standing strong.
Lestilaut dropped down from above, his armor
clattering as he stuck a nimble landing.
In an instant, Judithe moved to protect me.
“Stay behind me, Lady Rozemyne,” she said, morphing her schtappe into a sword
while sizing up her opponent. Before she could even attempt to strike, however,
she was forced out of the shield.
“Ah?!”
A grin crept onto Lestilaut’s face as he
watched Judithe’s struggle to reenter. “Schutzaria refuses entry to all those
who intend to cause harm, does she not? As we have seen before, even those
already inside the shield will find themselves ejected if they attempt an
attack.”
Now, the only other people in the shield with
me were Brunhilde, Isidore, and Lestilaut. Judithe was stuck outside because
she intended to harm Lestilaut.
“Lord Lestilaut, how did you get through the
shield...?” I asked, taking a step back.
He raised an eyebrow at me. “Is it not
obvious? I possess no malice.”
That was a lie. Malice or no, he was my enemy
in the context of our game; no way would the shield have allowed him through. A
large, black shield gleamed on his arm; he had presumably drained enough mana
from my shield to create a hole for him to slip through.
“It was that black shield, wasn’t it?” I
asked.
“Correct,” Lestilaut said pridefully, stroking
the item in question. “This shield is made of the highest-quality Darkness
feystones imaginable; there is no better means of defending against mana
attacks. It can even pass through walls of mana, as you have now seen. It is
one of our duchy’s hidden treasures, sent by our aub so that we could counter
your shield.”
Just as we had borrowed a divine instrument
from our aub, Lestilaut had borrowed that black shield from his. He went on to
note that they couldn’t allow Hannelore to be stolen by Ehrenfest so easily.
“Aah!” Judithe cried. During our brief
conversation, she had been surrounded by enemy knights and captured in bands of
light.
“Judithe!”
“How about getting rid of your shield,”
Lestilaut suggested. “Then your allies would actually be able to reach you.”
I bit my lip. A single glance was enough to
see that nobody was around to help Judithe. There were blue-capes surrounding
Schutzaria’s shield with their schtappes in hand, ready to bind me with light
the moment I lowered our defenses. Maintaining the shield would keep out the
other knights seeking to capture me, but it would also stop my allies from
coming to my aid. It would mean dealing with Lestilaut myself, either by
forcing him out or generally defeating him.
Oh no... I don’t have any mana to spare.
I knew better than anyone how helpless I was
without mana. I couldn’t use any fighting techniques, and although I was
healthier now, I was still prone to collapsing after too much exertion.
I took another step back. Lestilaut and I were
positioned an equal distance away from the box containing our magic tools, in
what was effectively an isosceles triangle. Trying to reach the box was an
option, but it was likely that Lestilaut would get there before me—and
considering the risk that he might push it out of the shield or otherwise
destroy it, I determined that it was safer to do something else.
While I was desperately evaluating my chances
and searching for a means to attack, Lestilaut started closing the distance
between us, step by step.
“Rarstark has personally knocked aside more
than half of your knights,” he said. “The remainder are struggling against a
portion of our forces. Now that your shield no longer serves its purpose, the
battle has been decided.” He reached out to me, offering me his hand, which was
large enough to belong to an adult. “Take my hand, Rozemyne.”
Lestilaut couldn’t attack me while we were
within the shield, nor could he take me by force. In other words, the battle
wouldn’t be decided unless I took his hand and willingly left our base.
I glared up at Lestilaut, my eyes flitting
between his open hand and victorious expression. “No way.” I wasn’t about to
resign—to surrender to Dunkelfelger of my own volition. It genuinely angered me
that he was trying to make this the finale. I wasn’t going to choose his duchy
over my own. Not now, not ever.
Lestilaut blinked a few times, momentarily
surprised by my answer, then adjusted his position and flourished his cape.
“This tough act of yours does have its appeal, but the more obstinate you are,
the more harm will come to your knights.”
His theatrical gesture had given me a good
view of the battle outside the shield. My guard knights were embroiled in a desperate
struggle, fighting to the last breath to protect me.
“Rozemyne!” Wilfried yelled, his voice clear
above the racket. He was swinging his sword at one of the opposing knights,
engaged in combat.
Not a single person had given up—and with that
realization, my own chances of surrendering evaporated completely. Everyone’s
efforts filled me with a single, simple urge: to win.
“I didn’t want to have to do this, but...”
I took the ultra-nasty potion from my belt and
pressed the feystone on the top to open it. The awful stench made me groan
instinctively; it had been so long since I’d last tasted one of these potions
that my body was actively fighting against it.
“Rozemyne, you... What are you about to
drink?” Lestilaut asked, his previously confident eyes now tinged with
uncertainty.
In one fell swoop, I downed the entire potion.
“Nghhhhhh!”
The intense bitterness numbed my tongue, and a
foul stench hit the back of my throat. It was all too much to bear, and I fell
to the ground with my hands covering my mouth. Tears started to blur my vision
as I writhed in agony.
I might die before I win!
“Was that poison?!” Lestilaut exclaimed. He
sprinted over at once and dropped to his knees in front of me.
No! It’s not poison! It’s medicine! Technically
speaking...!
I wanted to protest, but my body wouldn’t let
me; I could only lie there with my hands clasped over my mouth and tears
welling from my eyes, enduring the horrible taste. My mana recovered with
haste, and some of the tension left my shoulders. My flailing had really
impacted my stamina, but that recovered too.
As I remained on the ground, limp and
motionless, waiting for my body to recover, Lestilaut nervously went to touch
my cheek. His hand was knocked away with a quiet pop.
Although his black shield was stopping him from being thrown out of our
defenses, the charms that Ferdinand had made for me still took effect.
“Are you really so against moving to
Dunkelfelger, Rozemyne...?” Lestilaut murmured, spiritless.
“Of course,” I replied, slowly opening my
eyes. “You know, Lord Lestilaut... I haven’t lost yet.”
Lestilaut watched in shock as I stood up and
brushed the grass and dirt from my hair and clothes. My mana had recovered.
“Wilfried! I can handle things here!” I
shouted. “Go steal Lady Hannelore!”
It was the perfect opening—he had just
defeated the apprentice knight trying to stop him and was closer to Hannelore
than anyone else from Ehrenfest. Meanwhile, most of our opponents were gathered
around Schutzaria’s shield, cocksure, eager for a chance to capture me.
“I entrust Ehrenfest’s victory to you!” I
cried. “Lanze!”
In the blink of an eye, Leidenschaft’s spear
appeared in my hand, crackling with blue lightning. I had no intention of using
a divine instrument against Hannelore, but against Lestilaut? I saw no reason
to hold back.
Lestilaut held up his black shield, on guard
against the divine instrument. Some of his comrades flew off to protect
Hannelore, while others stayed in place, enraptured by Leidenschaft’s spear.
I was holding my newly formed weapon in both
hands—and without issue, I might add, since it was a transformation of my
schtappe and therefore weighed nothing at all. My target was Lestilaut’s black
shield, the one thing keeping him from being thrown out of our defenses.
“Hyaaah!”
I cried out, lunging forward with my spear. I
wasn’t trained in the art of combat, so I was limited to the most basic
attacks. Lestilaut dodged with ease, so I swung my already thrust-out spear
sideways toward him. I didn’t care how crude I was being. As long as I got him,
my efforts would surely do something.
“Hyah! Hyah!”
“This is the clumsiest spear fighting I have
ever seen,” Lestilaut commented, “but your weapon certainly is dangerous.”
My lack of skill aside, it went without saying
that a divine spear was dangerous beyond words; Lestilaut couldn’t risk letting
it touch him.
After several more unsuccessful attacks, my
random swinging finally paid off and scored a hit against the black shield. The
two collided with a loud, metallic clank, then there
came a violent boom as mana struck mana. The surface
of the black shield exploded with light, while Lestilaut, caught off guard by
the unexpected development, knocked my spear aside.
“The spear...” he said, looking at my weapon
in disbelief. Its blue lightning had vanished, indicating that it was now
drained. I stared at the shield attached to his left arm in similar
astonishment.
The center part seems to be turning into gold
dust.
The black shield was no longer black; instead,
it was now dyed a light yellow color, having absorbed all of the mana from
Leidenschaft’s spear. It was starting to crumble from the center outward,
turning to dust from where my attack had struck.
Lestilaut followed my eyes to his shield, then
yelped. “Rozemyne, you... What have you done?!” He fixed me with a ferocious
glare, and in the blink of an eye, he was flung out of Schutzaria’s shield as
if carried away by the wind.
From outside our defenses, he roared,
“ROZEMYNE! THIS SHIELD IS A TREASURE OF DUNKELFELGER!” All the while, his
shield continued to deteriorate. It was far from my first time turning
something to dust through mana saturation; there was no helping it now.
“So you say, but was it not obvious that
exposing Geduldh would end with her being stolen by Flutrane? This seems to me
like an incident invited by Ewigeliebe’s carelessness.”
I sighed in relief and cast rucken to dispel
my spear. Lestilaut tried to attack Schutzaria’s shield out of anger, only to
be knocked back again. I had succeeded in expelling our enemy.
“Now, Ehrenfest will not lose,” I said. “The
outcome of this battle depends on whether Wilfried can coax Lady Hannelore out
of her base...”
“Something is coming from above!” Hirschur
suddenly cried from the audience, where she was serving as a judge. “Everyone,
be careful!”
I turned to look and spotted countless figures
in the sky over the arena. They descended on us, letting out war cries.
Intruders
“What are those...?”
“We are in the middle of ditter!”
I was starting to wonder whether the new
arrivals had mistaken this for a training session when several offensive magic
tools rained down on the battlefield. This was an attack, no two ways about it.
The apprentice knights raised their geteilt-made shields above their heads to
protect themselves.
The figures who swooped into the arena weren’t
just from a single duchy. Among them were orange- and dark-purple-capes, all
armed and armored.
“The Saint of Ehrenfest belongs to the
victor!” one of the intruders announced. “We won’t let Dunkelfelger have her!”
“HOW DARE YOU INTERFERE!” Lestilaut roared,
furious beyond words that our game was being interrupted. His comrades shared
in his outrage; they gripped their weapons and shot up into the sky on their
highbeasts.
“Have you forgotten that your previous union
of middle and lesser duchies failed to even scratch us?!”
The intruders’ bombardment continued. It was
impossible to tell what they were thinking or how much they had prepared. We
also couldn’t predict whether Dunkelfelger would immediately return to
attacking us after stomping them. For that reason...
“Ehrenfest, return to base!” I called. “Bring
the wounded with you!”
Healing comes first.
The battle against Dunkelfelger had taken a
toll on our apprentice knights; some were lying on the battlefield, unable to
move. Helping them took priority over dealing with the intruders. Besides, we
weren’t much of a fighting threat at the present moment.
In response to my call, our apprentice knights
started returning to the safety of our shield. Those who were able to move
freely retrieved those who were not. Judithe was brought in as well, still
restrained; the bands around her could only be cut by someone with more mana
than their caster. I swiftly used messer to free her.
“I’m so sorry...” Judithe said. “I—”
“That can come later,” I replied, interrupting
her. “For now, hurry to make sure no wounded have been left behind.”
Her violet eyes, which had just moments ago
been stripped of their luster, suddenly lit up again. Any thoughts of her
shortcomings had been pushed aside now that she had a job to do. After sharply
voicing her acknowledgment, she flourished her cape and went off on her
highbeast.
It wasn’t long before Wilfried returned as
well—though he wasn’t alone. “Rozemyne, can we shield Lady Hannelore here too?”
he asked. “Her own duchy abandoned her in their base.”
“You are more than welcome here, Lady
Hannelore,” I replied. “What were your knights thinking, leaving an archduke
candidate on her own?! Your safety clearly comes before dealing with the
intruders.” I glared up at the blue-capes still dealing with the rain of magic
tools, all the while making space for Wilfried and Hannelore.
“This must be enough to warrant putting our
game on hold,” Wilfried said. “We can’t keep up like this.”
“I expect that Dunkelfelger intends to
continue the match after crushing them, but you are right—we are in no position
for that. We have used most of our magic tools and consumed too many of our
rejuvenation potions.” I cast streitkolben to turn my schtappe into Flutrane’s
staff and then spoke the prayer necessary to heal everyone in the shield at
once: “May Heilschmerz’s healing be granted.”
A pillar of green light shot up into the sky.
By now, this was a familiar sight for Dunkelfelger’s and our own apprentice
knights—but not for our intruders. They immediately began to stir.
After analyzing our situation with cool
composure, I turned to those safely inside our shield. Brunhilde was finally
regaining consciousness. She shakily returned to her feet, grimaced at the dirt
and grass clinging to her hair, then swiftly cleaned herself with a waschen.
Oh, right... Nobles don’t brush themselves off
with their hands.
In mere seconds, Brunhilde was looking like
her usual self again, carrying herself so gracefully that it was hard to
believe there was a battle raging around us. Once again, it was clear that she
was the superior noblewoman and that my instincts betrayed my absolute lack of
elegance.
All of a sudden, for the briefest moment, my
vision began to flicker.
“Wha...?”
It really had only lasted for an instant, but
the message was loud and clear: my body was protesting the way I was
mistreating it. I wouldn’t be able to cling to consciousness for too much
longer; we needed to end this chaos as soon as possible. I moved to address the
apprentice knights. They had been healed, but their mana hadn’t yet recovered.
“Everyone, use your rejuvenation potions,” I
said. “Then check to see how many magic tools and potions remain, and—”
My instructions were cut short by a sudden
“No!” from the audience, followed shortly thereafter by high-pitched screams. I
turned to the source of the commotion and saw one of Dunkelfelger’s apprentice
knights without their highbeast, plummeting toward the ground, unconscious. He
struck the earth with a dull thud, then remained
eerily still.
“I must help him!” I shouted. “Guards!”
Upon seeing me touch the feystone for my
Pandabus, Judithe instantly created her shield. Leonore produced and mounted
her own highbeast, then looked around and started scolding the guard knights
who had yet to spring into action.
“Matthias, Laurenz! Do not idle!”
I climbed into Lessy, then made my way over to
the unconscious knight. Ideally, I wanted to bring him into Schutzaria’s
shield. Feystone armor offered a lot of protection against sudden impacts, but
he had fallen from a great height; he had probably taken a blow to the head,
and moving him in that state would be dangerous.
“Lady Rozemyne, you would risk your safety to
help a Dunkelfelger apprentice?!”
“Of course! There is a wounded person before
me—someone I can save!”
After reaching the knight, I climbed out of my
highbeast and used my ring to grant him Heilschmerz’s healing—with my own
knights guarding me with their shields, of course. A small green light rained
down on him, at which point Laurenz muttered, “Someone tell me this isn’t
happening...”
Not just Laurenz, but every single one of my
guard knights was gazing skyward. I tried to follow their eyes, and that was
when I realized—even the Dunkelfelger students here to spectate our game were
starting to join the free-for-all.
“Give me a break...” Matthias sighed, almost
sounding fearful. “Those from Dunkelfelger can hold their own, sure, but what
if the rest of the audience gets dragged into the fight?”
No sooner had the words left his mouth than
the intruders’ offensive magic tools started targeting the spectator seats.
“They’re not part of this!” I shouted.
Dunkelfelger had scholars and attendants of
the sword who were capable of protecting themselves—in fact, most of them had
already created shields—but the Ehrenfest spectators weren’t combatants. Some
were exhausted apprentice scholars who had pushed themselves to their limit
brewing magic tools, others were apprentice attendants who knew how to make
shields but didn’t have enough combat training to use them, and still others
were the younger apprentice knights who knew a bit about fighting but hadn’t yet
been able to play ditter. And, of course, there was also Charlotte, our third
archduke candidate.
“Charlotte!” I cried. But just as I was
getting hysterical, Wilfried started giving out orders from within the shield.
“All recovered apprentice knights, move to
protect our duchy’s spectators! Bring them here! Those who have yet to recover,
stay here and guard our base!”
“Understood!”
The apprentice knights who were battle-ready
mounted their highbeasts and rushed to the stands with their shields in hand. I
told myself that everything was going to be okay—that our noncombatants would
be much easier to protect once they were inside Schutzaria’s shield—and focused
on healing the wounded person in front of me.
“I... I...”
The unconscious apprentice knight began to
murmur. He came to, then leapt to his feet so suddenly that it startled me.
“You’ve been unconscious for some time,” I
said, tugging on his cape. “You need to rest, and...”
“You need not worry,” he interjected. “Your
saintly blessing has healed my wounds. I thank you from the bottom of my
heart.” He knelt to show his appreciation, then climbed onto his highbeast and
returned to the sky.
On the one hand, I was glad that he was
better... but on the other, I was a little dazed. He was so eager to leave the
safety of our shield and return to battle that I had to wonder whether he had
needed healing in the first place.
As I watched his retreating back, my vision
flickered again. This time, everything had turned monochrome, like the world
had been sapped of all color. It was probably the result of my rampant mana
usage, on top of drinking two different kinds of rejuvenation potion
back-to-back.
“You do not look well,” Leonore said to me.
“Let us return to the shield. Ride with me.” She picked me up and started
toward our base, her expression stiff. “Do you need a rejuvenation—”
“No, I have already consumed too many.”
Leonore held me a little closer. Abandoning
the fight and taking me back to the dormitory wasn’t an option; Charlotte and
the other noncombatants were being taken to our base, and their safety depended
on Schutzaria’s shield.
We returned to find that Wilfried was trying
to stop the free-for-all going on above us by any means necessary. “Lady
Hannelore, it seems inevitable that this game of ditter is going to be
nullified,” he said. “Can you ease everyone’s fighting spirit with the ritual
of the Goddess of Oceans?”
“Indeed,” she replied, having been watching
the sky with a sorrowful expression. “I see no issue with that; this game is as
good as over.”
“In that case, Lady Hannelore, while you are
performing the ritual, we will produce a large-scale waschen to ensure that no
attacks interrupt you. Isidore, Brunhilde—your mana has recovered, right?” He
got Isidore to fetch the support magic tool that Hartmut had made for us based
on Clarissa’s research, then asked some of the nearby knights to start guarding
Hannelore.
The next thing we knew, there was a loud,
metallic clang.
“Eep!”
“Wha?!”
Wilfried and I cried out in surprise, while
the surrounding apprentice knights all readied themselves and stared upward.
Even the knights who had been fighting in the sky stopped and straightened
their backs.
“ATTENTIOOON!” boomed Rauffen’s voice, echoing
throughout the arena. “Why is the Sovereign Knight’s Order here at the Royal
Academy?! And interfering with a game of ditter, of all things?! We didn’t ask
you to come, and we’ve confirmed via ordonnanz that the royal family didn’t
either!”
His outrage was unmistakable—and, indeed, a
closer inspection revealed that there were several black capes among the
rainbow that made up our intruders. I’d thought that interfering with one of
Dunkelfelger’s ditter games was a pretty bold move, but they evidently had the
support of the Sovereign Knight’s Order.
“The royal family was concerned about
Dunkelfelger potentially taking the Saint of Ehrenfest,” one of the black-caped
knights explained, his voice commanding. “Dealing with such concerns is the
duty of the Sovereign Knight’s Order.”
Knights from the lesser and middle duchies
that had evidently been rallied into joining the battle voiced their agreement.
“This is what the royal family wants.”
“If we win, we obtain the Saint of Ehrenfest.”
“You would attack on such a flimsy basis,
without a royal decree?!” Rauffen yelled, in complete disbelief. “This is
clearly abnormal!”
“The Sovereign Knight’s Order serves the Zent
himself,” the black-caped knight declared. “We work to ease his distress. We
eliminate all those who oppose him. And that includes you!”
At once, the overconfident knight moved to
strike Rauffen. The very sight of a Sovereign knight attacking a professor of
the Royal Academy—someone who had similarly moved to the Sovereignty and wore
the same black cape—had stunned us all. Rauffen alone was lucid; he dodged the
attack, then turned to the invading students.
“Everyone, stand down at once! I’ve personally
confirmed that this attack is not part of a royal
decree! If you support the Sovereign Knight’s Order knowing this, then you will
not be protected! Flee before the royal family
arrives!”
It was clear now that the attackers weren’t acting on behalf of the royal family and would most
likely be punished for their actions. Upon hearing this, the invading
apprentice knights from middle and lesser duchies scattered like baby spiders,
clearing the sky in an instant. All that remained were three black-caped
Sovereign knights and the blue-capes of Dunkelfelger.
“Interrupting ditter without a royal decree is
unprecedented behavior!” Lestilaut shouted. “Bind them at once! Have them
explain themselves before the Zent!”
Dunkelfelger’s apprentice knights acted
without hesitation, fighting to capture the black-caped knights... but the
Sovereign Knight’s Order was made up of the country’s very best—those who had
been allowed to move to the Sovereignty after having their skills recognized.
Against such capable opponents, not even Dunkelfelger’s apprentices stood a
chance.
In addition to all this, to restrain someone
with a schtappe, one needed to have more mana than the person being captured.
The only person here able to restrain the rogue knights was Lestilaut, an
archduke candidate approaching adulthood. He waited for one of the knights to
be cornered by Rauffen and several of the apprentices, then swiftly bound him
with light.
“Lady Rozemyne, could you not bind them too?”
Hannelore asked.
“Unfortunately, that would require me to get
closer. I also don’t have the mana to spare, since I need to maintain
Schutzaria’s shield.”
There was no reason for anyone to expect
anything of me at this point. I might have been able to help if my mana were
replenished, but right now, I couldn’t even bear to keep focusing on our
shield. I was starting to feel uncomfortably nauseous, like I might hurl at any
moment. To be frank, I didn’t want to expend a drop more mana.
And as I glared up at the sky, several more
black-capes arrived. Their uniform movements were no doubt those of the
Sovereign Knight’s Order. I tensed up on instinct, thinking that perhaps they
were reinforcements.
“I came here at once upon receiving Rauffen’s
ordonnanz, and what do I see?!” came Anastasius’s voice from among the new
arrivals. “What is the meaning of this?!”
It seemed that the intruders really had been
acting without orders from the royal family. Anastasius bound the two remaining
rogue black-capes, who had since been cornered, without even breaking a sweat.
That was a prince for you; he had tons of mana.
“I wish to hear your cases,” Anastasius said.
“Archduke candidates of Dunkelfelger and Ehrenfest, stay here with your
retainers and dormitory supervisors! Everyone else, disperse!”
I would have rather he scheduled this for
another day, but he had received an urgent summons from Rauffen and wanted to
get a clear picture of what had taken place here.
Anastasius’s appearance had brought the battle
to an immediate end, which was a relief—but at the same time, the calmer
atmosphere allowed my weariness to surge. I tried getting rid of Schutzaria’s
shield, dispersing the last thing that was draining my mana, but doing that
just made me feel worse. Nothing was working to make me better.
Collapsing in front of the royal family isn’t
good, right? What should I do?
“Milady!” Rihyarda shouted the moment she saw
me, having come down with Charlotte and the others. She raced over and said,
“Oh, there is death on your face. We must return to the dormitory at once.
Leave things here to Wilfried and Lady Charlotte.”
“But Prince Anastasius ordered me to stay.
Leaving now would mean defying an order from the royal family.”
Rihyarda shook her head, looking stern.
“Collapsing in front of the royal family once again would be even worse. Let us
explain our reasoning first, then return.”
At her prompting, I asked Anastasius if we
could return to our dormitory. He grimaced the moment he saw me, as if
recalling an unpleasant memory of some kind, then shooed me away.
“I can tell from looking at you that you are
unwell,” he said. “Hurry back to your dormitory.”
“I thank you. Your magnanimous heart fills me
with gratitude,” I replied, kneeling while holding back the urge to vomit.
Anastasius gave an even more irritated look.
“Someone, take her away already!”
Rihyarda picked me up at once.
“Leonore, Matthias, Brunhilde, Roderick...
Between you, you witnessed the game from the battlefield, our shield, and the
stands... Speak to Prince Anastasius in my stead...” I ordered while being
carried away. I could see Anastasius’s exasperated expression from over
Rihyarda’s shoulder.
Upon our return to the dormitory, Rihyarda
launched into a scolding.
“I saw from above; you used more than the
agreed number of rejuvenation potions, didn’t you? I understand that you
couldn’t afford to lose, but you must be more careful.
The apprentice knights can depend on your healing and their
rejuvenation potions. You can only depend on the latter, and even then, there
are limits to how many you can consume.”
The apprentice knights could chug several
rejuvenation potions, since they found even the weaker versions to be plenty
effective. In contrast, I was limited to using Ferdinand-brand potions;
anything less did effectively nothing to replenish my mana. On top of that, I
could only drink so many in quick succession, as too many potions would make me
feel sick.
“As you have likely drunk more rejuvenation
potions than your body can manage, I cannot allow you to drink any more,”
Rihyarda concluded. “All you can do now is rest until your symptoms go away.”
Rihyarda and Lieseleta quickly helped me to
get changed, then forced me into bed. I slowly shut my eyes; at last, after
such an exhausting day, I was able to get some rest.
Epilogue
At about the same time that Rozemyne was
carried away by her head attendant, the students in the audience began
filtering out as well. Left behind were the other archduke candidates, their
retainers, and the dormitory supervisors.
Hannelore was still at Ehrenfest’s base, where
Schutzaria’s shield previously stood, waiting among a sea of ocher capes. She
could only watch as Rozemyne slowly disappeared from view.
To think she would end up in such a state... Just
how far was she pushing herself during our game?
Rozemyne’s sickly pallor was a stark contrast
to the radiance she had exuded when facing down Lestilaut just moments prior,
or when defending against the attacks of the entire Sovereign Knight’s Order.
Now, she looked ashen, on the verge of passing out. Had she been maintaining
her shield through sheer willpower? Hannelore let out an awed sigh at the
thought.
No matter how you approach it, Lady Rozemyne
needed healing so much more than our apprentice she helped.
Once the noisy crowds had dispersed, the only
ones who remained were those whom Anastasius had asked to stay. They formed a
triangle with black, blue, and ocher corners, and the dormitory supervisors
stepped forward as representatives. The three infiltrators, all tightly bound,
were tossed into the center.
“Hannelore! You should be over here!”
Lestilaut called out, signaling for her return with a quick jerk of his thumb.
It was only then that Hannelore noticed everyone standing in groups; in her
confusion, she alone had ended up with the wrong duchy.
Wilfried attempted to ease her panic. “Don’t
worry, Lady Hannelore. Lord Lestilaut will understand that you only came to us
and entered Schutzaria’s shield to escape the danger.”
Despite those kind words, Hannelore offered
only a polite smile in response. Such a weak excuse simply wouldn’t hold water;
she had willingly left Dunkelfelger’s base and made her duchy lose as a result.
Lestilaut’s decision to lead the apprentice
knights to chase off the intruders had meant that Hannelore was all alone in
their base. As her team’s treasure, she was unable to move. Thankfully, the
abundance of mana she wielded as an archduke candidate meant that she could
block any attack with a full-powered geteilt. She had also been given offensive
magic tools to chase away any enemies who attempted to approach. It was her
duty to watch the battle from afar and play defensively, so when the invading duchies’
attack magic started raining down from the sky, she produced her geteilt and
took cover in its shadow.
“Lady Hannelore!” Wilfried shouted as he flew
over to her. He was carrying a shield of his own, which he was using to block
the attacks coming from above.
Hannelore slowly reached down and touched one
of the many magic tools she had with her.
“It’s too dangerous for you to be here without
any guards,” Wilfried continued. “Come to Ehrenfest. You’ll be safer inside
Rozemyne’s shield.”
Hannelore’s eyes widened. To her surprise,
Wilfried wasn’t here to encourage her to resign; he was genuinely worried about
her, showing no ulterior motives. Even so, she shook her head.
“But I cannot leave this base— Eep!”
Before she could finish her response, Wilfried
stopped an attack from the sky with his shield, letting out a grunt of
exertion. He then gave Hannelore a reassuring smile, extended a hand to her,
and said, “I would not say this if our battle were still only between our two
duchies. However, we now have intruders to deal with, and our game can’t
continue after such an interruption. Please, Lady Hannelore. Think of your
safety above all else.”
She gazed up at the blue-capes, who were
fighting to keep the intruders of so many duchies from reaching the ground.
They were clearly furious about their game being interrupted and were working
their hardest to remove the sudden threat.
The bombardment of magic attacks made it clear
that the invaders’ objective wasn’t to join the ditter game; their only focus
was stopping Dunkelfelger from obtaining the Saint of Ehrenfest. A glance over
at Rauffen was enough to see that he was entirely preoccupied with their
unwanted guests. He hadn’t announced that the game was canceled or even paused.
Just by looking at Wilfried—by staring into
his deep-green eyes and seeing his outstretched hand—Hannelore could tell that
he cared more about her safety than any game of ditter. He was wielding a
shield and nothing more; there were no weapons or magic tools in his hands.
“If our game is canceled, then we can simply
resume it some other time,” he said. “But if you get hurt? The consequences
could be devastating.”
Hannelore knew that she could easily blow
Wilfried away using the offensive magic tools she had been given. They were
powerful enough to pose a genuine risk to anyone on the receiving end of one...
yet Wilfried didn’t seem concerned about that in the slightest.
His only thoughts are about my safety.
As an archduke candidate raised in the duchy
of warfare, Hannelore seldom had people offer to protect her. She was expected
to lead her guard knights into battle, charging straight at danger rather than
letting it come to her—and whenever her efforts fell short, she was scolded for
not being strong enough. All things considered, Hannelore considered herself a
bit of a failure.
But here was Wilfried, trying to keep her
safe. Such a thing had never happened to her before, and she wasn’t being
chastised either. Her heart was racing before she realized it, and when she
gazed into his straightforward eyes, she felt strangely fuzzy inside.
“Come with me,” he said. “It’s much safer
inside Rozemyne’s shield.”
Hannelore stood up. She dispelled her shield,
willingly left her base, and took the hand being offered to her. The two then
exchanged relieved smiles.
“Very well,” she said. “I shall go to
Ehrenfest.”
By deciding to leave her base and go with
Wilfried, Hannelore had cost her duchy the game. While attacks rained down from
above and Lestilaut led the apprentice knights into battle against the
intruders, she had quietly gone to Ehrenfest for safety.
Hannelore didn’t regret her choice or her
actions, but the thought of everyone being so angry at her made her feet feel
so much heavier. She was terrified about what might happen next.
I’ve made my bed; I must now lie in it.
After encouraging herself as best she could,
Hannelore moved to join the others from her duchy. As an archduke candidate,
she needed to stand beside Lestilaut and Rauffen in the front row. Her brother
glared at her, but he couldn’t scold her in front of the royal family. That
alone was a silver lining.
Once everyone was in neat rows and kneeling
before the royal family, Anastasius demanded an explanation of the ditter game.
Rauffen and Hirschur answered, which only made the prince furrow his brow; a
simple time line of events was hard to understand in isolation.
This was no normal game of ditter, after all.
Gambling one’s engagement on a game of ditter
on the Royal Academy’s grounds wasn’t normal, nor was underage archduke
candidates leading apprentice knights—and the absurdities didn’t stop there.
Hannelore had gotten wrapped up in things even without Wilfried proposing to
her, then members of the Sovereign Knight’s Order had determined it necessary
to interfere. The whole situation was peculiar.
“Now, what caused this mess in the first
place?” Anastasius finally asked, irritated.
“You have my sincerest apologies,” Wilfried
replied without hesitation.
Anastasius raised an eyebrow slightly,
troubled to have received a “sorry” rather than an answer. Hannelore noticed
this, then turned back to Wilfried. Ehrenfest looked sick with anxiety about
being addressed by the royal family. They were so different from her brother,
Lestilaut, who had merely clicked his tongue.
Oh, but wait...
Hannelore remembered seeing Rozemyne in the
royal family’s villa. Back then, Rozemyne hadn’t looked at all shaken about
being in the presence of royalty—in fact, she had even displayed the courage to
assert her own opinion without faltering. Just watching her had given Hannelore
chills, but compared to how the others from Ehrenfest were acting now... For
the first time, she understood why her brother had said that Rozemyne was a cut
above the others in her duchy.
That side of Lady Rozemyne certainly reminds me
of my brother. Perhaps they are more alike than I originally thought.
Lestilaut may have been kneeling before
Anastasius, but he wasn’t looking down at the ground; instead, he was looking
the prince square in the face, strength in his eyes, showing that he had no
intention of backing down.
“I also have a question,” Lestilaut said. “Why
are you here, Prince Anastasius? Should matters of the
Royal Academy not fall to Prince Hildebrand?”
In essence, Lestilaut was refusing to answer
to anyone but the person in charge. He was right that Anastasius had not
received the king’s permission to oversee the Royal Academy—in fact, one could
argue that he was overstepping the bounds of his authority simply by being
here. This was far from Lestilaut doing Hildebrand a favor, however; his true
intention was to bring forth the younger royal, who would be easier to
manipulate.
No, Brother! This is not what you want!
After interacting with Hildebrand during their
tea party and at the underground archive, Hannelore had sensed that the younger
prince admired—and perhaps even loved—Rozemyne. Having him arbitrate a game of
ditter intended to decide his first crush’s future husband would only cause
problems.
Hannelore frantically shook her head, silently
imploring Anastasius to disregard her brother’s demand. The prince met her
gaze, then gave a curt nod, his arms crossed.
“Hildebrand would find this incident
troublesome to deal with,” Anastasius said. “The Zent has instructed that I
temporarily take his place.”
Lestilaut sniffed dismissively, then adopted
the broad smile he used when socializing. “In that case, I would also like to
know the meaning behind this mess. We went through all the procedures necessary
to use these grounds for ditter.” He glared at one of the restrained knights.
“For what folly did the Sovereign Knight’s Order interfere with our holy game?”
It was a very impolite way of speaking to a
royal—disrespectful, even—but Lestilaut was justified in his anger. The
Sovereign Knight’s Order had tempted middle and lesser duchies into interfering
with a game of ditter, all so that Rozemyne would not end up in Dunkelfelger’s
hands.
“It was the Sovereign Knight’s Order that
caused problems, not us,” Lestilaut continued. “I intend to petition the king
for an explanation as to why our game was interrupted, an admission that he
failed to keep his knights under control, and a guarantee that these three
rogues will receive the strictest punishment.”
“What?! Lord Lestilaut, what are you saying?!”
This exclamation came not from Anastasius, but
from Wilfried. Ehrenfest appeared more shocked than anyone else.
Lestilaut blinked as if confused. “What issue
do you have with that? If any other Knight’s Order acted in this manner, their
archduke would be reprimanded for mismanaging them. In the case of the
Sovereign Knight’s Order, the royal family is responsible.”
“What issue...?” Wilfried repeated. “I... I
mean to say, we do not need to treat this so serious—”
“But we do. They defiled a holy game of
ditter—one that would have decided the fate of our archduke candidates.”
Now that they prayed to the gods and received
blessings before playing ditter, those from Dunkelfelger had started to deify
the sport even more than before. Interfering with a game being offered to the
gods was equivalent to obstructing a religious ceremony or a dedication whirl.
This is... strange. Do those of Ehrenfest not
consider it disrespectful to the gods for a religious ceremony to have been
interrupted...?
As far as Hannelore could tell from Rozemyne’s
rituals in the Royal Academy, Ehrenfest performed religious ceremonies
considerably more often than Dunkelfelger. The duchy was closer to the gods and
more accustomed to receiving divine protections and blessings... yet its
representatives didn’t seem at all annoyed about the interruption. Even though
they respected the gods more than the royal family did, they were being
unusually calm.
Lestilaut continued, “Can you explain why none
of you seem at all outraged about all this? I seem to recall that your
apprentice knights made no effort to help disperse the intruders...”
“We had many wounded; it is only obvious that
we would prioritize healing them and evacuating the noncombatants. Rather, I
think you should explain how you could leave Lady
Hannelore in such a dangerous place to—”
“Enough, both of you,” Anastasius said,
stepping in before the discussion could become an argument. He then faced down
Lestilaut with a piercing stare. “Indeed, these knights acted without an order
from the royal family, and we intend to question them as to why. However,
Lestilaut, I also have a question for you. As you said, you went through the
proper channels for your game of ditter, but I remember your document
describing it as the kind played during training. There was no mention of the
outcome deciding the engagements of any archduke candidates. Rozemyne’s
engagement to Wilfried already has the king’s approval, so it seems to me that
you used underhanded means to make this happen. Am I correct?”
When requesting the use of the training
grounds, one could get approval simply by writing that it was for ditter; there
was no need to specify the kind of ditter or the reason it was being played.
This was news to Hannelore, but Lestilaut had apparently exploited this
loophole to achieve something that was otherwise unprecedented.
Lestilaut shook his head. “I thought that you,
of all people, would understand my feelings, Prince Anastasius. After all, you
employed all manner of schemes to obtain your own Geduldh.”
Please, no! It’s true, but saying that is so
impertinent!
Under normal circumstances, by the king’s
decree, Eglantine’s chosen partner should have become the next king. Lestilaut
was protesting criticism from the prince who had done everything in his power
to overturn that declaration.
Hannelore felt an uncomfortable pang in her
stomach. She didn’t want to be next to her brother right now.
“I can understand the desire to obtain your
Geduldh, but trying to decide archduke candidates’ fate through ditter, of all
things, is outright unthinkable. And without even allowing the archdukes to
discuss matters first...”
“Oh...? Are you looking down on ditter, by
chance, Prince Anastasius?” Lestilaut asked, his voice getting sharper.
Two years ago, Rozemyne’s schemes had caused a
lot of excitement, and these feelings had only continued to build when
Dunkelfelger’s history was shared a year later. This year, with A Ditter Story and the ritual to obtain true blessings,
those from Dunkelfelger had come to appreciate and even worship ditter more
than ever before.
Anastasius was understandably oblivious to
these private affairs, but he immediately realized that his words had caused
offense to someone with very good reason to criticize the Sovereign Knight’s
Order. “No, that is far from my intention,” he said. “However, if you wish to
redo your game that was disrupted by the Sovereign Knight’s Order, then I would
ask that the aubs of both duchies be allowed to decide the terms themselves.”
“A rematch would be more disrespectful to
ditter and the gods than anything else,” Lestilaut replied flatly. “We cannot
overturn the results of a game played with divine blessings, nor do I intend
to.”
“Hold on,” Wilfried said. “We could not
possibly consider our game valid after what happened...”
“But the results are clear. Hannelore left our
base of her own will.”
“Yes, to escape danger. I invited her into
Schutzaria’s shield for her own safety. At first, she refused, and—”
“Silence! The match was decided the moment our
treasure left our base. Dunkelfelger lost. Ehrenfest won. I will not tolerate
any further protest.”
After saying his piece, Lestilaut glanced over
at Hannelore, his eyes narrowed slightly in what might have been a glare. His
expression indicated that he wanted to demand answers from her—to know why she had chosen to leave their base—but was desperately
suppressing the urge.
Hannelore averted her gaze, trying to escape
her brother’s wrath. It wasn’t long before her eyes wandered to Wilfried. He
was pale-faced, doubtless overcome with guilt; after all, he had assured
Hannelore that they would be repeating the match.
“Prince Anastasius, we do not dispute the
results of our ditter game,” Lestilaut said. “However, we of Dunkelfelger
request the right to participate in the questioning and sentencing of those
three knights. The last thing we would want is for them to receive punishments
that do not match the severity of their crime.”
Anastasius grimaced at the implicit accusation
that the royal family would do something so heinous. Before he could speak,
however, Lestilaut continued.
“Luckily, this ditter match was performed in
the Royal Academy. If we put the matter to rest now, then we can avoid having
to involve every archduke during the Archduke Conference. The same goes for the
pitiable apprentice knights whom the Sovereign Knight’s Order incited.”
Lestilaut was soon to graduate, meaning he was
fully capable of participating in the next Archduke Conference and airing the
misdeeds of the Sovereign Knight’s Order—misdeeds that had taken place in the
Royal Academy, where adults weren’t supposed to interfere. From there, he could
put pressure on the archdukes of the middle and lesser duchies that had
participated.
If the royal family had
ordered this unthinkable act, then they certainly wouldn’t want more attention
drawn to it. Lestilaut was exploiting this fact... which made Hannelore sigh.
He who lives in a glass house, Brother... You
would not want word to spread that you pressured Ehrenfest into a game of
ditter, hoping to cancel Lady Rozemyne’s engagement, only to ultimately lose.
Lestilaut was effectively haggling with the
royal family while trying to push his own vulnerability out of sight. Hannelore
could only dream of being so shamelessly bold.
“I recognize Dunkelfelger’s request,”
Anastasius said. “Does Ehrenfest have anything to say?”
“Ah...”
Wilfried exchanged a few words with his
retainers, then replied, “No, Ehrenfest will obey the royal family’s decision.”
They had resolved to demonstrate their fealty rather than kick up a fuss.
“I see. Now, with all that has been said,
allow me to make one thing clear: if we learn of any further battles for
Rozemyne, we of the royal family will settle things permanently by securing her
ourselves. We will accept no debate.”
Not just Ehrenfest, but everyone present
gasped at this announcement.
Anastasius continued, “Wilfried, you should
have thought of a means to avoid this match before you received the challenge
in the first place. You are Rozemyne’s fiancé—you could have spoken to the
royal family and fought against Dunkelfelger’s demands. By accepting their
terms, you have left yourself with no choice but to accept challenges from any
other top-ranking duchies targeting Rozemyne. Do you understand this?”
Ehrenfest’s accumulating trends, the Royal
Academy’s Dedication Ritual, the joint research projects to be announced during
the Interduchy Tournament... With so many accomplishments under her belt,
Rozemyne’s perceived value and popularity were rising drastically. The king had
approved of her engagement, but this incident with Dunkelfelger had set a
troublesome precedent, one that Anastasius believed would entice other duchies
to attempt to claim her. In truth, it had already begun—that the Sovereign Knight’s
Order had managed to persuade lesser and middle duchies was evidence enough. It
wasn’t hard to imagine what would come of all this.
“You have prevailed this time, Wilfried, but
you cannot rely on it happening again,” Anastasius warned. “Not all challenges
will take place in the form of ditter. Whether or not Rozemyne stays in
Ehrenfest will depend entirely on how you act as her fiancé and as the next
archduke. Next time, you must do better.”
Wilfried hung his head. As the gathering came
to an end, he couldn’t help but feel dejected.
Immediately upon returning to the Dunkelfelger
Dormitory, Hannelore was surrounded by Lestilaut and the others.
“Hannelore, why did you willingly leave our
base?” Lestilaut asked. “During last year’s Interduchy Tournament, you were
praised extensively for having defied ditter’s infamous Lord of Evil. Nobody
would believe that you gave up to escape danger. What did you have to gain?”
At once, a vivid image flashed through
Hannelore’s mind. She could see Wilfried, his dark-green eyes brimming with
worry, his hand so warmly extended. Her brother was right; she had not left
their base to flee from danger.
“I want to go to Ehrenfest,” she finally
answered.
Had the offer come from anyone else, Hannelore
knew she would not have taken their hand. She wanted someone who would fight to
protect her, even when there was so much danger to overcome.
“So you exploited Lord Lestilaut’s ditter game
for the sake of your own love,” Cordula remarked, expressing her understanding.
“Even as your head attendant, I would never have predicted such a move, milady.
Your growth is splendid.”
Hannelore turned to her, taken aback. She
wanted to dispute the claim, but she couldn’t bring herself to speak. As a
result, everyone accepted Cordula’s interpretation as fact.
But, love...? Is that really what I’m feeling?
Hannelore had abandoned her base so that she
could take Wilfried’s hand—so that she could go to Ehrenfest—but she didn’t
feel that she could puff out her chest and declare she was in love. Her
feelings were something more vague that she couldn’t quite express. As she
mulled it over, the surrounding apprentice knights began reflecting on the game
of ditter.
“I didn’t know that Lady Hannelore wanted to
marry into Ehrenfest.”
“If we’d had even a suspicion, I wouldn’t have
left her alone in our base...”
“We lost this time due to Lord Lestilaut’s
negligence and poor information gathering.”
Nobody attacked Hannelore for her actions;
their duchy had tasted defeat, but as far as anyone was concerned, she had
achieved a personal victory and obtained the future she desired. Plus, this
outcome would still secure them a connection with Ehrenfest. Lestilaut was
displeased about having lost, but for Hannelore and the duchy as a whole, the
game had still proven beneficial.
“Why did you not tell us sooner?” Lestilaut
asked. “Were you colluding with Rozemyne? And when did you even begin to have
feelings for Wilfried?”
Hannelore couldn’t have told them before the
game; her heart had only changed when she saw Wilfried offering her his hand.
She had ended up hiding important information from the others in her duchy, but
she had done so entirely by accident. Lestilaut himself, on the other hand, had
done the same deliberately. That was more problematic, in Hannelore’s opinion.
“Well, I did not know you wished to acquire
Lady Rozemyne until you began taunting Lord Wilfried at our tea party, Brother.
Not to mention, you are the one who made me resolve to marry into Ehrenfest.”
Lestilaut fell silent. Rozemyne had suggested
that Hannelore marry Wilfried as his second wife if Dunkelfelger lost, but only
because she had wanted to avoid playing ditter entirely. Lestilaut had ignored
that and accepted the condition—and when Hannelore had tried pleading with him
to reconsider, he had demanded that she be silent.
“Perhaps, but I did not think you wanted to marry into Ehrenfest,” Lestilaut groaned. “It is
one thing to obtain a groom, but Ehrenfest places far too low in the rankings
for a Dunkelfelger archduke candidate.”
One of his retainers patted him on the back.
“Unfortunately, the results are what they are.”
“Yes, I know. This is my fault for not
thinking that my little sister might surpass me. This is the result that she
wanted.”
He sighed, but he made no attempt to overturn
the results of their ditter game. His incessant grumbling was ultimately
because he knew he would need to send a report home detailing everything that
had transpired. His parents would surely chastise him for being soft on his
family and not gathering intelligence properly.
Hannelore looked at her hand, and only then
did she realize she had unwittingly extended her arm. She could remember
Wilfried reaching out to her, and as she thought about the moment when their
hands had met, a pleasant warmth spread through her chest.
There was such a broad, gentle smile on
Hannelore’s face that everyone around her took in a sharp breath.
The Saint’s Ritual
“Lueuradi, is everything ready?”
Today, I was going to participate in the
ritual that Ehrenfest was performing as part of their joint research. I
consulted my board of instructions for the umpteenth time; it had been given to
me by Lady Muriella of Ehrenfest, with whom I often discussed Royal Academy Love Stories.
“Yes, Big Sister. I have cleansed myself, as
instructed, and prepared the necessary rejuvenation potions. I was also able to
memorize the prayer.”
“The prayer is almost the same as the one
spoken during the third-year divine protections ritual, is it not?” my older
sister asked. “Have you not had yours yet, Lueuradi? Don’t tell me you’ve yet
to learn the names of the gods. Ehrenfest’s laynobles passed on their first
day, so if a Jossbrenner apprentice archscholar hasn’t managed even that
much...”
She looked exasperated but memorizing the
names of all the gods was no easy feat. I also wasn’t keen on her comparing me
to the students of Ehrenfest; their third-years had passed every single one of
their written lessons on the first day since joining the Academy. Lady
Rozemyne, the archduke candidate leading them, was blazing through her
practical lessons on top of that, so using her as the benchmark really didn’t
seem fair.
“You are slow to finish your classes, and you
cannot even gather proper intelligence...” my sister concluded.
“Oh, but Sister—you failed to gather
intelligence on Lady Rozemyne as well, did you not?” I retorted, looking up
with a pout. There was no reason for me to tolerate her brassy remarks when her
own efforts had produced no meaningful results.
Back when Lady Rozemyne was a first-year, my
sister had attempted to gather information about her—only to find that Lady
Rozemyne’s retainer, Hartmut, had exercised complete control over what was
accessible. The most one could obtain was lengthy, boastful speeches that
amounted to little more than “She is the Saint of Ehrenfest, after all.” My
sister had tried again during her second year, only to be shooed away by Lady
Clarissa of Dunkelfelger, who had asserted that she
was Hartmut’s escort.
I continued, “Though your attempts
all ended in failure, Sister, I was able to find out
Lady Rozemyne’s favorite stories and discover her plans for returning to her
duchy. Lord Hartmut and Lady Philine told me all. I also learned from a
conversation between Lord Wilfried and Lady Hannelore that she is forming bonds
with top-ranking duchies by lending them books. And now, I am rather close
friends with Lady Muriella.”
Since her first year at the Royal Academy,
Lady Rozemyne had been buying stories from other duchies at a high price. One
of our own laynobles had wanted to ask what her favorite stories were, hoping
to secure as much money as possible—but as the person in charge of acquiring
the stories was an archnoble, they had asked me to accompany them. That had
marked the beginning of my visits to the library, and from there, I was able to
gain information from Lord Hartmut and Lady Philine.
It seems that Lady Rozemyne prefers love stories.
They are said to be “cash cows,” though I cannot say I am familiar with the
term.
I could tell that Lady Rozemyne and I would
become fast friends, were we ever to meet. I, too, had a particular fondness
for love stories. I was already getting along well with Lady Muriella, a new
retainer of Lady Rozemyne’s whom Lady Philine had introduced me to. She was
especially passionate about love stories, and that was often where our
conversations headed. Gathering information quickly fell by the wayside.
I need to befriend Lady Rozemyne as well so that
I might read Ehrenfest’s love stories sooner than anyone else.
As much as I enjoyed asking Lady Muriella
about what stories awaited me in the next volume, as expected, I much preferred
the thought of reading them myself. This year, I was lucky enough to be
borrowing a volume from Lady Charlotte—and quite early on, might I add—but it
wasn’t the newest volume, and I couldn’t borrow it whenever I wanted.
Lady Muriella says the new volume has a wondrous
scene where the God of Darkness spreads his sleeve at the gazebo where the
Goddess of Time plays tricks, shielding the Goddess of Light. Aah, when will I
be able to read it?
“Would you please stop sighing about how you
wish to wed into Ehrenfest to read new books?” my sister said. “Accept reality.
Ehrenfest has so many honor students and so much attention being drawn to it
these days that securing a husband from there won’t be easy. Things are not as
they were years ago.”
“Perhaps I would have a better chance marrying
an Ehrenfest mednoble?”
“Mother and Father only know Ehrenfest from
when it was at the bottom of the rankings; they would never permit you to marry
a mednoble from there. Again, stop being so wishy-washy. It is time to go to
the auditorium.”
Fairziere called over Lustlaune, another
apprentice archscholar. Lustlaune, my big sister, and I were the only students
from Jossbrenner due to participate in this joint research.
Though reaching this day was by no means easy.
My eyes grew distant as I reflected on
everything that had occurred.
Ehrenfest was a middle duchy that had drifted
around the bottom of the rankings for as long as anyone could remember, only to
abruptly shoot up after getting through the civil war. Compared to other
duchies, its harvest was steady and growing by the year, proof enough that its
lands were readily supplied with mana. Its position at the Royal Academy had
also risen steadily over the past five or six years. Initially, only its
first-years had obtained better grades—most noticeably in their written
lessons—and the other duchies had mocked them for setting standards they wouldn’t
be able to maintain.
Of course, this had all taken place before I
joined the Academy, back when Jossbrenner still ranked above Ehrenfest.
Despite the constant gibes from other duchies,
some of Ehrenfest’s students had started to perform better in practical lessons
as well, even boasting larger mana capacities than was expected for a middle
duchy. It wasn’t long before half of their student population was earning
favorable grades, and rumors quickly spread that they were using some new,
highly effective mana compression method.
Lady Rozemyne’s attendance at the Royal
Academy drew even more attention to Ehrenfest, especially when every single
Ehrenfest student in her year passed their written lessons on the first day.
She also brought with her a number of new trends, which was interesting in
itself. It wasn’t always the case that new goods introduced by middle or lesser
duchies became fashionable; without the assistance and publicity of greater
duchies, most fizzled out as mere curiosities.
Some time later, before socializing season,
Lady Rozemyne took ill and returned to Ehrenfest. She became the subject of
mockery at many middle- and lesser-duchy tea parties, during which participants
would don sarcastic smiles and say that it would be “oh so nice” for her if the
greater duchies picked up her trends.
And then came Ehrenfest’s own tea party, held
at the end of the year and open to all other duchies. On this memorable
occasion, it was revealed that Lady Rozemyne had connections to top-ranking
duchies and the royal family. Prince Anastasius
purchased an Ehrenfest hairpin, and Lady Eglantine personally received a jar of
the product that makes one’s hair glossy.
Oh, how the middle and lesser duchies were
taken aback. Oh, how they panicked.
I do not know the details firsthand—it was my
sister who attended as Jossbrenner’s representative—but it was apparently quite
the experience. Most notable of all was when Lady Rozemyne collapsed partway
through.
They had scrambled to gather information about
Lady Rozemyne, conscious that the Interduchy Tournament was right around the
corner, only to find themselves unable to speak with any Ehrenfest students.
The most optimistic among them believed that they might have a chance during
the tournament itself, but Lady Rozemyne did not attend due to poor health. On
top of that, Ehrenfest’s previously barren socializing spot was suddenly
teeming with the archdukes of greater duchies, meaning that those of middle and
lesser duchies were unable to properly approach.
In her second year, Lady Rozemyne once again
blazed through her classes before vanishing. Lady Charlotte took over
Ehrenfest’s socializing season in her absence.
Even during that year’s Interduchy Tournament,
Lady Rozemyne was inaccessible to the masses. She and Lord Ferdinand were busy
handling Dunkelfelger, so Lord Wilfried and Lady Charlotte hosted the middle
and lesser duchies instead. Lady Rozemyne then ended up leaving the awards
ceremony following the attack and did not attend the coming-of-age ceremony the
next day.
Despite standing out so much due to looking
like a seven-year-old, Lady Rozemyne was seldom seen around the Royal Academy.
This year, however, she was finally staying at
the Royal Academy for socializing season. It was our first opportunity to speak
with her. She gave soft, entertained smiles during discussions about books, and
faltered with embarrassment when asked about the real-life love story that she
was experiencing... but when it came to the negative rumors about Aub
Ehrenfest, she always gave sad looks.
According to the stories exchanged during the
Archduke Conference, Aub Ehrenfest was much harsher on his adopted daughter
than on his blood children. Lady Rozemyne had apparently spent such a long time
locked away in the temple that she could only stay at the Royal Academy for
brief stints. It must have been very hard on her.
Lady Rozemyne denied the rumors, but everyone
knew that she had returned to Ehrenfest while her siblings, the archduke’s
blood children, had gotten to participate in socializing season. If they were
truly seen as equals, then all three of them would have been made to leave.
“So, Lady Rozemyne. Forget about the temple; I
wish to discuss your joint research. What manner of research are you doing with
the greater duchies?” asked Lady Murrenreue, an archduke candidate from
Immerdink. She had interrupted Lady Rozemyne’s conversation about temple
rituals to very uncouthly ask to join her research with Dunkelfelger.
During last year’s Interduchy Tournament, an
Immerdink archnoble had accidentally attacked Lady Rozemyne—a blunder for which
they had been thoroughly chastised. Lady Murrenreue had mentioned during a
previous tea party that “nobody acknowledged all the suffering Lady Rozemyne
put Immerdink through,” so this was an especially shameless heel turn.
Lady Rozemyne was not to blame for the many
casualties Immerdink had suffered during the ternisbefallen attack nor for
their lower position in the duchy rankings after their archnoble was scolded.
But as others moved to stop Lady Murrenreue, Lady Rozemyne, who had fallen into
thought, suddenly looked up and smiled.
“As part of our joint research, Ehrenfest will
be demonstrating a religious ceremony. Would you care to join? If we can obtain
permission from Dunkelfelger, that is.”
“Oh my. You would allow me to?”
You are being too agreeable, Lady Rozemyne.
I was exasperated, but the representatives of
other duchies flocked to join as well. Immerdink’s participation had opened a
floodgate of sorts, with everyone now convinced that they should also get to
take part.
Naturally, I made sure to get involved too.
“Sister, we may be able to participate in
Ehrenfest and Dunkelfelger’s joint research!”
“Well done, Lueuradi.”
Jossbrenner wasted no time before reaching out
to Dunkelfelger, though we received a most unusual response: “Play us in
ditter, then!” I was unsure what the sport had to do with their joint research
project, but it was apparently essential.
I didn’t have the authority to answer a ditter
challenge from another duchy on my own, so we consulted our aub. We were told
to accept—our priority was securing ourselves a position in Ehrenfest’s
religious ceremony.
And so, we sent our apprentice knights to take
on Dunkelfelger.
“Lady Lueuradi, it seems that Dunkelfelger
wanted to play treasure-stealing ditter specifically.”
“That old variant?”
Treasure-stealing ditter was so old-fashioned
that it had come up only briefly during class; we had never even attempted it
during our practical lessons. We ended up facing Dunkelfelger alongside other
middle and lesser duchies, but we still suffered defeat.
Now, our duchy’s students were so exhausted
that we needed rejuvenation potions en masse. This wasn’t something we had
accounted for—speed ditter never required so much mana—so it was quite a
serious error on our part.
“Our gathering spot is rather sparse at
present, and not many good ingredients can be found there...” I mused aloud. We
had painfully little to work with, and we would need to invest a lot of our
mana to brew the very potions intended to restore it. The apprentice scholars
would all make them together, but they could not force the apprentice knights
to pay them for their efforts.
I decided to petition the aub for his
opinion—after all, these unexpected costs had resulted from his order. He
covered the necessary expenses for our rejuvenation potions, but that greatly
reduced the amount of money we had available for the Interduchy Tournament.
Thanks to the hard work of our duchy’s
apprentice knights, Dunkelfelger allowed three of us to participate in the
joint research, as we had requested. We now needed to deliver permission boards
to an Ehrenfest apprentice scholar, who would then tell us the details of our
participation.
Thus, I contacted Lady Muriella.
“What?” I said. “We will need rejuvenation
potions to participate in the joint research?”
“Indeed,” Lady Muriella replied. “Lady
Rozemyne said the ceremony will require mana, so those who do not bring any
will surely struggle.”
This revelation left me quite vexed. We had
received an order from our aub and gotten our apprentice knights to work so
hard for our sake, so we more or less had to
participate in the ceremony. But at the same time, I wanted to avoid using any
more mana outside of classes, or needing more rejuvenation potions.
Perhaps it would have been wise to take after
Immerdink and step down the moment ditter became involved.
Immerdink had suffered more casualties during
last year’s ternisbefallen attack than any other duchy, leaving them with far
fewer apprentice knights than was expected from a territory of their size. It
was said that they had simply bowed out, unable to participate in the ditter.
“Jossbrenner does not have leeway as Ehrenfest
does,” I said. “Is participating in this joint research truly worth depleting
our mana even further?”
Lady Muriella looked somewhat confused. “I do
not know about the leeway of other duchies, but I believe it is worth seeing
one of Lady Rozemyne’s ceremonies. You will come to understand what it means to
offer prayers to the gods and to be loved by them in turn.” Her green eyes
usually sparkled with excitement for love stories, but that emotion was gone,
replaced with an uncompromising seriousness.
After taking a sharp breath, I resolved to
participate in Ehrenfest’s joint research.
Over two hundred people were gathered in the
auditorium. The crowd was shockingly large, which made me even more uneasy
about the fact that only two other people wore my duchy’s cream-colored cape.
I reached out and tugged on my elder sister’s
cape. “Sister, will this many people be participating in the joint research?”
“Most archduke candidates are here, so I
imagine the crowd is largely made up of their retainers. There will not be this
many participants in practice.”
My understanding of archduke candidates being
followed by retainers was spotty at best. My sister had served Jossbrenner’s
last archduke candidate to graduate, so she had that experience to draw from,
but said candidate had gone by the time I entered the Royal Academy, and we had
no others here to speak of.
Even when working in the castle, I am rarely
involved with archduke candidates.
“Um, Lady Fairziere... is that not the
Sovereign Knight’s Order?” Lustlaune asked, pointing to the back of the
auditorium, at the door leading to the Farthest Hall where we obtained our
schtappes. Indeed, for some reason, there were black-cloaked Sovereign knights
lined up there. Several among them even appeared to have been in battle not
long ago; they had doubtless recovered themselves using rejuvenation potions or
something of the sort, but their damaged clothing spoke volumes.
“What happened, I wonder...?”
“You are the one in charge of this little
effort, Lueuradi,” my sister said, looking tense. “If you do not know the
answer, then how would I?”
It was impossible to predict what would happen
when Dunkelfelger and Ehrenfest were involved. Thinking about it, gathering
this many people in the auditorium for joint research was abnormal to begin
with.
Ehrenfest and Dunkelfelger students dispersed
throughout the crowd, making a loud announcement: “The ritual will take place
through the door, in the Farthest Hall. Participants must display their
permission form. Those without one will not be allowed in. Please line up one
by one.” I saw Lady Philine and Lady Muriella among them.
Klassenberg the First was the first to enter.
As they had no archduke candidates present at the Royal Academy, five of their
apprentice archscholars were participating instead. They all stopped right
outside the door for some reason, which was unusual to me.
The archduke candidates of Dunkelfelger the
Second were also participating in the joint research, so they were inside
already. Drewanchel the Third followed after Klassenberg... but then there was
a commotion.
“What do you mean I cannot enter?! I am Lord
Ortwin’s guard knight!”
“Those without permission forms will not
receive entry. Guard knights are no exception.”
The guard knight was now brimming with anger.
“Do you really think anyone will—”
“Those without a form will not be allowed
inside,” came a voice as those of the Sovereign Knight’s Order stepped forward.
“Stand down.” They were unmistakably displeased and staring daggers at the
disruptive student.
Lord Ortwin’s guard knight bit his lip, then
backed away to rejoin the other knights. I never would have thought that
retainers wouldn’t be allowed to follow their lords or ladies into the Farthest
Hall.
“What are they thinking, separating guard
knights from their charges?” I asked, gripping my own permission form with
unease. Before I could ponder the matter further, however, I spotted another
student being led away from the entrance, still gripping her form. Given her
light-violet cape, she must have been from Ahrensbach.
Apprentice knights from Ehrenfest and
Dunkelfelger were waving the girl out of the auditorium. “As guard knights
cannot attend the ritual, we cannot allow those who may pose a threat to go
inside,” one said.
“This isn’t right!” the girl cried. “I’m not
malicious in the slightest! It’s Lady Rozemyne! This is all a plot by Lady
Rozemyne!”
“You will receive a chance to state your
case.”
The Sovereign Knight’s Order took the girl
from the apprentice knights, and she left the room with a stiff expression.
“Wh-What happened there?” I asked.
Lustlaune quietly shook her head. “I do not
know. However, if I were to extrapolate from her statements, I would assume
they have something that can detect dangerous individuals.”
“They need to ensure the students are safe
without their guard knights,” my sister whispered, “and I suppose the best
approach is to remove all those with malicious intentions. None from
Klassenberg or Drewanchel have been refused entry.” Her eyes wandered to a
nearby group of lesser-duchy students; some of them spread many negative rumors
about Ehrenfest during tea parties and wore their envy on their sleeves.
I complained about needing so many rejuvenation
potions, but... that won’t be considered malice, will it?!
My heart pounded in my chest as I awaited my
turn. Each participant was stopped at the entrance, as we had already seen, but
only two of the five Ahrensbach apprentice scholars were turned away.
“I wonder what is on the other side of that
door,” I said. “Everyone stops before passing through.” The door was open, but
a complexly colored sheet of mana obscured whatever was beyond it.
Soon enough, it was my sister’s turn to enter.
She stopped in place, like all those before her had done, and then she was
gone.
“Next,” Lady Philine called.
I advanced, clutching my permission form to my
chest. The Sovereign knights stationed on either side of the door were
exceedingly terrifying, but I took care to keep my eyes forward; this was no
time to be gazing down at my feet.
I passed through the film, saw the inside of
the Farthest Hall, and stopped as everyone else had.
What’s going on?! Nobody told me so many members
of the royal family were going to be here!
My first sight upon entering was the royal
family lined up within a yellow, translucent dome. In front of them was Lady
Rozemyne, wearing her High Bishop robes.
I froze in place, so stunned that I thought my
heart might stop. Only when someone beside me asked for my permission form was
I pulled from my stupor. I passed the board to Lady Clarissa of Dunkelfelger,
still somewhat dazed.
“This is Schutzaria’s shield,” Lady Rozemyne
explained. “It denies entry to all those with malicious intent. As guard
knights cannot attend the ritual, we are having to filter the students like so.
Please go inside and greet everyone.”
She then stepped to the side, revealing Lady
Eglantine, Prince Anastasius, Lady Adolphine, Prince Sigiswald, Lady Nahelache,
and King Trauerqual himself. Never in my wildest dreams had it occurred to me
that I, an archnoble from a middle duchy, would one day interact with the royal
family.
King Trauerqual did not have a Grutrissheit,
so the duchies on the losing side of the civil war often accused him of being
unfit to rule. Still, his royal presence could not be denied.
I resisted the shaking of my legs and slowly
knelt before the king. “I am Lueuradi of Jossbrenner. May I pray for a blessing
in appreciation of this serendipitous meeting, ordained by the harsh judgment
of Ewigeliebe the God of Life?”
“You may.”
His voice was kinder than I’d expected.
Feeling a bit relieved, I gave the blessing and then my greeting: “I am honored
from the bottom of my heart to have this opportunity to meet you, Zent
Trauerqual.”
“You have my thanks for your assistance on
this day, Lueuradi.”
Never had I expected the king to speak my name
and express to me his gratitude. It was far too great of an honor for an
archnoble to receive; had Lady Rozemyne not been there to urge me to my feet, I
actually might have cried.
“Lady Lueuradi, Hartmut will guide you from
here.”
I stood up at Lady Rozemyne’s prompting and
saw Lord Hartmut, clad in the robes of a blue priest. His attire made no sense;
he was a noble who had graduated from the Royal Academy. I had just managed to
adjust to my shock of seeing the royal family, but now I was starting to feel
dizzy all over again.
“Lord Hartmut...” I said. “That outfit...”
“I am Ehrenfest’s High Priest—one who serves
Lady Rozemyne, our High Bishop. Furthermore, I am not the only one wearing
robes; Lord Wilfried and Lady Charlotte are as well. Today is a special
occasion. Under normal circumstances, only priests and shrine maidens dressed
in blue robes may witness Lady Rozemyne’s Dedication Ritual.”
Most others would mock Lord Hartmut’s temple
robes, but he was looking down at them proudly. His expression was exactly as I
remembered it from last year—the same smile that he wore when extolling Lady
Rozemyne’s virtues. I could imagine him gleefully visiting the temple, but that
was unthinkable for most nobles.
I shook my head to dispel the images.
“Wait here, if you would,” Lord Hartmut said,
having led me to where my elder sister was standing atop a red carpet. The
top-ranking duchies were closest to the center, where there was a circular
space, with the lowest-ranking duchies being farthest away. It wasn’t a
complete circle, and the vacant area was presumably where the royal family
would stand once everyone had greeted them.
“It appears that Ehrenfest’s archduke
candidates really do all go to the temple...” my sister whispered after Lord
Hartmut went to fetch Lustlaune, who had entered after me.
Looking around the room revealed that, as Lord
Hartmut had suggested, Lord Wilfried and Lady Charlotte were both dressed in
blue robes. The clothes weren’t being borrowed for the sake of appearances
either; the fit was perfect, even for two archduke candidates who were still
growing, and this didn’t look like their first time being worn.
I nodded in response to my sister and replied
in an equally low voice, “Putting aside the rumors that Aub Ehrenfest treats
his blood children better, there is no mistaking that they all perform
religious ceremonies.”
All of a sudden, a stiff breeze swept through
the room. I turned to see that someone had been repelled by the shield
protecting the royal family and was now being carried away by Ehrenfest’s and
Dunkelfelger’s apprentice knights.
“I hold no malice!” the rejected student
declared.
“Perhaps your venom is directed at me rather
than the royal family,” Lady Rozemyne said. “Either way, I must ask that you
sit this one out. We cannot afford to have those who may be a threat in a
ceremonial hall without guard knights.”
So, Lustlaune and my sister had assumed
correctly—those who were refused entry held malice toward either Lady Rozemyne
or the royal family. But how could anyone prove such emotions? How could they
reject participants with such confidence?
“Is this truly okay?” I asked. “What if these
suspicions of malice turn out to be false? Those who were outed will have been
wrongly accused in front of the royal family.”
“So you say, but they were clearly knocked
back by the shield,” Lustlaune said. “Among the top-ranking duchies, only two
from Ahrensbach were refused entry, and they were both clearly hostile to Lady
Rozemyne. This person was from a losing duchy. I expect this will not be the
last rejection we see today.”
And she was right. Many others who were
subsequently knocked away by the shield were from duchies that had fallen down
the ranks after the civil war or spent tea parties complaining about their
lands being ravaged. I assumed they were antagonistic to the royal family.
Though hopefully they do not resent Lady Rozemyne
for revealing those negative feelings.
After several more students were refused, the
lengthy entrance procedure finally concluded. Ehrenfest’s and Dunkelfelger’s
apprentice knights left the room, leaving the two Dunkelfelger archduke
candidates at the entrance. The apprentice scholars then closed the door and
stood among us.
“Please move to the center,” Lady Rozemyne
said.
One by one, those of the royal family moved to
the center of the carpet. Lady Rozemyne waited for them to take their
positions, then dispelled Schutzaria’s shield.
“The ritual will now begin,” Lord Wilfried
announced. He explained the process, and only then was I made aware that the
purpose of the ritual was to collect mana from everyone as an offering to the
royal family.
In what way is this ritual a part of any joint
research?! Every duchy is going through a mana shortage, and this is what they ask of us? Were we all tricked?!
It seemed that I wasn’t the only person
feeling this way. Everyone started exchanging looks with those around them—that
is, until Lady Charlotte offered an explanation.
“This joint research began due to students
from both Ehrenfest and Dunkelfelger receiving many divine protections from the
gods. Through a common thread between our duchies—our regular performance of
ceremonies that offer prayers to the gods—we have established the theory that
prayer and rituals are essential to obtaining divine protections.”
At that, all those who had wished to complain
closed their mouths. Everyone had known about Ehrenfest’s third-years obtaining
multiple divine protections, but not that it had any relation to ceremonies. In
practice, one laynoble had received the protection of an element she did not
have an aptitude for, and one mednoble had ended up omni-elemental.
“My elder brother and sister respectively
obtained twelve and twenty-one divine protections due to performing religious
ceremonies in Ehrenfest’s temple,” Lady Charlotte continued.
“This is just how it feels to me, but I can
now brew using only seventy percent as much mana as before,” Lord Wilfried
added. “I sincerely believe that this research will prove essential in our
mana-starved world.”
And that was coming from someone who had actually
received twelve divine protections. As he had implied, needing less mana to
brew was effectively the same as increasing one’s capacity.
Lord Lestilaut of Dunkelfelger, who was still
standing by the wall, spoke next. “Many of you saw our duchy perform a ritual
and obtain blessings before the games of ditter we required you to play. We
have confirmed that said ritual greatly increases one’s strength and speed.
That, too, has been a result of this research.”
In other words, Dunkelfelger’s frightening
strength during our games of ditter was in part due to the blessings from the
gods they had received from their ritual. I couldn’t help but blink in
surprise.
Lord Hartmut leisurely made his way to the
center of the room, holding something that looked a lot like a bell. “The first
Zent of Yurgenschmidt was a High Bishop,” he began in a clear, resounding
voice. “During that era, it was normal—expected, even—for Zents and aubs to
offer prayers to the gods. It is Lady Rozemyne’s wish that, by participating in
this ritual, you will all feel the power of the gods more closely and come to
rethink your opinions of the temple. She also hopes that at least some of you
will obtain more divine protections.”
Instinctively my eyes flitted about the room,
searching for Lady Rozemyne. She was standing quietly by the door, having
dispelled Schutzaria’s shield. Her desire to share the knowledge she had
obtained with us all so that we could acquire more divine protections was
beautiful to behold, especially when she would have gained so much by
monopolizing it. I now had a better understanding of why Lord Hartmut was so
insistent on calling her the Saint of Ehrenfest.
“The Dedication Ritual shall now begin,”
Hartmut announced. “Please kneel where you are and place your hands on the red
carpet. Then, you will need to repeat the prayer stated by Lady Rozemyne, the
High Bishop of Ehrenfest.”
Those who had been sitting nonchalantly now
knelt and pressed their hands against the carpeted floor. The royal family did
the same, as did Lord Wilfried and Lady Charlotte after moving from the center
of the circle to the edge.
Soon enough, the only people standing were the
Dunkelfelger archduke candidates, Lady Rozemyne by the door, and Lord Hartmut
at the center of the room. Then, there was the sudden, loud clanging of a bell.
“The High Bishop shall now enter!” Lord
Hartmut declared.
On cue, Lady Rozemyne started toward the
shrine, her every step exuding majesty. From where I was positioned, I could
see her head-on. Her white robes made her stand out from the sea of colored
capes and swiftly brought the word “tranquility” to mind. I could see that her
eyes were set on the shrine; nothing else had her attention.
In contrast to her white robes, Lady
Rozemyne’s dark hair looked more striking than ever. It was the perfect
backdrop for her hairpin, decorated with such magnificent rainbow feystones,
which sparkled like the brightest stars. Never before had I seen such a
wonderful ornament. It really spoke to how much she was loved by her fiancé.
Oh, fortune... Bless me with a man who will gift
me such marvelous feystones.
My sister often told me to keep my head out of
the clouds and focus on the real world, but I was grounded enough already. I
didn’t doubt that I would one day need to marry whomever my parents chose for
me, but that was precisely why I wanted to dream now,
while I was still able.
Though the only person who can empathize with my
feelings is Lady Muriella.
As I thought back to our enjoyable discussions
about love stories, Lady Rozemyne reached the empty space at the center of the
room. There, while looking up at the shrine behind me, she raised both hands in
prayer to the gods.
It was said that raising both hands and one’s
left leg while praying was the best way to get close to the mighty supreme gods
of the endless skies, and that placing one’s hands on the ground when offering
gratitude was a way of approaching the Eternal Five who rule the mortal realm.
Simply hearing about these forms of prayer had not been enough for me to truly
understand them, but now, seeing Lady Rozemyne assume their posture, it was all
slowly falling into place.
“Erdegral,” Lady
Rozemyne chanted, her voice young and gentle, holding her schtappe aloft in her
right hand while gazing intently at the shrine. At once, her schtappe
transformed into a sizable chalice that was identical to the one Geduldh held
on the shrine, even down to the complex engravings.
Everyone inhaled at once, then there came a
single whisper: “Geduldh’s chalice...” In the extreme quiet of the room, even
those small words reached every ear.
As I was in Lady Rozemyne’s grade and
practical classes, I knew that her upbringing in the temple had equipped her to
make the divine weapons and equipment. But I’d never expected her to be able to
create the divine chalice on top of that.
A chalice is neither a weapon nor a piece of
armor... Where in the world did she learn the spell to morph her schtappe like
that? Can it be learned in the temple?
As I was staring in wonderment, my elder
sister took a sharp breath. I’d already seen Lady Rozemyne produce a circular
shield and give blessings while playing the harspiel in class, so perhaps I was
more prepared for this than others.
My sister always rolled her eyes at my reports
and called them exaggerated, but surely she understands now. I was telling the
truth all along.
Hartmut assisted Lady Rozemyne in setting the
large chalice on the floor; it was far too big for her to carry on her own.
Then, they both knelt. Lady Rozemyne disappeared from my view, but I could hear
her voice as she began a songlike prayer.
“I am one who offers prayer and gratitude to
the gods who have created the world.”
I recalled that we had been told to repeat
after her and did just that.
“I am one who offers prayer and gratitude to
the gods who have created the world.”
Our chants were all over the place at first
and not at all synchronized; it must have been quite hard on the ears. Everyone
finished, and once silence returned, Lady Rozemyne continued.
“O mighty King and Queen of the endless
skies.”
“O mighty Eternal Five who rule the mortal
realm.”
As we all mimicked Lady Rozemyne’s consistent
tone and speed, our chanting became increasingly unified. Soon, it felt as
though not just our voices but our feelings were one.
The sense of collaboration really warmed my heart.
“O Goddess of Water Flutrane.”
“O God of Fire Leidenschaft.”
“O Goddess of Wind Schutzaria.”
“O Goddess of Earth Geduldh.”
“O God of Life Ewigeliebe.”
By the time we had spoken the name of the last
pillar, our voices were in beautiful unison and carried all the way to the
shrine. I could feel an indescribable sense of unity—and then the world around
me began to shimmer. It was like... something was being drawn from our bodies.
“What...?”
An instant later, I started to feel mana being
sucked out of me. I did not know what to do; it was my first time having it
happen outside of my control. It was draining through my palms, so removing my
hands from the carpet would probably stop it, but I could not risk interrupting
the ritual.
I made no significant movements, merely
watching my hands until the red carpet began to gleam. Our mana was flowing to
the chalice as waves of light. I could feel the mana of those behind me sweep
past as it moved to the center of the room, steadily accelerating—and as the
mana moved faster, it drained from me more quickly.
“We honor you who have blessed all beings with
life, and pray that we may be blessed further with your divine might,”
concluded the prayer, and with those words, everything became bright. I gazed
up to see where the light had come from and saw that the chalice was the
source.
“What?! It’s shining?!”
No sooner had people started crying out in
surprise than a pillar of light shot up from the chalice and pierced through
the ceiling. It was red, the divine color of Geduldh, and reminiscent of a warm
hearth.
“Wh-What is the meaning of this?!” the king
exclaimed, putting what we were all thinking into words.
“I expect that a portion of our mana flew to
some unknown point in the Royal Academy,” Lady Rozemyne replied in a calm
voice. “This always happens with rituals done here. It does not happen in
Ehrenfest, so I expect it is something unique to the Academy.”
Lord Lestilaut concurred, saying that the same
happened with Dunkelfelger’s rituals. “Our rituals produce mainly blue light,
but I see this one was red...” He was still positioned near the wall.
“That would be because the Dedication Ritual
is a ceremony for filling chalices with mana,” Lady Rozemyne noted. “This red
light is all of our mana being offered to the gods. Is it not beautiful?”
I nodded vigorously. It really was.
This is a true divine color.
In my eyes, the seasonal divine colors had
always been something to consider when choosing clothes or decorating rooms and
nothing more. The lack of choice they afforded had even frustrated me when
trying to decide what to wear for my coming-of-age ceremony. Now, however...
This was my first time seeing a divine color look so radiant. Not even red
elemental feystones compared to its beauty.
“That should be enough, Sister!” Lady
Charlotte suddenly cried out. We all turned to see that she was standing.
Lady Rozemyne soon stood up as well, whereupon
she announced, “The ceremony has concluded. Everyone, please remove your hands
from the floor. I expect some are beginning to run low on mana.”
I did as instructed, and the feeling of unity
disappeared all at once. It was like waking up from a dream. At the same time,
I was struck by an intense wave of exhaustion, and it became worryingly clear
that I was short on mana. My body felt heavier, and I was too dizzy to move; it
took all of my willpower just to remain kneeling. I even heard several people
behind me collapse.
“Everyone, thank you for participating in the
Dedication Ritual,” Lady Rozemyne said. “Those of the royal family and the
archduke candidates here today are used to supplying mana to foundational
magics, but this must have been especially hard on the archnobles. We have
prepared rejuvenation potions to reward those of you who have given us your
valuable mana. Hartmut, the potions.”
Lord Hartmut gave a brisk nod and then got to
work. Lord Wilfried and Lady Charlotte did the same, moving without hesitation;
it seemed that none of them were particularly tired. The royal family and
archduke candidates were all similarly stable, but several archnobles were in a
state where they could not even kneel properly.
To think that the royal family and archduke
candidates perform such a draining ceremony on a regular basis. I never knew.
I was familiar with the fact that each duchy’s
archducal family needed to supply their foundational magic with mana, but I
hadn’t known what that entailed—or how draining it was to use so much mana at
once.
“These potions should recover your mana more
effectively than the ones used in lessons. Of course, those who are wary of
poison are not obligated to accept them; you may use one of your own
rejuvenation potions instead.”
Lord Wilfried and Lady Charlotte each took and
then drank a potion, indicating that they were safe to consume. Lord Hartmut
then extended the box in which the potions were stored to Lady Rozemyne, who
similarly drank one before returning the now empty vessel.
“These rejuvenation potions were taught to us
by another and are not something we wish to make public,” Lady Rozemyne
explained with a mischievous smile. “As such, I must ask that you drink them
here and not save them for later; otherwise, I may be scolded for distributing
them. We will be retrieving the bottles soon.”
I was enthralled with the idea of a
rejuvenation potion more effective than those we were taught to brew in the
Royal Academy, but when I looked at my sister, I noticed she was wearing a hard
expression. “Um, Sister? Is something wrong?” I asked.
“Do they truly expect us to drink these
strange concoctions when we know not what they contain? This may be a trap of
some kind.”
It was a very astute point—one that hadn’t
even crossed my mind. As the retainer of an archduke candidate, she was so much
more alert than I. Perhaps that was why she always called me “wishy-washy” and
the like. I hung my head a little, ashamed.
The box in his arms, Lord Hartmut started
asking who wanted one of Ehrenfest’s rejuvenation potions, starting with the
king at the very center of the circle. I assumed this was a formality more than
anything else; the very idea of a member of the royal family accepting a potion
from another duchy without any attendants or guard knights present was
unthinkable, but so was distributing them to others without first offering one
to the king. Lord Hartmut was no doubt expecting a refusal.
And yet, the king said that he would indeed
take one. Seeing his outstretched hand sent a stir through the crowd. The royal
family was constantly on guard against ambushes and assassination attempts,
and, unlike the lower-ranked duchies agonizing over the mana shortage, the
Sovereignty had an abundance of resources. The king had no real need to accept
the potion—which meant that this was purely a show of trust.
I cannot believe that Zent Trauerqual places so
much faith in Ehrenfest.
We were surprised—and it seemed that those
from Ehrenfest were as well. Lord Wilfried and Lady Charlotte were both staring
at the king in shock.
Lady Rozemyne, however, seemed entirely
unmoved. “Zent Trauerqual,” she said, “these potions recover mana in bounds,
but they have very little impact on one’s stamina. I expect any feelings of
tiredness to remain.”
Lord Hartmut nodded in agreement, then added
with a serious expression that Lady Rozemyne’s own potions alleviated
exhaustion as well. It seemed to me that they were the only ones acting as
their usual selves here.
Perhaps following the king’s example, the
other members of the royal family accepted potions too. I couldn’t say for
certain, but it seemed to me that Prince Sigiswald hesitated briefly before
drinking his.
Klassenberg’s apprentice scholars were glaring
at the box of potions; now that the royal family had accepted the offer, they
were socially obligated to do the same. Still, if the apprentice scholars truly
were suspicious, then they were within their rights to refuse.
“Many of you here today used a great number of
rejuvenation potions to play the ditter needed to participate in this ritual,
no?” Lady Rozemyne said. “And yet, we have taken even more mana from you in the
process of our ceremony. To make up for that, we have prepared these potions.
If you are wary of poison then you may drink your own, but please decide
quickly.” She looked past the Klassenberg archnobles to the students still
wobbling on their knees at the far edge of the circle. “I especially wish for
these potions to reach the archnobles of middle and lesser duchies, who are
understandably struggling the most.”
To think she would worry more about the
bottom-ranking duchies than the top-ranking ones...
Upon seeing the concern in Lady Rozemyne’s
eyes, Klassenberg’s archnobles buckled under the pressure and accepted the
potions they were offered. From there, the distribution process continued a lot
more smoothly. Dunkelfelger’s apprentice scholars took some of the potions and
chugged them without delay.
“Allow me to help, Lady Rozemyne.”
Lady Clarissa, looking thrilled to finally be
able to move, reached for the box to return her empty potion bottle. She then
collected the empty bottles of the others who had finished drinking.
Next, Lord Hartmut distributed potions to
Drewanchel, Gilessenmeyer, and Hauchletzte.
“Ehrenfest, these rejuvenation potions seem to
recover mana at an extraordinarily fast pace, would you not agree?” Prince
Anastasius remarked, his tone questioning. Those who had yet to drink theirs
immediately looked to Lady Rozemyne for an answer.
“Our apprentice knights said the same.”
“I thought you prepared them yourself,” the
prince said. This time, his voice was sharp—enough so that I started to
tremble, even though he wasn’t speaking to me. But Lady Rozemyne just gave a
troubled smile.
“I tend to drink another kind of rejuvenation
potion, so I am not too familiar with this kind. My siblings and our retainers
discussed which potion recipes I could use and decided that these were optimal
for the ritual, so they are what I made.”
Does that mean Lady Rozemyne
can brew several kinds of rejuvenation potion despite being an archduke
candidate?! I already knew from our classes
together that she was skilled at brewing, but never had I thought her capable
of such a truly impressive feat.
“Lord Ortwin,” Lord Wilfried suddenly
interjected, causing the Drewanchel archduke candidate to flinch. “These
potions have been distributed for you to recover the mana spent during the
ceremony, not to be used for research.”
It seemed that Lord Ortwin had attempted to
smuggle one of the potions out of the room. He looked at Lord Wilfried, who was
regarding him with a teasing smile, then, after pulling an awkward face, downed
the potion in one go.
After seeing the royal family and the
top-ranking duchies accept potions, I was resolved to take one even if my
sister tried to stop me. Jossbrenner’s supply of rejuvenation potions had been
largely drained after our ditter match; I saw no reason to turn down a free
one.
Besides, we used our mana for Ehrenfest, did we
not? This is only fair.
I gazed at my sister, silently posing the
question to her, and she responded with a curt, resigned nod. When it came time
for Jossbrenner to accept or refuse the potions, we both took one from Lord
Hartmut. Lustlaune did the same.
Ehrenfest was currently distributing its third
box of potions—they had evidently come well prepared—and what I saw inside
caused me to gasp. It was positively brimming with bottles. To prepare this
many potions, Lady Rozemyne and the others must have expended a lot of
resources, mana, and, of course, time.
“There are just so many...” I murmured to
myself. “Is Ehrenfest not at risk of exhausting its resources trying to keep up
with Lady Rozemyne’s limitless compassion?”
Lord Hartmut raised an eyebrow at me, turned
to look at Lady Rozemyne, then gave a proud smile. “Ehrenfest is not at risk,
no. Our duchy is enriched by the compassion of our saint and grows more
prosperous by the day.”
Despite being Aub Ehrenfest’s adopted
daughter, Lady Rozemyne was filling her duchy’s land with mana as a High
Bishop, teaching other duchies about ceremonies so they could obtain divine
protections themselves, and preparing rejuvenation potions for those who had
offered up their mana. Not just anyone could say they had such achievements to
their name.
Lady Rozemyne was a true saint all along.
I had always assumed that Lord Hartmut’s tales
about her were exaggerated, but now I knew better. As I moved to drink the
potion he had given me, I reflected that I should have listened to him with
more reverence.
Ah, this potion really does act faster than the
ones I’m used to. I wonder how it was made...
The potions that Ehrenfest had distributed
were incomparable to those we learned to make in class. I could already feel my
mana coming back.
“Are these... made with ingredients from
Ehrenfest’s gathering spot?” I asked my sister.
“They certainly explain why Ehrenfest is not
wanting for mana. A supply of these would allow them to fill their entire
duchy.”
I gave a firm nod. Such potent means of
recovery would make it much, much easier to replenish one’s duchy and create more rejuvenation potions.
“However,” Lustlaune interjected, “while they
do recover mana, they do very little to ease exhaustion.”
I moved my arm around a little. As she had
said, my body was still quite weary. “Considering that you might find yourself
too exhausted to move, perhaps normal rejuvenation potions are more effective.”
My sister nodded. “These would be perfect for
knights in the heat of battle or for a person who wishes to brew something they
would otherwise lack the mana for.” Her evaluation gave me a good idea of what
whoever had designed the potions prioritized the most. They were presumably
doing some strange research that required an immense amount of mana.
Immediately after finishing their potions, the
royal family and the archduke candidates were able to move around freely... but
the archnobles from lesser and middle duchies were still struggling. Having
noticed this, Lady Rozemyne opened and closed her hands, then touched her
neck—was she testing something?
“Your mana is recovering but not your stamina,
correct?” she asked. “My mana has recovered as well, but I would not want you
all to be stuck sitting on the floor, so...” She made her schtappe, then
chanted, “Streitkolben” to create Flutrane’s staff.
The chalice had not produced any light to begin with, but the feystones on this
staff already sparkled green.
“And now Flutrane’s staff...?” came dazed
murmurs. Lady Rozemyne had formed one divine instrument after another.
Lady Rozemyne shyly cast her gaze downward. “I
must rely on Flutrane’s staff to heal so many people at once. My inexperience
is a great source of embarrassment.”
That seems like the wrong thing to be embarrassed
about...
A small part of me wanted to say as much, but
the knowledge that Lady Rozemyne was about to bless such a large crowd as
though it were nothing stifled my voice. I was convinced that nobody in
Yurgenschmidt could wield the divine instruments as readily as she. Normally,
one would not even consider using mana to ease another’s exhaustion, nor would
one bless so many people at once.
“May Heilschmerz’s healing be granted,” she
said, and green light spread from the feystone atop her staff. Some of it
formed a pillar that reached toward the ceiling—like during the previous
ceremony—while the rest rained down on us all.
As I closed my eyes, feeling my exhaustion
melt away as I enjoyed the warmth of Lady Rozemyne’s mana, there came a
whisper: “Mestionora...” It was barely spoken at all, but with everyone else
silently bathing in the light, it carried effortlessly across the room.
Mestionora? She’s a subordinate of... Wind, I
believe?
I was still memorizing the names of all the
gods, but I recognized Mestionora. She was the Goddess of Wisdom, from what I
remembered. But as I wondered what she had to do with Lady Rozemyne, I heard an
energetic voice call out, “I concur, Lady Hannelore!”
Alas, I do not understand enough to say the
same...
I opened my eyes instinctively and saw Lady
Clarissa of Dunkelfelger launching into an impassioned speech. “I received
exactly the same impression!” she said. “Lady Rozemyne’s actions clearly
parallel Mestionora, who was permitted by the gods to use all of their
instruments!”
Lady Rozemyne had stopped her blessing,
perhaps out of overwhelming surprise.
My knowledge of the gods extended only as far
as what we were taught in our theology lessons, but still—I wasn’t familiar
with the story Lady Clarissa was referring to. Most others were surely having
the same thought.
“I do not seem to recall such an idea being
expressed in the temple’s bible...” Lord Hartmut said, watching Lady Clarissa
with doubtful eyes.
“It is spoken of within old Dunkelfelger
books.”
Lady Clarissa’s assertion was quickly
affirmed—not by anyone from Dunkelfelger, but by Lady Eglantine. She told us
how Mestionora was the daughter of the God of Life and the Goddess of Earth,
then concluded that she was “just like Lady Rozemyne.”
Perhaps that really was the case. Lady
Rozemyne had enough mana to wield multiple divine instruments, and the
intelligence to have been first-in-class since she started at the Royal
Academy. Plus, if one were to believe Lord Wilfried, then she had also created
all of Ehrenfest’s trends.
As I considered this, Lady Eglantine giggled.
“I speak in jest, of course. Please do not look so troubled.”
Lady Rozemyne gave her a thoroughly troubled
look. “Anyone would be troubled to be compared to a goddess, Lady Eglantine...”
It was a very reasonable point, in my opinion—how was one supposed to react to
such words from a member of the royal family?
Hartmut stepped forward as if to protect Lady
Rozemyne, then thanked Lady Eglantine with a smile. I could only sigh in awe of
how expertly he dealt with the situation. Truly, he was any archduke
candidate’s ideal retainer.
I see that wonderful lords and ladies attract
wonderful retainers.
Today’s ceremony had proven dramatic enough to
make me reconsider several things I’d thought were common sense, but all in
all, I returned to my dormitory feeling very satisfied—and with my stamina and
mana fully recovered.
Someone Worthy of Caution
“Prince Anastasius, Prince Sigiswald has
arrived.”
I entered Anastasius’s villa, ready for our
private conversation, to find that he was already kneeling before me. He had
started acting like my retainer ever since his marriage to Eglantine was
decided. I accepted it, as I understood that he was emphasizing his position to
our retainers and the others.
“Brother,” he said, “Dregarnuhr the Goddess of
Time has—”
“We are the only two here, Anastasius,” I
noted, interrupting his greeting and making my way to the seat I was offered.
“No need for all the formalities; I’m more interested in what you have to say.
What did you discuss with that Ehrenfest archduke candidate, Rozemyne? You
thought it best to discuss things with me before telling Father, did you not?”
Just the other day, Anastasius had attended a
tea party for those affiliated with the library. There, he had privately spoken
to Rozemyne of Ehrenfest, and now it seemed there was something about their
exchange that he wished to tell me. Important reports were generally given over
dinner in the royal palace, with Father present, but on this occasion, I’d
received a personal invitation. I was on tenterhooks awaiting his next words.
“Brother, do you recall the blessing that
rained down upon Eglantine during our graduation ceremony?” Anastasius asked.
“Of course. How could I forget?”
The blessing in question had caused
Anastasius’s retainers to argue that he was meant to be the next king after
all, my own retainers to say that Eglantine was fated to be the next king’s
bride, and the Sovereign temple to proclaim that she should immediately be
raised to queenhood. In short, it had caused no end of trouble.
“As it turns out,” Anastasius said, “that
blessing was performed by Rozemyne.”
“Don’t tell me—was she following instructions
from Ferdinand again?”
Raublut, the Sovereign knight commander, was
particularly suspicious of those two; I’d never really understood it, but the
man controlling Rozemyne was apparently behind all this after all. His goal had
presumably been to divide the royal family right after Anastasius and
Eglantine’s union while simultaneously involving the Sovereign temple.
“She claims that the blessing simply came out
while she was praying for Eglantine’s happiness and singing the song of the
dedication whirl...”
“That seems... rather incomprehensible. I do
not understand it.”
“Fear not, Brother; nor do I.”
That was hardly reassuring.
The more I thought about it, the more
suspicious Rozemyne seemed to be. She always completed her lessons with
terrifying speed and then promptly returned to Ehrenfest, so even those in her
grade rarely saw her. After finishing her last class of the year, she would
spend each day of her remaining time in the Academy visiting the library. She
would not even participate in the awards ceremony despite having come
first-in-class twice in a row. As far as I was concerned, she was an entirely
unknown creature.
In her first year at the Royal Academy,
Rozemyne took over royal magic tools through incomprehensible means and got
involved in a fight with Dunkelfelger. Then, she gave a blessing to Eglantine
during her graduation ceremony—despite not having offered one to Adolphine or
to me, the future king.
During her second year, Rozemyne gave black
weapons to apprentice knights without permission and used a strange shield to
protect only those from her duchy in the attack on the awards ceremony. These
events spurred Raublut to investigate the secrets of where Ferdinand was born,
and from there, he began warning us of the threat the man posed. He said that
Ferdinand was controlling Rozemyne and searching for an archive hidden within
the Royal Academy’s library—one that could only be entered by those of the royal
family.
“So, did you learn what Rozemyne or Ferdinand
is trying to achieve?” I asked.
“No, but I asked her to serve as High Bishop
for your Starbind Ceremony and grant you a blessing. She agreed, with some
conditions.”
I furrowed my brow while Anastasius began
listing her requirements; it was hard to believe that anyone would make demands
of the royal family. It might have been more reasonable coming from a duchy
that had contributed to the civil war, but from an opportunistic neutral duchy
such as Ehrenfest it seemed a bit shameless.
“Does she understand Ehrenfest’s political
standing, I wonder?”
In the past, we had seen little reason to pay
attention to Ehrenfest; it was known as a backwater duchy with very little
influence and even less cause to draw the royal family’s attention. Now,
however, it had far too much sway. I wanted its people to understand their
place, be a bit more humble to the royal family, and attempt diplomacy with the
duchies that actually contributed in the civil war.
“Still,” Anastasius said, “if you can secure a
blessing of your own, then fewer people will criticize you.”
That certainly was true. By showing the
populace that the blessing Anastasius and Eglantine had received was from a
human, not the gods, I could start to reshape public opinion. The Sovereign
High Bishop had been so agonizingly smug when pushing for Eglantine to become
the next Zent, saying that she had received “a blessing straight from the gods
themselves.” How would he react in light of these new developments? The
Sovereign temple had been getting too cocky for its own good as of late, so
hearing about the shame he had brought on himself during the bible
investigation had worked to ease my stirring heart. Having another means to put
them down would be highly beneficial for us all.
I nodded and said, “I agree that a blessing
will move the discourse along. As this is your idea, I shall entrust
negotiations with the Sovereign temple to you.”
“Understood. Next, there is an underground
archive that requires three keys to be opened...”
Hortensia, an archnoble, being assigned to the
library had apparently allowed them to open the librarians’ previously sealed
rooms. Inside, they had found the keys to the underground archive.
“Are you referring to the archive that only
the royal family can enter?” I asked.
“At the moment, we do not know for certain.
Solange is the only remaining librarian from before the civil war, and, as a
medscholar, there were many places she was not allowed to enter, and much she
does not know.”
Our only choice was to go there and see for
ourselves. However, with security this tight, it made sense to assume that the
Grutrissheit was inside.
“Hortensia wishes to investigate the archive
as soon as possible. To that end, we have selected her, Hannelore of
Dunkelfelger, and Rozemyne of Ehrenfest as keyholders.”
I crossed my arms. Why grant the Ehrenfest
archduke candidate a key when everyone was so suspicious of her?
“Anastasius, this does not seem to make
sense,” I said. “Should the key not be given to Solange rather than Rozemyne?”
“As a mednoble, Solange would not be able to
reach the archive. One must be an archnoble or higher, it seems. Would you
assign two of your archnoble retainers for this?”
Hortensia had apparently asked the royal
family to send those we could trust the most, as the facility was clearly
important to us. Anastasius had declined, however, as we simply did not have
the manpower to spare.
“An archive that well protected must contain
valuable documents,” I said. “Only certain individuals can enter. I would not
mind assigning my retainers to manage the keys if all they must do is open and
close the archive whenever I intend to visit.”
There was no need to involve archduke
candidates with a facility important to the royal family. The archive was
likely meant to be a secret; it was best kept under my control, as the next
king.
“Brother, the archive does not necessarily
contain the Grutrissheit.”
“Why do you say that?” I asked. “It exists for
the royal family, but the former archlibrarians made it so that we could not
enter.”
According to Raublut, the first to learn of
this archive, the previous librarians had devised a plot before their execution
to ensure that the king would not be able to enter the archive. They had
apparently pulled a trick of some kind to prevent the knights from entering
their rooms.
“Solange informed us that, after rising to the
throne, the king continued to visit the library each year around the time of
the Archduke Conference,” Anastasius explained. “Hortensia also reported that
she remembers Prince Waldifrid planning to visit the library after his
coronation.”
“I see. After his
coronation...” I replied, nodding to myself. “That makes it a lot less likely
that he was visiting to obtain the Grutrissheit; the coronation of the next
king is intended to show the aubs that it has been passed on.”
Past members of the royal family entering the
underground archive was enough to confirm its importance back then, but it was
hard to tell what it offered for those of us in the present.
“Furthermore, Hortensia wants more than for
the archive to be opened; the library’s magic tools have been drained of mana
and are in a terrible state, and she wants the assistance of anyone who can
resupply and investigate them, librarian or no. Would it not trouble you to
send two of your retainers to work in the Royal Academy’s library
permanently—not just temporarily to open the archive?”
Naturally, it would be difficult to send two
of my retainers on such a long-term job of unknown importance; they were
providing critical support to my life and work. It was also possible that their
new efforts would be in vain, as we had no guarantee that the archive would
lead to the Grutrissheit. To me, it seemed a task best left to the retainers of
other royals.
“What if you and Hildebrand were to send one
retainer each?” I asked. “Do you have any who could stand to stay in the Royal
Academy?”
“As you know, on top of my work in the palace,
I am supporting Hildebrand with his duties as the Royal Academy’s overseer. I
am busy enough that I cannot spare a retainer; I would ask for more, if possible.”
Last year, the adult royals had been too busy
doing important work in the palace to oversee the Royal Academy. As a result,
the young Hildebrand was assigned to the position immediately after his
baptism. Up until that point, the overseer had existed purely as a figurehead,
meant to remind those present who was in charge—yet there had then been the
appearance of a ternisbefallen, the students using black weapons, the bible
investigation, and the attack during the awards ceremony. It was a sequence of
events too serious for Hildebrand to manage himself, which was why Father’s
retainers had suggested that Anastasius take over the role this year. They
argued that he could remain at the royal palace and go to the Royal Academy
when an incident occurred, and that Eglantine’s new position as a professor
would allow him to stay abreast of any goings-on.
Of course, Hildebrand had been quick to
protest the idea, having seemed to feel that his duties were being taken away
from him. His retainers had expressed similar reluctance, as they believed that
replacing the young prince would make him appear incapable in some way. That
was understandable, so we ultimately decided that Hildebrand would continue to
serve as the overseer, but that he would contact Anastasius when matters got
out of hand. It was a necessary precaution, as we all anticipated another incident
between Ehrenfest and Dunkelfelger.
“Hortensia is the wife of the Sovereign knight
commander,” Anastasius said. “She understands that the Sovereignty does not
have the leeway to send any more librarians, hence her suggestion that the two
archduke candidates serve as keyholders instead, considering their work for the
Library Committee. There are no other students who will give mana to the
library while they are so busy with their classes.”
This so-called committee had been supplying
the library’s magic tools with mana since before their discovery of the archive
beneath it. The other students had witnessed this already, so nobody would bat
an eye about them continuing to work with the librarians. Naturally, Hildebrand
was excluded from consideration; it was fine for a prince to offer his mana
whenever he deigned to visit, but the library could not summon him at its own
convenience. As far as Hortensia and Solange were concerned, Rozemyne and Hannelore
were the only option.
“I understand the circumstances,” I said, “but
I still think we should reconsider the Ehrenfest archduke candidate. It is one
thing to supply mana, but to serve as a keyholder? Have you forgotten Raublut’s
warnings? Her duchy is dangerous.”
Before I could say much else, an ordonnanz
flew into the room. Another soon followed, then another after that. They were
from Eglantine, Hildebrand, and Hortensia, respectively. Apparently, the very
girl we were discussing had just supplied some critical information. She had
given a detailed explanation of who could enter the triple-locked archive and
said that it contained documents the royal family would do well to read.
“Some archduke
candidates can enter?” I asked. “What does that mean, exactly? Rozemyne clearly
knows more than Solange, but why?”
“If she had known this much to begin with,
then she would have said so when the keys were first discussed. She is terrible
at hiding things,” Anastasius assured me. “I would assume that Ferdinand gave
her this information—perhaps after she revealed that she is becoming a
keyholder.”
Indeed, it would have taken about this long
for her to write to and then hear back from Ferdinand, assuming that they were
corresponding by letter.
“To think a backwater like Ehrenfest, a
bottom-ranking duchy at the time of the civil war, would know such things...” I
mused. “Raublut is correct; we have every reason to consider Ferdinand
suspicious. If their people are willing to supply us with information, however,
then we have no reason to refuse them. Let us consult the aubs at once. Perhaps
one of them has entered the archive before.”
If members of the country’s many archducal
families were also able to enter the archive, then perhaps they would provide
us with further intelligence. I decided to consult Klassenberg’s and
Dunkelfelger’s aubs.
“Brother, if what Rozemyne says is true and
these documents are best read by the royal family, then I think you should
visit the archive with us,” Anastasius said. “I have taken the lead thus far
because Rozemyne is friends with Eglantine, but if the information describes
how to be king as we suspect, then it would be best that you read it.”
I could tell that my little brother wished for
us to see these documents right away and clear any suspicions that Ehrenfest
was planning a coup. He even seemed to feel sympathy for Ferdinand, who was
under Raublut’s scrutiny. I pondered for a moment; Anastasius knew more about
Ehrenfest than I, and not even Raublut’s accusations had given him much cause
to doubt Rozemyne.
“My understanding is that Ferdinand was on
poor terms with the mother of the current Aub Ehrenfest and was sent to the
temple as a result,” I said. “Perhaps he is offering us this information as a
show of gratitude now that we have sent him to a greater duchy instead. He may
have reevaluated his opinion of the royal family.”
I was trying to keep Anastasius’s feelings in
mind, but on the inside, I was more suspicious of Ferdinand than ever. Raublut
suspected that he was part of a royal branch family, born in a villa known as
Adalgisa—that he resented having been sent to a duchy and was aiming to secure
the Grutrissheit for himself. I’d checked a record of Adalgisa in the royal
palace and found that the previous Aub Ehrenfest had taken a child from there
to raise as his own. There was no name written, but the date had made it clear
that this child was Ferdinand.
We had worried that Ferdinand might cause
another civil war, but wedding him into Ahrensbach had made it impossible for
him to take the throne. Raublut wanted the key to Adalgisa to investigate
further, but Father had refused, telling him the matter was resolved.
Perhaps I should grant the key to Raublut and get
him to investigate further.
We needed to look into Ferdinand as well, but
I thought it most wise to start by meeting this Rozemyne girl. Perhaps then I
would understand why Hortensia and Anastasius were so confident about her being
a keyholder.
“I shall do as you suggest and meet Rozemyne
myself on our way to the underground archive,” I decided. “I can make time
three days from now. Oh, and do inform Hildebrand about this; the king did
technically make him the Royal Academy’s overseer.”
This matter was too serious for a young child
to bear, but we had given him his position to begin with; who were we to reject
him for wanting to carry out his duty? Having the young Hildebrand in
attendance was also sure to lower Rozemyne’s defenses, even if only a little.
Now, I wonder what they know...
My curiosity was not limited to Rozemyne
herself. I was eager to see what Ferdinand knew and what he intended to tell
us.
My father wanted the Grutrissheit to
legitimize his kingship, and securing it would allow for easy control of the
political stage. If we had any leads, then I was resolved to follow them...
though the process was admittedly bothersome. If this archive did not direct us
to the book, I would consider it a waste of time.
I personally had no attachment to the
Grutrissheit; Yurgenschmidt had been without one for as long as I could
remember, and I was confident that I could rule without its influence. Indeed,
we were managing fine already. I was willing to make some sacrifices to
maintain this peace.
Yes, I understood that there could be nothing
better than obtaining the Grutrissheit—but we did not have it, and the royal family
needed to rule Yurgenschmidt either way. I was the son of a king without the
Grutrissheit, and I needed to prove that we could survive even without its aid.
That was my duty as the next king.
Headache-Inducing Reports (Third Year)
“Aub Ehrenfest. Here is a list of attendants
charged with light crimes that warrant fines and nothing more.”
“Put it over there.”
Thanks to the warning and intelligence we had
received from Matthias, a student of the former Veronica faction, we had
managed to imprison the nobles who had given their names to Georgine. Actually
detaining them had proven a real mess according to Bonifatius, who had taken
charge of the affair—some had set their estates on fire the moment they saw the
Knight’s Order arrive, while others had blown their own heads to pieces to keep
their memories from being read.
“I don’t know what they were planning, but it
didn’t seem like they were having tea parties or celebrating the start of
winter,” Bonifatius said. “All ten or so of them were desperate to hide
whatever evidence they could. You know... I think Matthias’s report really
saved our hides here.”
Initially, we had intended to wait until after
the Lord of Winter hunt to start our purge. Bonifatius maintained that this
would have been much too late. Most of our targets had taken their own lives,
leaving behind almost no evidence to speak of, but we had imprisoned plenty of
criminals outside of Gerlach’s winter estate. Now there was so much cleanup to
be done, but we barely had the manpower.
“Karstedt, how will we fare hunting the Lord
of Winter?” I asked.
Carrying out the purge first had cost us a lot
of rejuvenation potions and offensive magic tools, and decreased the number of
knights we had at our disposal. In other words, we would need to attempt the
hunt in a severely weakened state.
“The feystones from Rozemyne and mandatory
contributions from the imprisoned scholars should make it just barely
possible,” he replied, his face dark with exhaustion. He had tirelessly devised
a plan to make our hunt a success on top of cleaning up the aftermath of the
purge.
It seemed that sending Rozemyne a load of
empty feystones after she had mentioned being overwhelmed with mana had paid
off tremendously. On top of that, we had ordered some of the scholars charged
with lesser crimes to create the offensive magic tools we would need for the
hunt. They would repay their fines through labor and mana contributions.
“The high-quality ingredients from the Royal
Academy helped too,” Karstedt continued. “It’s going to be close, but it looks
like we’ll manage the hunt once again this year.”
“That’s a relief. How about the temple’s
Dedication Ritual? Have you heard anything from Cornelius or the other guard
knights participating in the training?”
The temple’s religious ceremonies had a very
direct impact on the next year’s harvest. We had previously left them to
Rozemyne and Ferdinand, but neither of them was here this time. To make things
more complicated, the remaining blue priests didn’t have much mana to begin
with, and there were fewer of them than ever. The purge having been performed
before the Dedication Ritual also meant that the pre-baptism kids had already
been sent to live in the temple orphanage.
“I’m told that Hartmut is being fairly
proactive, since Rozemyne entrusted everything to him in her absence. Cornelius
was grumbling about having been wrapped up in it all.”
According to Karstedt, Rozemyne’s guard
knights were being made to imitate blue priests. Ceremonial robes had already
been prepared for them.
“When he came to the training grounds, Damuel
told me they’re banging their heads against the wall that is teaching Angelica
the prayer for the Dedication Ritual,” he continued. “Still, we want them to
succeed as soon as possible; Angelica and Cornelius will provide key firepower
against the Lord of Winter.”
Ferdinand and Eckhart’s departure meant that
Rozemyne’s guard knights were now crucial to the fight. Striking a balance
between the ceremonies and the hunt was going to be important.
“Aub Ehrenfest, may I have a moment?” asked
Leberecht, one of Florencia’s scholars, as he entered the room with several
boards in hand. His red hair, which was similar in color to Karstedt’s and tied
firmly behind his head, must have been a Leisegang trademark. His dark-brown
eyes were always calm and collected; I couldn’t remember seeing him get
emotional even once.
I looked up from my desk. “Ah, Leberecht. Have
you all finished going through the reports from the Royal Academy?” Preparing
for the purge and everything after it had made me so busy this year that I’d
delegated responding to the reports to Florencia. Leberecht was probably here
to confirm that they were done, as per usual.
“No, Lady Florencia fainted while reading
them,” he replied. “Can I ask you to handle this batch, Aub Ehrenfest?”
“What?! Is she okay?!” I demanded, standing up
on instinct after hearing his dry announcement. This wasn’t the time to be
reading reports from the Royal Academy; I was way more concerned about
Florencia’s health.
In stark contrast to my surge of emotion,
Leberecht indicated that I should sit back down without even twitching his
eyebrow. “Lady Florencia has stepped away from her work and returned to her
room,” he said. “A doctor is currently seeing to her, but the diagnosis will
not come just yet. I should also note that going to see Lady Florencia will not
do anything to improve her condition; her health is best left to the doctor and
her attendants, so I would ask that you instead resume your seat and complete her
workload for today.”
“Ngh...”
“As her scholar, I am likewise unable to do
much for her while she is ill. May I ask permission to assist you as you go
through the reports?”
The purge had cost me some of the people who
usually worked in my office, so having Leberecht’s help was greatly
appreciated. I started distributing work to Florencia’s scholars.
“And now—here,” Leberecht said. “The reports
from the Royal Academy.”
“From what I remember of yesterday’s report,
Rozemyne went on a rampage after getting annoyed during some tea parties and
decided to hold a Dedication Ritual in the Royal Academy. She received a
summons from the royal family and intended to request permission to use their
shrine. Gah... I’ve yet to even read these, but I can already feel my head
aching.”
I wanted nothing more than to bin these
reports and save myself the anguish, but they surely described Rozemyne’s
meeting with the royal family. Leaving them unread wasn’t an option, so I
accepted them from Leberecht.
“My hope is that the royal family refused to
let her use the shrine and that was that, but given what happened with
Florencia, I’m guessing they gave her permission.”
“Indeed. The situation has taken an unexpected
turn.”
Having no other choice, I started reading the
reports. The first was fairly normal: Dunkelfelger’s students had trained
enough that they could now obtain blessings on their own, and, at their
request, a strict delineation was being made between the joint researchers and
their helpers.
“They’re letting us use the shrine hall so long
as we bring the ceremonial tools we need from Ehrenfest. Once the temple’s
Dedication Ritual is over, please send Wilfried’s, Charlotte’s, and my
ceremonial robes, alongside the other things we’ll need, including offerings
and the like. If you ask Hartmut, he should take care of everything right away.
From Rozemyne.”
I reread the report a few times and then
muttered, “You know, this isn’t too bad.”
His interest now piqued, Karstedt gave the
board a look as well. “It’ll take us a while to send over everything she’s
asking for, but the royal family are letting them use the hall, and apparently
for free. Pretty forgivable.”
“Yep. This is much better than we
expected—neither the royal family nor the Sovereign temple is causing any
problems. I don’t even feel the urge to grab my head and slam it against the
table, which is rare after reading one of these reports.”
But as we started to relax, Leberecht flipped
over the board and said, “Hubris is a slow and insidious killer, Aub
Ehrenfest.” There was text on the back as well.
“PS: I’ve invited the royal family to join us for
the Dedication Ritual. Their presence should help to keep the participants in
line, plus I want the royal family to experience a real religious ceremony.
Their jobs should get a little easier if they can earn some more divine
protections. Prince Anastasius said that he would consider it.”
Wait, wait, wait! Didn’t we explicitly tell her not to get involved with royalty?!
I put a desperate hand on my forehead; I’d
spoken too soon. We’d anticipated that the royal family might add a problematic
condition to using the shrine, but not that Rozemyne would willingly involve
herself with them.
“And she did it out of goodwill...?” I
muttered.
“She does say that ‘their jobs should get a
little easier,’” Leberecht replied. “She must have acted out of pure kindness
while thinking it was actually beneficial for everyone, much like how she saved
the children of criminals partially with the future of our duchy in mind.”
I groaned a little. His analysis was harsh, if
you thought about it, but he wasn’t wrong. I’d accepted Rozemyne’s proposal to
save the children for the sake of Ehrenfest’s future, considering how our
population had taken a hit after the purge, but the Leisegangs found that hard
to swallow—after all, the former Veronica faction had put them through so much
misery and for so long.
“Lady Rozemyne seems to believe these
agreements are mutually beneficial,” Leberecht went on, “but does she not pay
any mind to the impact they have on everyone else? This may help us and those
of the royal family, but what will the children of other duchies think?”
“To be honest, what happens to the royal
family is no concern of Ehrenfest’s. All they ever do is push us in unwanted
directions.”
I remembered Ferdinand saying that whenever
Rozemyne became involved with someone, she couldn’t help but invest herself in
their well-being. Evidently, she was now close enough to the royal family for
this to apply. She was in too deep.
“Well, what is there to do...?” I pondered.
“As the royal family is now involved in this
joint research, we cannot cancel it on our own. We should summon Hartmut for
the time being. Only he will be able to confirm whether we can send the
necessary implements for the Dedication Ritual to the Royal Academy, and how
long it will be before that can be done.”
I nodded and then sent Hartmut a summons. Once
the ordonnanz disappeared from sight, I started reading the reports from the
other kids.
“Professor Gundolf scolded us, saying that we
Ehrenfest students have no new, interesting ideas. He is indirectly telling us
to involve Lady Rozemyne. From Marianne.”
“I made several suggestions, but Drewanchel
improved on them and came up with better things. It feels like the results of
our research are being taken away from us. From Ignaz.”
Rozemyne’s reports were all about the joint
research Ehrenfest was doing with Dunkelfelger, whereas those from Wilfried’s
and Charlotte’s apprentice scholars only discussed our joint research with
Drewanchel. It was easy to guess where each person’s interests lay.
“Seems like the joint research with Drewanchel
isn’t going so well,” I said.
“There is no helping that, as research
requires a variety of skills not measured through written classes: imagination,
speed in producing results, a keen eye for what information to conceal and what
to give others, and so on. Our apprentice scholars may have finally begun to
earn worthwhile grades in their written lessons, but this is still a heavy
weight for them to carry.”
Leberecht had dismissed their shortcomings as
inevitable, but Karstedt gave a more sympathetic look and crossed his arms. “If
the burden’s too much for them, don’t they need advice more than anyone?” he
asked. “Drewanchel wanted to collaborate with Rozemyne specifically from the
very beginning. How about the scholars ask her for some good ideas? She’s bound
to have some.”
“I’m not so sure,” I replied. “They may need
advice, but we want that gremlin involved with as little as possible;
otherwise, she’ll cause problems in Drewanchel as well as Dunkelfelger. Have
the scholars think on their own for a bit. This is an opportunity for them to
get some important experience.”
I could tell from the scholars’ reports that
they didn’t want to rely on Rozemyne—that they wanted to advance this research
themselves. They were eager to make these accomplishments their own precisely
because this duty had been placed in their hands.
“Oh? Do you not mind if our duchy’s joint
research with Drewanchel fails?” Leberecht asked.
“This is a matter between students, and
Rozemyne said we couldn’t have refused Drewanchel even if we’d wanted to. No
matter how poorly things might go on our end, Ehrenfest will be none the worse
for it. This is a valuable opportunity for them to learn from their mistakes.
Trial and error, people.”
After a moment spent in thought, Leberecht
said, “Then that shall be our reply.” I decided to leave the writing to him,
and it was then that I noticed a letter among the boards.
“What’s this?” I asked.
“A letter to Hartmut from his Dunkelfelger
fiancée. It arrived with the reports. I thought it best that you read through
it, considering that it has come from another duchy.”
During more normal circumstances, personal
letters would be sent directly to their intended recipient, but the purge and
such had spurred us to read all messages coming in from the Royal Academy.
Personally, I felt a little bad about reading someone’s private correspondence,
but it was my duty as the archduke. Even though I doubted that Hartmut’s
fiancée was in bed with Ahrensbach, I needed to know for sure.
“Aaaaah! Never in all my life have I been more
grateful for this serendipitous meeting ordained by Ewigeliebe’s harsh
judgment! Her hair, blessed by the God of Darkness to be as alluring as the
night sky, danced through the air with power overflowing. Her golden eyes
sparkled with the Goddess of Light’s blessing as she stared down her foe. Our
lady, whose mortal form has received the direct favor of the supreme gods,
raised but a single hand, and in it appeared the greatest masterpiece that
Vulcanift the God of Smithing ever produced, crackling with blue lightning. Her
heroic figure radiated the light of all the summer gods, and into mine eyes was
burned the true passion of Angriff the God of War. Or, no, wait—it was not just
Angriff.”
You’re the one who should be waiting. What the
heck even is this?
At first, I’d assumed that Hartmut’s fiancée
was using the traditional flowery template that was often followed when writing
to one’s partner-to-be... but that wasn’t true at all. Despite it reading
entirely like a love story, her letter did nothing but shower Rozemyne with
praise; she didn’t even attempt to compliment Hartmut himself. I tried to skim
the rest, but even that became unbearable.
“Uh, Leberecht? Are you sure this is from
Hartmut’s fiancée?”
“There is no mistaking it. Clarissa is
detailed as the sender.”
As it turned out, Leberecht hadn’t read the
letter; he’d checked the recipient and sender and nothing more. Was I the only
one who felt the striking contrast between his coldness and Clarissa’s gushing?
“What kind of person is Clarissa?” I asked.
“Is she, er... dangerous?”
“I met her during last year’s Interduchy
Tournament. She is an archscholar from Dunkelfelger who wants nothing more than
to marry into Ehrenfest and serve Lady Rozemyne. Her union to Hartmut is good
for the future of our duchy. I must admit, I did not expect my son to become
romantically involved in the Royal Academy, considering how cold he can be, but
that is another matter.”
I merely blinked in response; Hartmut had
never come across as cold to me. As far as I was concerned, he was a loyal
retainer of Rozemyne’s whose extraordinary passion seeped through each of his
reports.
“Excuse me, Aub Ehrenfest,” came Hartmut’s
voice as we continued to examine the letter. “I am here as requested.” He had
made his way here immediately after receiving the ordonnanz—and through the
blizzard on his highbeast, if the lingering flecks of snow in his hair were
anything to go by.
“Sorry to call you over during these busy
times,” I said. “Rozemyne wants to know how the orphanage is holding up. I
assume that, like the Lord of Winter hunt, a lot of your plans have been
disrupted.”
The kids sent to the orphanage had been raised
as nobles, and, children or not, they were presumably showing a lot of
resistance. It wasn’t hard to imagine the youngest of them crying for their
parents.
Hartmut smiled. “You may rest easy. Under my
watch, no problems will occur in the orphanage. As we speak, everyone there is
living in peace, without exception.”
“Alright. That’s good to know. Pre-baptism
kids can’t be counted as nobles, but the more that survive this, the better.”
It felt as though the entire duchy had been thrown into chaos, so I was
relieved to hear that at least somewhere was
peaceful—even if that somewhere was under Hartmut’s strict watch.
“Hartmut, here’s why I summoned you,” I said,
handing over one of the boards. “This is from Rozemyne. She wants you to
prepare for religious ceremonies.” I then gave him the letter. “And this is
from your fiancée Clarissa.”
Hartmut began reading the board without a
moment’s hesitation. His bright orange eyes grew wider and wider, and his hands
started to tremble as he muttered, “This can’t be. Lady Rozemyne is performing
the Dedication Ritual in the Royal Academy...? I cannot believe it. Why, oh why did I have to graduate last year?! To think I am unable
to watch her ceremony with my own eyes... I am a failure of a retainer!”
That reminded me—the last report Hartmut had
seen was from three days ago. So much had changed since then, it was no
surprise that he was so taken aback.
“I would only say that if you’re unable to
complete the preparations in time,” I said. “More importantly, when is the
temple’s ritual due to finish? We need to send Rozemyne a reply. Think you’ll
be able to give her what she needs?”
“Lady Rozemyne wills it, so I shall ensure
that the temple’s Dedication Ritual finishes promptly. All of the required
tools will be prepared, and I will deliver them to the Royal Academy myself.”
He was as skilled as ever—or at least as
fanatic about Rozemyne. Out of the corner of my eye, I caught Leberecht wearing
a look of exasperation.
“Contain yourself, Hartmut,” he said. “Lady
Rozemyne has not summoned you; she has asked only for the necessary tools and
robes. This intense attitude of yours ill befits a retainer serving the
archducal family. Pray tell, where do you think you are? Stand down and cool
your head.”
He then turned to me with a sour expression
and continued, “My apologies. He is the youngest of my sons, so I was too
lenient while raising him.”
“I think his obsessive loyalty is more to
blame. You seem surprised, but Hartmut always acts like this when Rozemyne is
involved. Did you not know?”
“My wife informed me that a lot has changed
over the past few years, but I did not realize he had become this foolish.
There is nothing wrong with being invested in one’s lord or lady, but it pains
me to see him lose control.” He sighed once, then returned to his usual flat
expression. From that point on, he took great pains not to look at his son.
Meanwhile, Hartmut only had eyes for the
correspondence I’d given him. He looked between the board and Clarissa’s
letter, thinking something over pretty seriously. The father and son who made
no effort to look at one another caused the air in my office to become kind of
sharp.
“Hartmut, that’s everything I needed you for.
We’ll inform Rozemyne that you’ll get her what she needs for the Dedication
Ritual,” I said, sending him away. Then I turned to Leberecht. “This is my
reply to Rozemyne. You take over the rest. I’ll go check on Florencia.”
“Understood.”
Hartmut really was scarily good. He finished
the temple’s Dedication Ritual in no time at all, then started coming to my
office on a daily basis. During each visit, he gave a detailed report on how
much of the required tools and such had been brought to the castle, while also
advising Wilfried’s and Charlotte’s retainers about the ceremonial ornaments to
be worn during the ritual.
But all that was just an excuse.
“Last year, when Ehrenfest was ordered to
bring its bible for inspection, Lord Ferdinand went to the Royal Academy
personally as High Priest to manage the temple’s belongings. With so many
temple goods now being requested for the Dedication Ritual, is it not clear
that another such manager will be needed? As the High Priest, that is my duty.”
Hartmut was an adult, meaning I would need to
get the royal family’s permission for him to visit the Royal Academy. I’d been
refusing him, trying to save myself the trouble, but it was hard to argue when
he was using Ferdinand as a precedent.
“The cultural perspective on religious
ceremonies has been on the verge of shifting since Lady Rozemyne obtained so
many divine protections in her practical lessons,” he continued. “The pillar of
light that formed when she mimicked Dunkelfelger’s ritual with Leidenschaft’s
spear is similarly informing the masses of the importance of divine instruments
and rituals. If we are to produce the instruments once again, then we must have
the proper authorities overseeing them. I intend to accept all of this responsibility
as the High Priest.”
Hartmut’s nonstop offensive was really wearing
me down. I was impressed that Rozemyne was still able to tolerate the guy; she
definitely had more patience than me.
“Not to mention, there is much that reports
alone do not convey,” Hartmut continued. “Should we not be using every
opportunity to visit the Royal Academy and gather intelligence ourselves? By
bringing the necessary tools and participating in the Dedication Ritual as High
Priest, I will even have an opportunity to speak with the royal family.”
I guess the royal family letting Hartmut into the
Royal Academy can only benefit us.
It wouldn’t cause me any problems, at
least—and any time he spent in the Royal Academy was time not spent being a
pain in my neck. Still, I was so very tired of putting up with his daily
appeals that I shooed him away, saying that I would ask the royal family for
their permission. Everything else was up to them.
“The royal family has permitted Hartmut to
enter the Royal Academy, but they have several conditions,” Leberecht
announced, the relevant board in hand. But that was the least important part of
his message.
“Hold on!” I cried. “Did you say a moment ago
that the king is participating in the Dedication
Ritual?! Why?! I thought it was just Prince Anastasius!” Yes, Rozemyne had said
that it was best for the royal family to experience rituals, but who would have
expected this? Nobody!
Give me a break...
“It certainly is unprecedented for the Zent to
participate in the joint research of students.”
“I wish I could forget ever having read this.
Is there not some way we can cancel the project entirely...?”
“This is all a surprise, to be sure, but now
we have even less of an out,” Leberecht replied as dryly as ever. At a time
like this, Karstedt would normally be sharing in my torment... but without him
here, there was nowhere for my emotions to go.
“Gah... I never thought I’d envy Karstedt
having to go hunt the Lord of Winter.”
I wished that I was in his place, far away
from these reports. Being in the heat of battle was sure to be less of a
headache than dealing with all this.
“The Zent is joining the ritual,” I grumbled.
“The Zent. Something is going to happen there, without
a doubt.”
“Indeed...”
Not being able to touch the Royal Academy was
maddening. Why were adult royals getting so involved when adults weren’t
supposed to interfere? And what had been the point of ordering Rozemyne not to
engage with the royal family...?
No matter how much I thought about it, there
was nothing Ehrenfest could do. Our only option was to see Hartmut off and beg
him to keep anything bad from happening.
“An update on the Dedication Ritual has
arrived, Aub Ehrenfest. This one is from Hartmut. He wishes to report to you
personally and has thus requested some of your time tomorrow.”
I’d heard that Hartmut had returned right
before sixth bell and intended to spend the rest of the day getting everything
back to the temple. That was his responsibility, so I didn’t mind having to
wait a while longer for his account of events. The fact that he hadn’t come to
me right away likely meant that nothing serious had occurred, so I picked up
his report for today without feeling too worried.
About eighty percent of the report described
Rozemyne’s divinity as she performed the ritual, and how her holiness had been
proven to many duchies at once. Ten percent was a list of which duchies had
been blocked by Schutzaria’s shield and the dangers they posed. The rest
described how the royal family had thanked us, as well as Hartmut’s own
frustrations about being unable to accompany Rozemyne to the library.
“Leberecht... are there any other reports?” I
asked. “This one mentions Schutzaria’s shield being set up in front of the
Royal Academy’s shrine, but I don’t see an explanation as to why.”
He handed me a new board, which I then looked
over. It was from Ignaz, one of Wilfried’s apprentice scholars.
“The Dedication Ritual was a success. Rozemyne
made it so that neither the Sovereign Knight’s Order nor the archduke
candidates’ guard knights were permitted to attend, but we were able to ease
everyone’s concerns using Schutzaria’s shield. From Ignaz.”
They used Schutzaria’s shield to get rid of the
Sovereign Knight’s Order and the apprentice knights?!
The report implied that everything was fine,
since everyone had understood their reasoning in the end, but I wasn’t so
convinced. I could feel an unpleasant pang in my stomach as I picked up a
report from Charlotte.
“Rozemyne made two divine instruments from her
schtappe. I saw it with my own eyes and still struggle to believe it. Uncle can
do it as well, apparently. Is this normal...? I feel as though my sister is
misunderstanding something. Also, light shoots up into the sky whenever
religious ceremonies are performed in the Royal Academy. It happens for
Dunkelfelger as well. If these ceremonies become more commonplace, then perhaps
Rozemyne’s abnormality will not stand out as much. From Charlotte.”
WHAT IS HAPPENING OVER THERE?!
Not even Hartmut’s report had mentioned
Rozemyne using two divine instruments at once. Maybe only Charlotte had
noticed—or maybe it really was normal to Rozemyne’s cohort. I couldn’t
determine the truth on my own, so I turned to the next report. It was from one
of Charlotte’s apprentice scholars.
“The Zent expressed his gratitude to us; now, we
can say with all certainty that every duchy has its eyes on our research with
Dunkelfelger. I will do my best to ensure that our work with Drewanchel is not
seen as lesser by comparison. If you can provide an update on our research with
Ahrensbach then please do; we have been unable to find out much about it. From
Marianne.”
It wasn’t hard to see that Marianne’s
competitive spirit was ablaze. She knew that their work with Drewanchel
couldn’t compare to the research being done with Dunkelfelger, so she wanted to
know how things were going with Ahrensbach. Unfortunately, I didn’t really know
myself.
“As much as I’d like to help her, that
research is about making magic tools more efficient,” I said. “All I know is
that the Ahrensbach apprentice scholar is taking care of the schematics while
Rozemyne is doing the actual brewing.”
The research was more of a personal matter
between Raimund and Rozemyne than a duchy-wide collaboration, so we didn’t get
many reports about it. The schematics and prototypes would be presented during
the Interduchy Tournament. It was possible that Ferdinand had seen them
already.
“Is it truly okay for you to be so in the dark
about this joint research, Aub Ehrenfest?”
“I’m not leading it; Ferdinand is. And with
him keeping an eye on things, there shouldn’t be any problems to speak of.”
I thought back to my half-brother, who was
always agonizing over how to contain Rozemyne. I could guess that he, too, was
sitting with his head in his hands right now. It was actually pretty nice to
think that he was suffering alongside us—that we could share this connection
even when we were so far apart.
“I will say as much to Marianne,” Leberecht
said, then handed me another board. “Now, here is a report from Lady Rozemyne.”
“We got to use the mana left over from the
Dedication Ritual to help the Royal Academy library. The magic tool that might
as well be its foundation was just about to run out of mana, so we got there
just in time. I made sure to fill it well, so the library should be safe for
some time now. From Rozemyne.”
My face clouded over. Karstedt had since
returned from hunting the Lord of Winter, so I said without even looking up
from the board, “Tell me, Karstedt... is this supposed to be a report on the
Dedication Ritual...?”
Karstedt read the board over my shoulder and
then said with a frown, “She mentions the leftover mana, so... yes, I’d assume
so.” As always, Rozemyne was off in a world of her own. Her report about the
Dedication Ritual was almost entirely devoted to the library for some reason.
“Surely there are more important things for
you to write about, Rozemyne!”
“I support your position, Aub Ehrenfest,”
Leberecht interjected, “but a collective analysis of the reports we have
received confirms that the ritual ended safely without any rebukes from the
royal family. We can expect no major incidents in the lead-up to the Interduchy
Tournament.”
Karstedt and I glanced at one another; he
shrugged and shook his head, to which I nodded. The Dedication Ritual might
have ended without incident, sure...
But, well...
I sighed, then gave Leberecht a look of
complete seriousness. “If you truly believe that, Leberecht, then you don’t yet
understand Rozemyne. Of course she’s going to cause more major incidents before
the Interduchy Tournament.”
I was sure of that much—but I could never have
guessed that someone would challenge Rozemyne to a game of ditter, hoping to
secure her hand in marriage when she was already engaged. As the old adage
went, for as long as Rozemyne was in the Academy, headache-inducing reports
were inevitable.
Afterword
Hello again, it’s Miya Kazuki. Thank you very
much for reading Ascendance of a Bookworm: Part 5 Volume 2.
This volume’s prologue was told from the
perspective of Ferdinand, as so many of you requested. It focused on how he’s
doing in Ahrensbach and on how the letters he receives from Rozemyne are dealt
with. Please understand, though—he’s only able to do normal work because
Detlinde is still at the Royal Academy.
The main body of the volume begins with a
summons from the royal family before rolling into a trip to the library’s
underground archive, a look at Dunkelfelger’s religious ceremonies, annoying
tea parties, and a Dedication Ritual in the Royal Academy. Things then take a
turn when Lestilaut taunts Ehrenfest into a game of bride-taking ditter, which
is subsequently interrupted by the Sovereign Knight’s Order.
Truth be told, when I was first crafting the
plot for this volume, there was a lot more time dedicated to making magic tools
with Raimund in Hirschur’s laboratory. The ditter game kept taking up more and
more space, though!
Rozemyne doesn’t have nearly enough common
sense to understand why involving the king in a joint research project between
students is so unusual, so, in the web novel, the Dedication Ritual was
described through the eyes of Lueuradi. Here in the light novel, however, that
was turned into an independent side story at the end. I hope you enjoyed seeing
how an archnoble from another duchy felt about meeting the royal family and
experiencing her first religious ceremony.
This volume’s epilogue was written from
Hannelore’s perspective. It included a resolution to the bride-taking ditter
match, a conversation with Anastasius, which took place after Rozemyne left,
and a glimpse into how those from Dunkelfelger view Rozemyne’s actions.
Naturally, these are all things that we wouldn’t have seen through Rozemyne’s
eyes.
The first newly written short story was from
the perspective of Sigiswald, the first prince, while the second was narrated
by Sylvester.
The first short story offers a glimpse into
the first prince’s relationship with Anastasius, and the way the Sovereignty
views Rozemyne and the rapid growth of her duchy. As for how these things might
change over time... please look forward to future volumes.
Sylvester’s story is another entry in the
fairly popular series of chapters about headache-inducing reports from the
Royal Academy. At last, Rozemyne’s antics have become so shocking that
Florencia faints, and a new chapter begins with Sylvester taking over.
Leberecht, Florencia’s scholar and Hartmut’s
father, is currently filling the hole left by Ferdinand. As an archnoble, he
could not show his suffering in front of the archduke, but here we have another
father struggling with his rampaging child—a child who, in this case, is
fighting like a madman for any opportunity to visit the Royal Academy.
(Hahaha.)
Three characters received designs from
Shiina-sama for this volume: Sigiswald, Trauerqual, and Lueuradi. I asked for
Sigiswald to look like a proper prince who nonetheless resembles Anastasius,
Trauerqual to have hair of a similar length to Ferdinand’s and come across as
someone so exhausted that he’s practically living off of potions, and Lueuradi
to exude the air of a floaty, dream-loving young girl who makes for a killer
duo with Muriella. The results were absolutely excellent.
At the time of my writing this, the anime
adaptation of Part 2 has begun. It’s only recently started, but seeing Fran,
Gil, and Delia as they were at the start was super nostalgic. I can’t wait to
see Wilma and Rosina too.
This volume’s cover art shows the archduke
candidates of two duchies in the midst of playing bride-taking ditter. Rozemyne
is wielding Leidenschaft’s spear, while Lestilaut has Dunkelfelger’s secret
treasure. There’s also Wilfried in full plate armor, and Hannelore looking
distressed. It really makes you feel tense, doesn’t it?
I asked for the color illustration to show the
underground archive, a very important place for Yurgenschmidt. Since the keys
are normally managed by adults, I thought it best that the keyholes be hard for
Rozemyne to reach.
Shiina-sama, thank you as always.
And finally, my utmost thanks to everyone who
read this book. May we meet again in Part 5 Volume 3.
April 2020, Miya Kazuki

















